THe Author of these ensuing Sermons, Mr. THOMAS PIERSON, was so famous in his generation, such a burning and shining light, and so instrumental to the good of the Church, both by his own indefatigable labours in the Ministry of the Gospel, as also by the publishing of divers Treatises of Mr. Perkins and Mr. Brightman; that I could not but do him this right, not only to give an Imprimatur to this Commentary of his upon some Psalms, but also to signify to the Reader, the Piety, Learning, and Worth of the Author, and to commend these his Sermons to every good Christian, as holding out many Orthodox and savoury Truths, and by obedience to which Truths, many souls went to Heaven, without entangling themselves in the many un-edifying janglings of these sad divided times. July, the 6th. 1647. ED: CALAMY. EXCELLENT Encouragements AGAINST AFFLICTIONS; OR, Expositions of four select Psalms: the XXVII, LXXXIV, LXXXV, and LXXXVII. Containing, 1 Davids triumph over distress. 2 david's hearts desire. 3 The Church's exercise under afstiction. 4 The great Charter of the Church. By the learned and laborious, faithful and prudent Minister of God's Word, Mr. THOMAS PIERSON, late Pastor of Brompton-Brian in the County of Hereford. ROM. 15.4. Whatsoever things were written aforetime were written for our learning, that we through patience and comfort of the Scriptures might have hope. LONDON, Printed by John Legatt, for Philemon Stephens; at the gilded Lion in Paul's Churchyard. MDCXLVII. TO THE TRULY NOBLE Sir ROBERT HARLEY, Knight of the Honourable Order of the Bath, the comforts of grace here, and a crown of glory hereafter. SIR, AMongst other disadvantages, to which the posthume publication of deceased men's works is subject, one is, that the publishers are commonly suspected to have dealt injuriously either with the Authors themselves, in ascribing that to them which is not theirs, or with others in usurping that interest unto which they might pretend a better title. That no such suspicion may take hold on me by occasion of these ensuing Expositions, I presume to present them unto you, who best know how I may be justified by the reverend Authors own-hand written copies, and last will and testament. Nor am I willing that any thing of his should pass into the public through my hand, until I have made an open acknowledgement of the special interest you had in him whilst he lived as his Patron, and still have in all his paper posterity as the principal guardian to whom he commended the tuition thereof. For these I dare not attempt to say any thing concerning the subject matter of them as in way of commendation, because it is no other but the sacred Word of God which he himself hath magnified above all his name. Psal. 138.3. and therefore if I should go about to speak to that purpose at all, it must be with such a promonition as that in the Satire quicquid dixero minus erit: and such commendations do commonly incur as justly they may, the censure of disparagements. But for the Method observed in the handling thereof (how meanly soever esteemed of by many who peradventure never took the pains to look into it) I dare be bold to say, that no true Artist can upon serious consideration except against it, but that he must secretly condemn himself of too too wilful prejudice and partiality. For change but the terms, and instead of Doctrine or Observation writ Theorem or Proposition, instead of Explication, Construction, instead of Reason, Demonstration, and instead of Use and Application, corollary or Conclusion, and you will presently think that you see so many Divinity Problems Mathematically handled, and i● may be conceive as I do, that he who chose to use his method first in the course of his Ministry was a fare greater Artist, and knew better why he should do so then many of those that either effect an ignorant imitation of him, or carelessly cast a causeless scorn upon the method itself, for some men's inconsiderate misusage of it. The Author of these ensning Expositions was none of them as you, and many more well able to judge, can witness with me, and these amongst others of his writings may testify, which through your hand, and under your name I consecrate unto the common treasure of the Church and public benefit of all that love to look into the inside of the holy Scriptures, not curiously minced and mangled, or carelessly torn in pieces howsoever, but artificially dissected and laid open to the view of all, even indifferent capacities: to whom to speak so plainly, that they may be edified, is the best use of art, and an harder matter in St. Hierom's opinion (Epistolâ ad Nepotianum) then to astonish and amaze them with a multitude of words the easiest thing of a thousand, and that which it may be they strive most to do, that can or will do nothing well. Verba volvere & celeritate dicendi apud imperitune vulgus admirationem sui facere indoctorum hominum est, saith the learned father. And a little after, Nihil tam facile quàm vilem plebeculam & indoctam concionem linguae volubilitate decipere quae quicquid non intelligit plus miratur. But of this convincing preacher (as one that you know was used to call him) it would be hard to say, whether his own understanding in the sacred Oracles of God. or his diligence and dexterity in making them obvious unto the understanding of others were more remarkable. Once I am sure that these amongst other excellent endowments wherewith he was eminently qualified, both made his life so dear unto you, and still preserve his memory so precious in your esteem, that I make account you would impute it unto me as an impertinent presumption if I should pretend mine own engagements, or any other inducements whatsoever to excuse my boldness in seeking to honour any of his papers with your public patronage, you having professed yourself honoured in that he left you the private owner of them, as he did him to be your servant in the publication of that which should be thought fit for the press, who acknowledgeth himself in many respects obliged to be Your Worships in all observant duty unfeignedly devoted CHRISTOPHER HARVEY. David's Triumph OVERDO DISTRESS. OR, AN EXPOSITION OF THE XXVII Psalm. By Mr. THOMAS PIERSON, late rector of Brompton-Brian, in the County of Hereford. LONDON, Printed for Philemon Stephens, at the gilded Lion in Paul's Churchyard. 1647. DAVID'S TRIUMPH OVERDO DISTRESS. OR, An EXPOSITION of the XXVII Psalm. PSAL. 27. VERS. 1. A Psalm of David. The Lord is my light and my salvation, whom shall I fear? The Lord is the strength of my life, of whom stall I be afraid? THis Psalm (as the title-shewes) was penned by David that kingly Prophet, the sweet Psalmist of Israel: for the spirit of the Lord spoke by him, and his word was in his tongue, 2 Sam. 23. 1, 2. which circumstance, well observed, will give strength to the application of every good duty, pressed upon us by his example, in the particular branches of the Psalm. The time when this Psalm was penned, may probably be guessed, by the matter of it, to have been, when he was persecuted by the hand of Saul and his followers, of whose cruelty he complains, vers. 2. and prays against them, vers. 12. The scope The chief matter of it is, a notable expression of affiance, and confidence in God, in his greatest dangers, commending the same, by the notable fruits and effects thereof. and general division of the whole Psalm. His godly affiance he testifieth three ways. First, by plain and express profession thereof, in sweet variety of phrase, and gracious application, by sundry remarkable fruits and effects thereof, to be seen in his godly behaviour, in the six first verses. Secondly, by humble prayer, and supplication for audience, mercy, favour, instruction and preservation, vers. 7, etc. to 13. Thirdly, by a godly provocation of his own soul, upon good ground, still to wait upon God, vers. 13, 14. For the first: Vers. 1. David's affiance, and confidence in God, is very elegantly, in sweet variety of phrase, plainly testified in the first verse, when he calleth the Lord his light, and his salvation, and the strength of his life: and there also is amplified, by a notable effect of godly security, in freedom from servile fear, propounded by way of interrogation, and also twice repeated, for better assurance. The meaning of the words. Metonymia effecti. In all the three titles, which he gives to God, there is a sacred trope, the effect is put for the efficient. For, to speak properly, God was the author and fountain of light, salvation, and of strength, and not the things themselves. Likewise, in the first word, there is another trope, a Metaphor: Metaphorae. for light is taken in a translate and borrowed sense, for joy and gladness: as Esther 8.16. which is to the heart a pleasant thing; as light is to the eye. Eccles. 11.7. So as his meaning is, to encourage his heart against the reproach of his enemies, that would bid him be packing, to hid himself in mountains and deserts, as Psal. 11.1. seeing the King himself did seek his life. Why (saith David) I have Jehovah the true God, for the author of joy and gladness to my heart, the giver of safety to my person, and of strength unto my life, whom should I fear? Should I be afraid of Saul, or any other man, when as the Lord is my comfort, by undertaking my safety, and girding me with strength, as Psal. 18.32. In the words thus understood, note two things: First, what God was to David: secondly, what benefit David reaped thereby. For the first; The first Observation. The true God is unto David the fountain of gladness to his heart, the Author of safety to his person, and the giver of strength and might, for the preservation of his life. For light of comfort, see, Psal. 18.28. Thou wilt light my candle, that is, increase my small comfort: the Lord my God will lighten my darkness, that is, give me comfort and joy, instead of misery and sorrow. Hence he calls God his exceeding joy, Psal. 43.4. And that he was the Author of his safety, see Psal. 3.3. Thou Lord art a shield for me: and Psal. 4.8. Thou Lord only makest me dwell in safety. For giving him strength and might, see, Psal. 18.2. The Lord is my rock, and my fortress, and my deliverer: my God, my strength. Vers. 32. It is God that girdeth me with strength. Vers. 39 Thou hast girded me with strength unto the battle. The Reason. The reason or ground of this happiness, is David's being in covenant with God: as God himself testifieth of David; calling him his servant, whom he anointed with his holy oil: and promising, that his faithfulness and mercy shall be with him: yea, his mercy will he keep for him for ever: and his covenant shall stand fast with him. He shall cry unto me, thou art my father, my God, and the rock of my salvation. Psal. 89.20, 21, 24, 26, 28. And David himself layeth claim to this covenant with God, Psal. 119.94. I am thine, save me: and Psal. 23.1. The Lord is my shepherd: and, in very many Psalms, he calleth the Lord his God; as Psal. 7.1. O Lord, my God, in thee will I put my trust: and Vers. 3. O Lord my God. The first Use for instruction. This serves for instruction, admonition, and comfort. For instruction two ways: First, touching God's all-sufficiency in himself, for all his children, for whatsoever they want, or need, else David would never have said with assurance, that God became so many great blessings unto him, as here he doth, and in many other places: as Psal. 18.2, and Psal. 144.1, 2. My strength, my goodness, my fortress, my high tower, and my deliverer, my shield, etc. This point the Lord taught Abraham plainly, Gen. 17.1. I am God All-sufficient, or Almighty. The second Use for instruction. Secondly, this shows plainly the happy estate of those, that stand rightly in covenant with God, as David saith; Blessed is the nation, whose God is the Lord, Psal. 133.12. For God being in himself all-sufficient, becomes all in all to those, that be his people by covenant. Psal. 103.17, 18. The mercy of the Lord is from everlasting to everlasting, upon them that fear him, and his righteousness unto children's children, to such as keep his covenant. His eyes run to and fro, throughout the whole earth, to show himself strong in the behalf of them, whose heart is perfect towards him. 2 Chron. 16.9. He will make all his goodness pass before them. Exod. 33.19. He will bless them, in their basket, in their dough, within the house, and in the field, De●t. 28.1, 2, etc. to 15. Hereupon David saith, he shall not lack, Psal. 23.1. and the Church saith, she will not fear, having God for her refuge and strength. Psal. 46.1, 2, 5. with Is. 33.21. The first Use for admonition. For admonition, this serves three ways. First, seeing this was David's great happiness in his troubles, that he could say, The Lord is my light and my salvation, etc. That we should search and try, whether God be that to us, which he was to David. And this may be known, of every child of God at this day. How we may know that God is our light. For first, if God be the light of grace and comfort to thy soul in Christ Jesus, he will be the light of joy and gladness, in his providence to thy heart: and if he be spiritual salvation in Christ Jesus, he will not deny thee temporal preservation: and if he be the strength of thy soul in grace, he will become the strength of thy life in nature. In this case thou mayst reason, as David did, Ps. 56.13. Thou hast delivered my soul from death, wilt thou not deliver my feet from falling? Now the evidence of these heavenly and spiritual blessings from God is this. First, that he becomes the light of grace unto our souls appears three ways. First, by our true repentance, whereby we awake from the sleep, and stand up from the death of sin. Eph. 5.14. For such as walk in darkness, and yet lay claim to fellowship with God, who is pure light, do but lie in their profession. 1 John 1.6. Secondly, by a constant and conscionable practice of new obedience, according to the rule of God's word, which is doing the truth, Joh. 3.21. For such have fellowship with Christ, and with the true members of his Church, 1 John 1.7. Thirdly, if we suffer for the Gospel, and for righteousness sake, when we are called thereunto. Heb. 10.32. After ye were enlightened, ye endured a great fight, through afflictions. For, to believers it is given, not only to believe, but to suffer, Phil. 1.29. How we may know that God is our salvation. Secondly, that God becomes our spiritual and eternal salvation is thus known. First, if he have saved us from sin, in regard of dominion, so as corruption doth not reign. See, Matth. 1.21. with Luke 1.71, 74, 75. and 1 Pet. 1.18. Secondly, if he have wrought in our hearts the grace of true faith, whereby we rest and rely on the merits of Jesus Christ for justification and salvation. See John 5.24. with 1 John 5.10, 14. Thirdly, if he have drawn our hearts to love the brethren. 1 John 3.14. We know that we have passed from death unto life, because we love the brethren. How we may know that he is our strength. Thirdly, the Lord doth manifest himself to become our spiritual strength, when he hath enabled us by grace to know, and use that spiritual armour mentioned, Ephes. 6.10, etc. Finally, my Brethren, be strong in the Lord, and in the power of his might: put on the whole armour of God: the girdle of truth: the breastplate of righteousness: shoes of peace (which be Christian patience): the shield of faith: the helmet of salvation: the sword of the spirit: and prayer for strength, skill and blessing, in the use of all the former. The second Use for admonition. Secondly, if we find defect in the forenamed blessings, we must give all diligence thereunto: as 2 Pet. 1.5, etc. to the 10. verse. And the way is, to get rightly into covenant with God through Christ Jesus, in whom God becomes all things unto u, that be needful, especially for our spiritual welfare. How to get into covenant with God. And to get into covenant, we must both repent of our sins, for so John prepared the way before Christ, Matth. 3.3. and made ready a people for him, Luk. 1.17. Also labour to get the grace of faith, for that is engrafting grace. Rom. 11.17, 20. Now the means of both these is the word and prayer. The law prepares the heart for grace, by the sight of sin, and by working humiliation for sin: as, Rom. 7.11. 1 Cor. 14.24, 25. The Gospel is the word of his grace, Acts 20.32. and by the blessing of the spirit is immortal seed, 1 Pet. 1.23, 25. it is the word of faith, Rom. 10.8, 17. and prayer obtains the spirit, Luk. 11.13. which is the spirit of faith, 2 Cor. 4.13. therefore the Disciples by prayer sought faith of Christ. Luk. 17.5. The third Use for admonition. Thirdly, in the fruition of any of these blessings, see whether to return the honour and praise, namely, to him, that became all these to David. And indeed, thus have the godly, for some one or more of these, continual cause of praise, and thanks to God. Therefore we must in all things give thanks. 1 Thes. 5.18. The Use for comfort. For comfort, this makes greatly to the godly, who make conscience of their ways, and endeavour to keep covenant with God. For, God will become all these unto them, as he was to David: whereupon they may rejoice, as, Psal. 21.1. and say they shall not lack, as Psal. 23.1. for their God is all sufficient for them, as Gen. 17.1. We have seen what God became to David: now we come to see the second thing, to be noted in the verse, the benefit which David reaped, by having the Lord for his light, and salvation, and for the strength of his life, namely, hereby he was freed from humane slavish fear and terror. This he confidently expresseth to be certain, as well by the manner of propounding it, by way of question, which here implieth a more vehement negation; as also, by the repetition of his freedom, which shows that his heart herein was resolute: as Gen. 41.32. the dream is doubled to give certainty. The second Observation. Mark then David's confidence and courage: having the Lord for his God, he is armed against all fear of men, or other creatures. Psal. 118.6. The Lord is on my side, I will not fear: what can man do unto me? Psal. 23.1, 4. The Lord is my shepherd, etc. Though I walk through the valley of the shadow of death, I will fear none evil. Psal. 3.3, 6. Thou Lord art a buckler for me, I will not be afraid of ten thousand of the people, that shall beset me round about. The Reason. The reason is, because having the Lord for his God by covenant, he had title to God's power, which is Almighty, for his defence and safety: and that upon God's sure word and promise. See Psal. 91, 1, etc. He that dwelleth in the secret place of the most high, shall abide under the shadow of the Almighty. I will say of the Lord, he is my refuge, and my fortress: my God, in him will I trust: Thou shalt not be afraid for the terror by night, etc. This serves for instruction, and for admonition. The first Use for instruction. For instruction, two ways. First, see here, that there is great gain in true godliness: as 1 Tim. 6.6. and much fruit in religion, to those that attain to true righteousness: as Psal. 58.11. For such, as be truly godly, be in sure covenant with God, and thereby have right and title to the great comforts and blessings, which Gods own divine properties afford, unto the sons of men: as here, for instance, to be freed from humane servile fear, by their right and interest to God's power and might; for what needs he to fear, that hath God's power for his defence? The three children did hereby encourage themselves in great present danger. Dan. 3.16, 17. We are not careful to answer thee in this matter. Our God, whom we serve, is able to deliver us from the burning fiery furnace, and he will deliver us out of thi●● hand. And for assurance hereof, mark all Gods gracious promises of protection and preservation to the godly: as Isa. 41.14. Fear not thou worm Jacob, etc. Isa. 43.1, 2, 3. Now saith the Lord, that created thee, O Israel, fear not, for I have redeemed thee, and called thee by thy name, thou art mine. When thou passest through the water I will be with thee, etc. Isa. 51.11, 12, 13. The redeemed of the Lord shall obtain joy and gladness: and sorrow and mourning shall flee away. I, even I, am he that comforteth thee: who art thou, that thou shouldest be afraid of a man, that shall die, and of the son of man, that shall be made as grass? and forgettest the Lord thy maker, etc. Add hereto, Jerem. 46.27, 28. Fear thou not, oh thou my servant Jacob— for I will save thee— I am with thee. Obj. But we shall find, that the most godly do fear, as David himself. Psal. 116.11. I said in my haste, all men are liars: And 1 Sam. 27.1. I shall now perish one day by the hand of Saul. Answ. This comes from the weakness of their faith, as Matth. 14.30, 31. Peter feared, though he had Christ's word for his warrant, through the weakness of his faith: which may also be increased by present guilt in some sin. Obj. But the godly sometimes fly, and fall before their enemies, and so cannot but fear. Answ. All promises of temporal blessings, such as freedom from humane fear is, are to be understood with exception of the cross, that is, must give way to God's correction for sin; as in David, 2 Sam. 12.14. and to Gods making trial of grace, as in Job, Chap. 2, 3. The second Use for instruction. Secondly, here see the true ground of that difference, which is between the wicked and the godly, about slavish fead and godly boldness; plainly testified by Solomon. Prov. 28.1. The wicked flee, when no man pursueth: but the righteous is bold as a Lion. This cometh hence, The godly have the Lord with them, and for them, and that makes them bold: but the wicked have the Lord against them, and that strikes their hearts with fear and dread. See the truth of this in instance. Moses leads all the people of Israel boldly through the red sea: Pharaoh followeth boldly for a while, but at length he and all his host are afraid; and fly away, and are drowned. Heb. 11.29. with Exod. 14, 25. And at Christ's resurrection, the keepers are as dead men for fear, but the women, that sought Jesus, are bid not to be afraid. Matth. 28.4, 5. The 1. Use for admonition. For admonition, it serves two ways: First, to take notice, that the true grounds of courage and boldness is this, that a man hath the true God for his God: that so, whosoever would be comfortable and courageous in the evil day, do labour for this estate, to have the true God for his God. It is not only true, that affliction followeth sinners, so as evil shall hunt the wicked person to destruction, Psal. 140.11. but even the godly themselves are subject to many miseries: as Psal. 34.19. Through manifold tribulations we must enter into the kingdom of God. Acts 14, 22. Now, unless God be for us, the heart will fail, when evils come, as Nabals did, 1 Sam. 25.37. And none indeed have the Lord for them, but those that stand rightly in covenant with God: which be such, as repent of their sins, believe in the Lord Jesus, and walk in new obedience. This is wholesome doctrine; for soldiers in war, Mariners on the sea, and for every one in evil times. The second use for admonition. Secondly, those that have true courage and comfort in evil times, must learn hence to give God all the glory. For this is the Lords gift, as David confesseth, Psal. 18.29, etc. Vers. 2. When the wicked, even mine enemies, and my foes, came upon me, to eat up my flesh, they stumbled and fell. The meaning of the words. HEre David gives instance from his own experience, of God's powerful preservation of him in extreme danger: which no doubt he propounds, as the ground of that great confidence professed in the former Verse: as in like case, he encouraged himself to encounter in fight with great Goliath, because God had formerly strengthened him against a Lion and a Bear, 1 Sam. 17.33, 34, 35. In the instance here made, we have three things to note. First, the state and condition of David enemies, they are wicked men. Secondly, their purpose and attempt against David, they came upon him to eat up his flesh; that is, utterly to destroy him, as the roaring lion devoureth a little sheep. Thirdly, the issue and success of their attempt; they stumbled and fell. The first Observation. For the first note. David's enemies and foes are wicked men, Psal. 3.7. Thou hast smitten all mine enemies on the check bone, thou hast broken the teeth of the ungodly. Ps. 5.8, 9, David praying for safety, because of his enemies saith, There is no faithfulness in their mouths, their inward parts are very wickedness, etc. ●sal 6.8. He calls his enemy's workers of iniquity. Psal. 17.9. The wicked that oppress him are his enemies: and Verse 13. Deliver my soul from the wicked. The Reason. The reason whereof, is the enmity put by God himself, between the seed of the serpent and the seed of the woman, Gen. 3.15. which David found, Psal. 38.19, 20. They that render evil for good are mine adversaries, because I follow the thing that good is: and our Saviour Christ, Joh. 7.7. The world hateth me, because I testify of it, that the deeds thereof are evil. Who also foretell his Disciples hereof, Joh. 15.15. If ye were of the world, the world would love his own: but, because ye are not of the world, but I have chosen you out of the world, therefore the world hateth you: and John 16.33. In the world ye shall have tribulation. This serves for instruction, admonition, and comfort. The use for instruction. For instruction, it shows plainly, what the godly must expect, and look for in this world, at the hands of wicked men, namely, all bitter opposition and enmity that may be: as Christ Jesus told his Disciples, ye shall be hated of all nations for my name's sake: and therefore tells them, that he sent them forth as sheep into the midst of Wolves. Mat. 10.16. Which thing David had found long before, and thereupon complains; My soul is among lions, and I lie amongst the children of men, that are set on fire, whose teeth are spears and arrows, and their tongue a sharp sword, Psal. 57.4. And mine enemies— workers of iniquity— lie in wait for my soul. Psal. 59.1, 2, 3. My soul hath long dwelled with him that hateth peace. I am for peace, but when I speak they are for war. Psal. 120.6, 7. This Paul likewise felt, Acts 20.23. The holy Ghost witnesseth in every City, that bonds and afflictions abide me. See 2 Cor. 11.23. In stripes above measure, in prison more frequent, in death oft. Yea, it was the case of the rest of the Apostles, as well as his. I think (saith he) that God hath set us forth, the last Apostles, as it were appointed to death: For we are made a spectacle unto the world, unto Angels, and to men. 1 Cor. 4.9. The first Use for admonition. For admonition, it serves two ways: First, to the wicked, that they consider their estate in God's sight, when they are so spitefully bend against the godly: surely, this is that venomous corruption, which they receive from the old serpent the devil. This Paul accounted the madness of his natural estate: Acts 26.11. And being exceedingly mad against them, I persecuted them unto strange cities. The second Use for admonition. Secondly, to the godly, to be both wise as serpents, and harmless as doves: and to beware of men. Matth. 10.16, 17. So did David, Psal. 39.1, 2. I will keep my mouth with a bridle, while the wicked is before me. I was dumb with silence, I held my pence even from good. The Use for comfort. For comfort, this makes greatly to the godly, that their adversaries are wicked men, for they may hereon rest assured, that God will not join with their enemies, unless it be for trial of grace, as in Job, or for the sins of the godly, in forsaking him: for then the Lord may justly use the wicked; as rods and scourges for their correction: as, Isaiah 10.5, 6. O Assyrian, the rod of mine anger, and the staff in their hand is mine indignation. So Job 8.20. Behold, God will not cast away a perfect man, neither will he help the evil doers. Indeed, if we forsake him, he will forsake us. 2 Chron. 15.2. Rejoice therefore, O ye nations, with his people: for he will avenge the blood of his servants, and render vengeance to his adversaries, and will be merciful unto his land, and to his people. Deut. 32.43. Consider the Lords wish. Psal. 81.13, 14, 15. Oh that my people had harkened unto me: and Israel had walked in my ways! I should soon have subdued their enemies, etc. Add Isaiah 50.10. and 54.8, 14, 15. The second Observation. The second thing to be noted here is, the purpose and attempt of David's enemies against him: they came upon him, to eat up his flesh; that is, utterly to destroy him. Mark then, David's enemies did fully purpose, and endeavour his utter ruin and destruction. Psal. 18.4. The sorrows of death compassed me, and the floods of the ungodly made me afraid: Psal. 56.2. Mine enemies would daily swallow me up, they be many that fight against me: Vers. 6. They gather themselves together, they hid themselves, they mark my steps, when they wait for my soul. Psal. 57.4. My soul is among lions: I lie among them that are set on fire: even the sons of men, whose teeth are spears and arrows, and their tongue a sharp sword. Psal. 69.4. They that hate me without a cause, are more than the hairs of mine head: they that would destroy me, being mine enemies wrongfully, are mighty. The Reason. The reason hereof was, their spiteful wrath and hatred against David; as he confesseth in the behalf of the Church with himself, Psal. 124. ●, 3. If it had not been the Lord, who was on our side, when men lose up against us. Then they had swallowed us up quick, when their wrath was kindled against us. And this spiteful wrath, Why spiteful wrath was kindled in David's enemies against him. was kindled in them against David, on two occasions: first, because of his religion and piety, with which their corruption could admit no accord; as the Apostle doth intimate, 2 Cor. 6.14. and David confesseth, Psal. 38.20. They, that render evil for good, are mine adversaries; because I follow the thing that good is: as Cain slew his brother, because his own works were evil and his brothers righteous, 1 John 3.12. and herein the devil set them a work, to hinder religion: as Revel. 2.10. Secondly, because of the honour and dignity whereto God had advanced him. Psal. 4.2. O ye sons of men, how long will ye turn my glory into shame? Psal. 62.4. How long will ye imagine mischief against a man? They only consult to cast him down from his excellency. This Saul himself confesseth in his fury to Jonathan his son. 1 Sam. 20.31. As long as the son of Jesse (that is David) liveth upon the ground, thou shalt not be established, nor thy kingdom: wherefore now fetch him unto me, for he shall surely die. This serves for instruction, and for admonition. The first Use for instruction. For instruction, it serves two ways. First, to discover the exceeding measure of corruption, that is in natural men, and thereupon their fearful estate in soul to God-ward. Their spiteful hearts, and raging wrath: against the godly, whereby nothing will satisfy them, but their utter ruin and destruction, shows the great measure of their corruption. When they will eat up God's people, as they eat bread; that is, devour them with delight, this shows they are corrupt: as Psal. 53.1, 3, 4. And that they are so spiteful minded is plain by instance, Psal. 83.4. They have said, come, and let us cut them off from being a nation, that the name of Israel may be no more in remembrance. Ten nations were confederate against Israel with this resolution. The like we may see in the carnal Israelites against Paul, Acts 22.22. They lift up their voices, and said, away with such a fellow from the earth: for it is not fit that he should live: yea in Paul himself, before he was converted: for he persecuted Christianity unto the death: Acts 22.4. and was mad this way, Chap. 26.11. Now this malice, and hatred against the godly, show them to be the children of the devil: as 1 Joh. 3.12. and Joh. 8.40, 44. The second Use for instruction. Secondly, to manifest, that there is a special providence of God, over his Church and children, that preserves and keeps them, notwithstanding all the spite, and rage of the wicked against them: as Psal. 105.12, 13, 14. When they were but a few men in number, yea very few, and strangers in the land: when they went from one nation to another, from one kingdom to another people. He suffered no man to do them wrong. The first Use for admonition. For admonition, it serves two ways. First, to the wicked, to consider of their corrupt affection, in spite and hatred against the godly, and whence it comes; that so they may discern their fearful state in soul, and labour to alter it: How they stand affected, their own hearts can tell them: even as Ahab was to Michaiah, 1 King. 22.8. I hate him. But whence is it? See Jam. 3.14, 15. even from the devil: as Acts 13.10. if enemy of righteousness, than child of the devil: as John 8.40.44. Now the way of change from that estate, is by rengeneration: which indeed is God's work, yet in the use of means ordained by himself, even the word and prayer: for the word is the seed of our new birth, 1 Pet. 1.23. and prayer obtains the spirit, which puts life thereto: See, Luk. 11.13. and John 6.63. The 2. Use for admonition. Secondly, to the godly, often to bethink themselves, what their religion may bring upon them from the wicked, even all their wrath and hatred, fury and rage; that so they may get the sure shelter against it, which is only this, to have God for them: as Psal. 118.6. The Lord is on my side, I will not fear: what can man do unto me? For he is the safe keeper Psal. 121.4, 5. whereon David assures himself of safety. Psal. 3.3, 6. and Jeremiah, Jer. 20.15. Now he is ours by covenant, and continues for us, while we keep fast to him in uprightness of heart: See 2 Chron. 15.2. The Lord is with you, while ye be with him: and Chap. 16.9. The eyes of the Lord run to and fro, throughout the whole earth, to show himself strong, in the behalf of them, whose heart is perfect towards him. Now a perfect heart is discerned, by an obedient life: Isa. 38.3. I have walked before thee in truth, and with a perfect heart, and have done that which is good in thy sight: with Job 1.1. That man was perfect, and upright, and one that feared God, and eschewed evil. The third Observation. The third thing to be noted here is, the issue and success of the cruel attempt of David's enemies against him. They did not only fail of their purpose against David; but even themselves stumbled and fell. See this plainly, both in his particular combat with Goliath, 1 Sam. 17.44, 49. who said, he would give David's flesh to the fowls of the air, and to the beasts of the field: but it fell out otherwise. Also in manifold battles, that he fought against the Philistims: whereof he saith in general, Psal. 118.10, 12. All nations compassed me about— They compassed me about like Bees: they are quenched as the fire of thorns. The truth thereof, see 1 Chron. 14.8, etc. when the Philistims came up against him, two several times, in great abundance, and brought their Gods with them, which he burned with fire at Baalperazim, Vers. 12, etc. See also, Psal. 37.14, 15. The wicked have drawn out the sword, and have bend their bow, to cast down the poor and needy, and to slay such as be of upright conversation. Their sword shall enter into their own heart, and their bows shall be broken. The first Reason. The reason, or cause hereof, was in God: who for just causes stood for David, and set himself against David's enemies. God stood with David for these causes. First, he found him out, and chose him to do him service, in that place and state, wherein he was so mightily opposed by his enemies. See Psal. 89.20, 21. I have found David my servant, with my holy oil have I anointed him. With whom my hand shall be established: mine arm also shall strengthen him, etc. as Acts 13.22. I have found David the son of Jesse, a man after mine own heart. Psal. 78.70. He chose David his servant, and took him from the sheepfold. The second Reason. Secondly, David trusted in God, and so was helped. Ps. 62, 1, 2, 3. Truly my soul waiteth upon God: from him cometh my salvation. He only is my rack and my salvation: he is my defence, I shall not greatly be moved. How long will ye imagine mischief against a man? ye shall be slain all of you: as a bowing wall shall ye be, and as a tottering fence. Psal. 21.7, 8. The King trusteth in the Lord, and through the mercy of the most high he shall not be moved, etc. Psal. 91.1, 2, 9 He that dwelleth in the secret place of the most high, shall abide under the shadow of the Almighty, etc. The third Reason. Thirdly, David prayed unto the Lord, and so was preserved. Psal. 56.9. When I cry unto thee, then shall mine enemies turn back: this I know, for God is for me. Ps. 34.4. I sought the Lord, and he heard me, and delivered me from all my fears. Vers. 6. This poor man cried, and the Lord heard him, and saved him out of all his troubles. This duty hath God's promise. Psal. 50.15. Call upon me in the day of trouble, I will deliver thee, and thou shalt glorify me. The fourth Reason. Fourthly, David made conscience of sin, and walked in in obedience. Psal. 18.21, 24. For I have kept the ways of the Lord, and have not wickedly departed from my God. Therefore hath the Lord recompensed me according to my righteousness. The fifth Reason. Now for his enemies, God would not be with them, for these causes. First, they were not called of God, nor sent by him against David: Psal. 10.2. pride, malice, and covetousness stir up the wicked. The sixth Reason. Secondly, they were wicked men, workers of iniquity: as Vers. 1. with whom God will not join for help and assistance. Job. 8.28. God will not cast away a perfect man, neither will he help the evil doers. Psal. 94.20. Shall the throne of iniquity have fellowship with thee, which frameth mischief by a Law? Psal. 5.4, 5, 6. Thou art not a God that hast pleasure in wickedness: neither shall evil dwell with thee, etc. Psal. 56.7. Shall they escape by iniquity? The seventh Reason. Thirdly, David's enemies did neither regard God's word, nor God's works, and so could not prosprr. For neglect of God's word, see Psal. 119.126. It is time for thee, Lord, to work: for they have made void thy law. Psal. 50.16, 17. Unto the wicked, God saith, what hast thou to do to declare my statutes? etc. seeing thou hatest instruction, and castest my words behind thee? And for his works, Psal. 28.5. Because they regard not the works of the Lord, nor the operation of his hands, he shall destroy them, and not build them up. The eight Reason. Fourthly, David's enemies trusted in their own might, and outward means, Psal. 3.2. Many say of my soul, there is no help for him in God. 2. Sam. 17.12. Therefore I counsel, etc. We will light upon him, as the dew falleth on the ground: and of him, and of all the men that are with him, there shall not be left so much as one. Psal. 21.7, 8. Some trust in chariots, and some in horses, but we will remember the name of the Lord our God. They are brought down, and fallen, but we are risen, and stand upright. Object. Yet sometimes this is otherwise, as the Psalmist complaineth, Psal. 89.38, 39, 43. But thou hast cast off, and abhorred: thou hast been wrath with thine anointed: Thou hast made void the covenant of thy servant: thou hast profaned his crown, by casting it to the ground. Thou hast also turned the edge of his sword: and hast not made him to stand in the battle. The like complaint, see Psal. 44.9, 10, etc. But thou hast cast off and put us to shame, and goest not forth with our armies. Thou makest us to turn back from the enemy, and they which hate us spoil for themselves. Answ. Here we must consider the nature of God's promises: for though such as concern redemption, and salvation in Christ, be most sure and certain, yea and Amen. 2 Cor. 1.10. Yet the promises of temporal blessings are conditional, and must be understood, with the exception of the cross, that is, so as God, either for trial of grace, or correction for sin, may deal otherwise: as we may see in good King Josiah, who for the sins of the land, that hastened Gods judgements, fell by the hand of Pharaoh Nechoh. This serves for instruction, admonition, and comfort. The first Use for instruction. For instruction: see what a great blessing and privilege it is, to stand rightly in convenant with God; whereby he becometh light or salvation to a man, or to a people, and the strength of their life: for so shall they find extraordinary preservation in time of danger, and strange deliverance beyond humane expectation: as here David confesseth, and the people of Israel found many a time: as when they were pursued by Pharaoh, at the red sea, Exod. 14.10, ●3. so also, when Joshuah won Jericho, Josh. 6.21. Ai, Josh. 8.28. and slew the five Kings of the Amorites, who fought against Gibeon, Josh. 10.15, etc. in which fight, the Sun stood still in the midst of heaven, and hasted not to go down about a whole day, vers. 13. And afterward, when divers other Kings, with all their power, came to fight against Joshuah, with much people, as the sand upon the sea shore for multitude, with horses and chariots very many, Joshuah discomfited them all, Josh. 11.1, 2, 5, 6. And the Anakims, against whom formerly none could stand, Deut. 9.2. Yet Joshuah drove them out, and destroyed them utterly and their cities. Josh. 11.21, 22. The like we may see in the strange victories, in the book of the Judges, by Deborah and Barak against Sisera. Judg. 4.15, etc. By Gideon against the Midianites, Judg. 7.22, etc. By Jephtah against the Ammonites, Judg. 11.32, 33. By Samson against the Philistims, Judg. 15, and 16. chapters: and so by Jonathan and his Armour-bearer, against a garrison of the Philistims, 1 Sam. 14.15. By David's many victories over them before mentioned: by Asa against the Ethiopians, 2 Chron, 14.9, etc. Jehoshaphat against Moab, Ammon, and Mount Seir, 2 Chron. 20.12, etc. and Hezekiah against Sennacherib, Is. 37.36. The second Use for instruction. Also here see the misery of those, that be out of covenant with God: for the Lord's power is ever against them (unless when he will use them, as a rod and scourge to punish the rebellious: as Is. 10.5, 6.) and therefore woe unto them: as Hos. 9.12. with Deut. 32.30. The Use for admonition. For admonition, to give all diligence to be truly in covenant with God, that so it may be with us, as it was with David. For which end, in the profession of the true faith, we must imitate the godly practice of David, having a calling for that we do, trust in God, pray unto him, and walk in obedience. Also, as we desire to scape the Lords hand in our overthrow, let us beware of the state and properties of David's enemies. The Use for comfort. For comfort to the godly, fight the Lords battles, and yet overmatched. If they be in covenant with God, and follow David, in the warrant of a good calling, in affiance, prayer, and holy obedience; they may say, where is the God of David, of Joshuah, of Jehoshaphat, etc. as Elisha said, where is the Lord God of Elijah? 2 Kings 2.14. for he is without shadow of change, Jam. 1.17. Vers. 3. Though an host should encamp against me, my heart shall not fear: though war should rise against me, in this will I be confident. The meaning of the words. HEre the Prophet returns, to make mention of his courage and confidence against his enemies, more fully expressing the same, than he had formerly done; by making supposal, that with all their force, and in their greatest fury, they should set upon him; saying, though an host should encamp against me, there is the supposal of their force, and yet he would not fear: and though war should rise against me, there is the supposal of their rage and fury; yet in this will I be confident. But what means he by, in this? The most take it demonstratively, with reference to that he had said, the Lord is my light: yet it may be taken for a relative, and referred to the war made against him, wherein he would be confident, upon his having God for his light, etc. The first observation. Here than we have two things to note; the one implied, or taken for granted; The other expressed. The thing implied is this, that to be in fear, and to be confident, are here opposed as contrary affections of the heart. David here professeth his heart was free from fear, and that he was confident. And to clear the proposition, it containeth two things. First, that fear and confidence are contrary affections: this is acknowledged by the very heathen, as a principle in natural philosophy, which none can deny, that know the nature of these affections, What fear is. or feel the force of them. For fear is the fainting or falling down of the heart, upon the apprehension of evil, either present or imminent: as Luk. 21.26. men's hearts failing them for fear. What confidence is. But confidence is the trust, or persuasion of the heart, to escape evil, and to enjoy good: as Psal. 37.3.5. Secondly, that these affections are seated in the heart, is likewise acknowledged by natural men, and plain also in Scripture: for fear, see Luk. 21.26. as before: and for confidence, Psal. 28.7. The Lord is my strength, and my shield, my heart trusted in him. The Reason. The reason hereof, is the will of God Almighty, the maker of man's heart: as Psal. 33.15. He fashioneth their hearts alike, and he made this contrary to that. Eccles. 7.14. The use for instruction. The application is twofold. First, for instruction: see here that one of these two must needs possess every one of our hearts: for these affections are natural, and who will exempt himself from that, which is man's natural estate? Elias was a man subject to natural passions, James 5.17. and said of himself, I am no better than my fathers, 1 Kings 19.4. Whether Adam by creation were endued with fear? Quest. Was Adam endued with fear by creation? Answ. Adam's fear by creation was filial, of God: but servile fear was not in him, till he sinned against God: Of this we may say, as of shame. Gen. 2.25. They were both naked, the man and the woman, and were not ashamed: with Gen. 3.9, 10. The Lord God called unto Adam, and said unto him. where art thou? And he said, I heard thy voice in the garden, and I was afraid, because I was reaked, and I hid myself. The Use for admonition. For admonition, that every one of us do consider, the causes of these affections, and as we desire to be freed from fear, and endued with confidence, so to give all diligence, to be freed from the cause of fear, and to be possessed with the causes of true affiance and confidence. Now fear ariseth from the apprehension, and conceit of that, which is evil and hurtful to us: which, whatsoever it is, comes from sin: that is indeed 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉: 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 see Prov. 1.33. Gen. 3.10. The cause of confidence and affiance is, sure title to that which is good: which none have but the righteous. As Ps. 37.17. The Lord upholdeth the righteous. Vers. 39 The salvation of the righteous is of the Lord. Hence Solomon saith, The righteous is bold as a lion, Prov. 28.1. Now the way to be freed from sin is, by true repentance: as Acts 3.19. Repent ye therefore, and be converted, that your sins may be blotted out. And the way to become truly righteous is, to believe in God through Christ: who is the end of the law for righteousness, Rom. 10.4. which is never severed from righteousness renewed in sanctification: as 1 Cor. 1.30. After these two graces, must we give all diligence, in the use of means, the word and prayer: in and by which the Holy Ghost worketh these, and all other needful graces, in the hearts of Gods elect: And for motives, consider the present evil times, in the common troubles of the Church abroad: which if they befall as, without repentance and faith, we shall shrink under them. Add hereto the meditation of the terror of death, to them that want repentance and faith. But most of all the horror and terror of the day of judgement. The second Observation. The thing expressed is this, That David's heart was confident, and free from slavish fear of hurt, from the strongest opposition, and malice of all his enemies. See Psal. 3.6. I will not be afraid of ten thousands of people, that have set themselves against me round about. The Reason. The reason hereof was, his being truly in covenant with God: whereby he had title to God's power, and providence; for his preservation. See Psal. 91.9, 10, 11. Because thou hast made the Lord, which is my refuge; even the most high, thy habitation. There shall no evil befall thee, neither shall any plague come nigh thy dwelling. For he shall give his Angels charge over thee, etc. So Psal. 3.3. and Psal. 118.6. Obj. David wanted this confidence before Achish, 1 Sam. 21.12, 13. Answ. He had then the habit of faith in God in his heart, but failed somewhat in that particular act; as Peter did more, when he denied his master, Luk. 22.60. with 32. Which we must observe, to restrain rash judgement, against ourselves or others, for particular falls: For, as we have sanctification in part, and not perfectly, so we may fail in many particular acts. Which yet must not encourage any, to go on in a course of sin, seeing reigning sin, and saving grace, cannot stand together. See Rom. 6.1. to 15. This serves for instruction, and for admonition. The use for instruction. For instruction: see the great fruit of godliness, in giving courage and boldness in his greatest distress: as is said in general, 1 Tim. 4.8. Godliness is profitable unto all things. Psal. 58.11. Verily, there is a reward for the righteous. The Use for admonition. For admonition, to labour to be such as David was, if we desire to have the like courage. Now David stood rightly in covenant with God, and kept covenant, testifying the same by new obedience. See, Psal. 18.21, 22, 23. I have kept the ways of the Lord, and have not wickedly departed from my God, etc. And say not, this sampler is too high: see Jam. 5.10. Take my brethren the Prophets, who have spoken in the name of the Lord, for an ensample of suffering affliction, and of patience. Nay, Matth. 11.29. our Saviour himself saith, learn of me. And St. Paul Phil. 2.5. Let this mind be in you, which was also in Christ Jesus. Ephes. 5.1. Be ye followers of God, as dear children. Vers. 4. One thing have I desired of the Lord, that will I seek after: that I may dwell in the house of the Lord, all the days of my life, to behold the beauty of the Lord, and to inquire in his temple. The meaning of the words. HAving, in the former verses, plainly expressed the singular benefits, he received by having the true God for his God: as namely, that he himself was encouraged in the greatest assaults of his enemies. Vers. 1, 3. and on the other side, his enemies were daunted and dismayed, Vers. 2. Here in this verse, he shows his ardent affection towards the place of God's worship, being indeed the only way for his soul to enjoy society with God, who was his light, and salvation, and the strength of his life. This affection of David, towards the place of God's worship, is here notably expressed, three ways. First, by this, that he makes it the only matter of his special suit unto God; which both formerly he had desired, and would yet also still seek after: one thing have I desired of the Lord, that will I seek after, that I may dwell in the house of the Lord. Secondly, by the length of time, for which he would enjoy that benefit, namely, all the days of his life. Thirdly, by the comfortable ends, for which he desires it, which here are these two: first, to behold the beauty of the Lord: secondly, to inquire in his temple. For the first: the Lords house, in David's time, was the Tabernacle of the Congregation, to which he had appropriated the ordinances of divine service; for the performance whereof, his people did thither assemble themselves, while it stood, and to the Temple built by Solomon afterward, whereto God made the promise of his presence, 1 Kings 9.3. whither the Tribes went up. Psal. 122.4. unto which place David's heart was truly addicted: as Psal. 26.8. Lord I have loved the habitation of thy house, and the the place where thine honour dwelleth. 1 Chron. 29.3. I have set my affection to the house of my God. But now, in the new testament, difference of place, in respect of holiness, is taken away, Joh. 4.21. and God's house is his Church, 1 Tim. 3.15. that is, such companies, and assemblies of people, as be in covenant with God, and meet together in Christ's name, to perform worship and service unto God: as Mat. 18.20. For the godly are God's temple, and God's house. 1. Cor. 3.16. 2 Cor. 6.16. 1 Pet. 2.5. Now to dwell in God's house is, to continue a true member of God's Church, a true believer, enjoying the liberty and comfort of God's holy worship and service: wherein, though the Priests and Levites had a special privilege, whose calling was to do service in the sanctuary, as Psal. 134.1. yet it was not peculiar to them alone, as appears by Psal. 15.1. and last, compared with Luke 2.36.37. where men, and women, that are truly godly, are said to dwell in God's house. The first Observation. Here then, in this first expression of David's affection, towards the house of God, note two things. First, that David's heart was set upon the house of God above all other things: he was more in prayer, and endeavour after this blessing, to dwell in God's house, then after any worldly thing. This he often testifieth, as 1 Chron. 29.3. I have set mine affection to the house of my God. Psal. 26.8. Lord, I have loved the habitation of thine house, and the place where thine honour dwelleth. Psal. 122.1. I was glad, when they said unto me, let us go to the house of the Lord. So Psal. 84.1, 2, 10. and Psal. 42.1, 2, 4. This affection is the more to be marked in David, because the world wonders at it in God's children: as Cant. 5.8, 9 and derides them for it, as 2 Sam. 6.20. therefore consider the reasons, that moved him thereunto: which are indeed the wonderful, rare, heavenly blessings, which are certainly enjoyed in God's house, The first Reason. and no where else. Whereof the first and principal (from which all the rest do flow) is the sure fruition of society and fellowship with the true God; who is one in essence, three in persons, the father, the son, and the holy Ghost. Who, though the whole world be his, yet only shows his special grace and favour, to the true members of his Church: as Psal. 147.19, 28. He showeth his word unto Jacob, his statutes and his judgements unto Israel: He hath not dealt so with any nation, etc. with Exod. 19.5. Ye shall be a peculiar treasure unto me, above all people. And therefore they, that are out of the Church, are said to be without Christ, and without God in the world. Ephes. 2.12. and cannot receive the holy Ghost, who is the true sanctifier and comforter, Joh. 14.17. What the privilege of the Church is. Behold then the privilege of the Church, and of the true members thereof: the true God, who is one in essence, three in persons, as God, is their Lord and King, which is a great ground of their true happiness. The Queen of Sheba accounted Solomon's servants happy, in having a King so eminent for wisdom, 1 Kings 10.8. But behold, a greater than Solomon is here, Matth. 12.42. a King and Master in his Church, who can give deliverance by command, Psal. 44.4. and will honour all his faithful servants. Joh. 12.26. Where I am, there also shall my servant be. If any man serve me, him will my father honour: so Luke 12.37, 43, 44. More particularly, God the father is in Christ their father, 2 Cor. 6.18. John 20.17. even the father of mercies: 2 Cor. 1.3. who will take notice of the wants of his children, and make supply upon their sober, and sanctified use of lawful means, if first and chief they seek heavenly blessings. Matth. 6.32, 33. and what is wanting in their temporal estate, he will fully make out in their eternal. Luke 12.32. Also God the son is, in and to his Church, a blessed saviour and redeemer: he is the head unto his Church, which is his body. Eph. 1.22, 23. and the saviour of his body. Eph, 5.23. See Luke. 2.10, 11. Isa. 49.6.8. Yea he is an husband unto their souls. Isa. 54.5. Thy maker is thine husband. Isa. 62.4, 5. Thy land shall be married. As a young man marrieth a virgin— and as the bridegroom rejoiceth over the bride, so shall thy God rejoice over thee. And God the holy Ghost is, to his Church, a blessed sanctifier and comforter, the spirit of grace and supplications. Zech. 12.10. And because ye are sons. God hath sent forth the spirit of his son into your hearts. Gal. 4.6. Secondly, the true God, in Christ Jesus, gives to all the true members of the Church freedom, and deliverance from all hurtful evils. By imputing his righteousness unto them, he doth acquit them from the whole guilt, and curse of sin, both original corruptions, and actual transgressions: whereupon all the evils thereof, in temporal and corporal miseries, as they are curses, are removed. See Gal. 3.13. Christ hath redeemed us from the curse of the law, being made a curse for us: whereupon, Rom. 8.1. There is no condemnation to them which are in Christ Jesus: and more generally, Luke 1.68, etc. Acts 13.39. The third Reason. Thirdly, here God affordeth to his children, the full and sure fruition of all needful blessings, heavenly and earthly. See Ephes. 1.3. for heavenly: and for earthly, see Math. 6.32, 33. The blessings of his house are great, as Psal. 65.4. Here is no lack. Psal. 34.10. See some particulars. The first blessing in God's house. First, here God gives direction in every good way. Psal. 32.8. I will instruct thee, and teach thee in the way which thou shalt go: I will guide thee with mine eye. Psal. 73.24. Thou shalt guide me with thy counsel. A type hereof he shown to his people in the wilderness, Exod. 13.21, 22. in the pillar of cloud by day, and fire by night. The second blessing in God's house. Secondly, here is plentiful provision, both for soul and body. Psal. 34.10. For the soul see, John 6.27, 33, 35, 55, 63. 1 Cor. 10.16. Here is the tree of life, and the well of life. Rev. 22.1, 2. Psal. 36.9. With thee is the fountain of life. Psal. 87.7. All my springs are in thee: that is, in the true Church. For the body, see, Isaiah 65.13. Psal. 37.3, 4. The third blessing in God's house. Thirdly, here is safe protection, and preservation, by special providence. Psal. 91.1, etc. implied, and assured to all the faithful. Matth. 10.29, 30, 31. It is said the King's servants in ordinary cannot be arrested, but by warrant from the Lord Chamberlain, and ordinary attendants on Parliament-men, have great freedoms; but the servants of God have more: see John 19.11. Job 1.10. Acts 18.10. Psal. 89.22. The fourth blessing in God's house. Fourthly, here is most admirable remuneration, even in this life, with the honour of grace, and favour to be his friends, Joh. 15.14, 15. to be his children, 1 John 3.1. and to have the attendance of the heavenly Angels, Psalm 34.7. Psal. 91.11. Heb. 1.13. but most abundantly in the life to come: Matth. 19.28, 29. Matth. 25.21, 23. Luke 12.32. This serves for instruction, and for admonition. The first Use for instruction. For instruction two ways. First, see here a plain evidence, of the great ignorance, and unbelief of natural men, in the things of God: for not one of a thousand hath david's affection to God's house: and the true cause thereof is, their ignorance and unbelief; touching the good things of God's house: As in the like, see, John 4.10. and Cant. 5.9. Here it is true, that the light that is in natural men, is but mere darkness, Matth. 6.23. The second Use for instruction. Secondly, that undoubtedly it is a wonderful privilege, and prerogative, to be a true member of God's Church, and to live in his house; else David would never have so much desired it. The first Use for admonition. For admonition, two ways. First, to try our affection toward the house of God, by David's: for sure it is, if God be our light, and our salvation, and the strength of our life, we cannot but desire to enjoy that place, where we may have society with him. The evidence of good affection to God's house. Now the evidence of this good affection is. First, sorrow for want of liberty to God's service: as Psal. 42.1, 2, 4. When I remember these things, I power out my soul in me, etc. And for want of Gods saving and sacred ordinances: as Psal. 74.9. We see not our signs, there is no more any Prophet, etc. as Phinebas wife in travel. 1 Sam. 4.19, 20, 21, 22. The glory is departed from Israel, for the Ark of God is taken, etc. Secondly joy, in the means and liberty thereto: as Psal. 121.1. I was glad, when they said unto me: let us go into the house of the Lord. As, when the Ark came to Bethshemesh, from among the Philistims, they of Bethshemesh rejoiced to see it, 1 Sam. 6.13. and sacrificed sacrifices unto the Lord. Vers. 15. And David danced before the Ark for joy, when it was brought to the City of David. 2 Sam. 6.15, 16. and so Nehem. 8.12. all the people made great mirth, for understanding the word; and Vers. 17. in keeping the Lords feast, there was great gladness. The second Use for admonition. Secondly, to get David's affection to God's house: which will be had, by knowing their misery that are out of it; as the world drowned out of Noah's Ark: and as is expressed, Rev. 22.15. with 21.8. also by their happiness that be the living members of it: see Rev. 21.7. add 22.14. for than they have God for their God, and right to all the blessings of the covenant, in freedom from the miseries of nature (as they are curses) and fruition of all needful good, in direction, provision, protection, and remuneration, as before is showed. For the sanctifying of these things considered to our hearts, we must pray for the spirit, which quickeneth the dead, and giveth light, and sight to the blind eyes of the understanding: and with all endeavour to leave sin, and to live godly, that so we may be more capable of the blessings of the spirit. For the spirit of God is an holy spirit, and will not dwell in an unclean and filthy heart: as, 2 Cor. 5.14, 15. Mark the place, where Christ eats the Passeover with his Disciples. Mark 14.15. It is a large upper room, furnished and prepared: so it should be with our hearts, if we would have the father and Christ to come unto us, and make their abode with us: John 14.23. yea to s●p with us, Revel. 3.20. The second Observation. Secondly, in his first expressing of David's affection towards the house of God, note also the means he used, and the course he took, to obtain this blessing: namely, with earnest desire, and prayer to God, he joineth other endeavour, and seeketh after it, by doing what he can otherwise to get this estate. Here are two words used declaring David's behaviour to obtain this blessing, that he might dwell in the house of the Lord. The first doth plainly point out the duty of prayer to God, 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 and that of earnest prayer, such as Beggars use, who are usually importunate: as Prov. 20.4. The sluggard shall beg in harvest. The second word, though sometime it express seeking in prayer, 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 See Pagnin. in this word M. yet often betokens the use of other means, beside prayer, whereby the thing desired may be gotten, as labour and pains, in travail and otherwise: as Psal. 37.32. The wicked watcheth the righteous, and seeketh to slay him: and therefore it is sometime expounded by pursue: as Psal. 34, 14. Seek peace, and pursue it. Whereby it seems plain, that David did with prayer, join other endeavour to get this blessing, to dwell in the house of the Lord. The first Reason. The reason of this behaviour is twofold. First, obedience to God's ordinance, who required of those, that would dwell in his house, three things. First, repentance from dead works, whereby they break off the course of all sin, wherein they had formerly lived: see, 1 John 1.6. If we say we have fellowship with him, and walk in darkness, we lie. Hath the throne of wickedness fellowship with thee? Psal. 94.20. What fellowship hath light with darkness, etc. 2 Cor. 6.14, 15. David would not suffer an evil person to dwell in his house, Psal. 101.4.7. and shall we think that God will have his house defiled with such? For reigning sin is spiritual leprosy: and, though he were a temporal King, yet bodily leprosy will cause him to be cast out of the Lords Sanctuary, 2 Chron. 26.20. Secondly, to be beautified in soul with inward graces, through regeneration, as faith, virtue, godliness etc. 2 Pet. 1, 5, 6, 7, 8. Heb. 11.6. He that cometh unto God must believe. Thirdly, to be adorned in life with new obedience. Psal. 15.2, 3, etc. Psal. 24.3, 4. And these things David must seek after, if he would dwell in God's house: and so no doubt he did. The second Reason. Secondly, desire to enjoy the blessings of Godshouse, wherein he knew that man's true happiness did stand: as Psal. 65.4. Psal. 84.4. As Paul did, Phil. 3.13, 14. Now in nature, every thing desires the happiness of its kind; so fare forth, as the enlightening of the understanding can direct, which being most perfect in God's children, they desire the fruition of the true God, who is the fountain of the best happiness. This serves for instruction, and for admonition. The use for instruction. For instruction, it shows us plainly, whence it is, that the greatest number in the world, do fail of true spiritual grace, and so indeed of salvation itself: sure it is not for want of desire; for wicked Balaam would have his soul to die the death of the righteous. Num. 23.10. But it is because, with desire in prayer, they do not join seeking after, and holy endeavour, in the diligent use of other means, ordained of God for the attaining hereof: For it fares with men, that live in the Church, for the blessings of grace and salvation, as it doth with men in the world, for temporal blessings: of whom Solomon saith, Prov. 13.4. The soul of the sluggard desireth, and hath nothing: why so? Because he is a sluggard, and severeth diligence from desire, as the opposition shows, in the end of the verse: but the soul of the diligent shall be made fat. But the idle soul shall suffer hunger, Prov. 19.15. And so it is for spiritual graces, which are the treasures of wisdom, heavenly riches: as Christ implieth, John 5.40. You will not come unto me, that you might have life: compared with Matth. 11.28, 29. Come unto me, all ye that labour, etc. And St. Paul shows it, Acts 13 46, 47. Seeing you put it from you, etc. and Luke 10.10, 11, 12. Into whatsoever city ye enter, and they receive you not, go your ways out into the streets of the same, and say, Even the very dust of your city, which cleaveth on us, we do wipe off against you, etc. And it may be seen in the foolish Virgins. Matth. 25.3, 11, 12. and in the idle servant, Matth. 25.25, etc. The Use for admonition. For admonition: all that desire to have grace and glory, must here learn of David, with desire in prayer to join diligence, in the use of further means, ordained of God for the obtaining of those blessings. See Prov. 2.3, 4. If thou criest after knowledge, and liftest up thy voice for understanding: If thou seekest her as silver, and searchest for her, as for hid treasures: Then shalt thou understand the fear of the Lord, etc. There we see seeking goes with crying: so Mat. 7.7. Ask, and it shall be given you: seek, and ye shall find, etc. The very heathen would say, that fortune resisted sluggish prayers. And see, Jam. 4.3. Ye ask, and receive not, because ye ask amiss: not joining endeavour with prayer. Consider 2 Pet. 1.5, 6, 7, 8, 9, 10. Give all diligence, add to your faith virtue, etc. Add 2 Pet. 3.11, 12, 14. and see, answerable hereunto, the endeavour of the godly: of St. Paul, 1 Cor. 9.26, 27. Phil. 3.10, 11, 12, 13. and of the Church of the Thessalonians, 1 Thess. 1.6, 7, 8, and of Ephesus, Rev. 2.2. and of Thyatira, Revel. 2.19. The third Observation. The second thing, here expressing David's sincere affection to the house of God, is the length of time, for which he desires to dwell therein: namely, all the days of his life. No shorter time will satisfy David's soul, while he lives in the world he would dwell in the house of the Lord: and therefore in the thought and assurance thereof, doth he so much encourage himself. Psal. 23.6. Surely goodness and mercy shall follow me, all the days of my life: and I will dwell in the house of the Lord for ever. The first Reason. The reason hereof is threefold. First, for the fruition of the good things of God's house, mentioned before, viz. spiritual society with God, and from him deliverance from all hurtful evils, and partaking of all needful blessings, in direction, provision, protection, and remuneration: to which these mentioned in this verse do belong, to behold the beauty of the Lord, etc. whereupon, he esteemed a day in God's courts, better than a thousand elsewhere. Psal. 84.10. The second Reason. Secondly, for his better opportunity to glorify God, which thing his soul desired to do, so long as he lived: as see Psal. 63.4. Thus will I bless thee, while I live. Psal. 146.2. While I live, will I praise the Lord: I will sing praises to my God, while I have any being. Now the house of God was the chiefest place for this duty. Psal. 29.9. In his temple doth every one speak of his glory, Psal. 84.4. Blessed are they that dwell in thine house: they will be still praising thee. The third Reason. Thirdly, he knew, that to be out of God's house was, to be out of God's favour: as cain's complaint doth plainly import. Gen. 4.14. and the Lords severe dealing against Israel, for their sins, doth plainly show, 2 Kings 17, 18, 20. This serves for instruction, and for admonition. The use for instruction. What it is at this day to dwell in God's house. For instruction, see plainly in David, that the hearts of the godly do sincerely desire, and in their loves they do faithfully strive, for perseverance in the state of grace: for that thing at this day, is dwelling in God's house, as the phrase imports, 1 John 2 19 They went out from us, but they were not of us▪ for if they had been of us, they would no doubt have continued with us; that is, in the profession and obedience of the word of faith. Which is a thing worthy of our observation, for our better satisfaction, touching the the truth of our doctrine, of the perseverance of the Saints in grace: thereof we need to have the less doubt, seeing in thiem all is wrought a true desire after this estate, which they show by prayer, and other godly endeavour. Now the Lord heareth the desires of those that fear him. Psal. 145.19. and Matth. 7.7. Ask and it shall be given you. The Use for admonition. For admonition, to those that are weary of God's house, and the exercises of religion, snuffing at them, and saying it is a weariness, Ma●. 1.13. saying, when will the Sabbath be gone? Amos 8.5. How many have we, that love the alehouse and whore-house, better than God's house, as Jer. 5.7. They assembled themselves by troops in the harlot's house●. But, Lam. 1.4. The ways of Zion do mourn, because none come unto the solemn feasts. Quest. How should they alter their estate and do better? Answ. The way, of man is not in himself, Jer. 10.23. yet the means, ordained of God, must be used of every one, that would become like unto David: which is diligence in the word and prayer, and making conscience to live according to the word. The third thing here to be noted, in David's expressing the fervent affection of his heart towards God's house; are the blessed ends, for which David desires that favour: namely, first to behold the beauty of the Lord: secondly to inquire in his Temple. For the first, the Lords beauty, to be seen in his house, is not the beauty of his essence, for so no man can see God and live, Exod. 33.18, 20. Before this glorious beauty, the Angels cover their faces with their wings, Is. 6.1, 2. But it is the beauty of his ordinances, wherein God doth reveal to the eyes of men's minds, enlightened by his spirit, the pleasant beauty of his goodness, justice, love, and mercy in Jesus Christ. Mark here then; The fourth Observation. That in God's house, the godly do behold the pleasant beauty of the Lord, in his gracious properties, of goodness, justice, love, and mercy in Jesus Christ. Psal. 63.1, 2. My soul thirsteth for thee, my flesh longeth for thee— To see thy power, and thy glory: so, as I have seen thee in the sanctuary. See 2 Cor. 3.18. and 4.6. The Reason. The reason hereof is, the good pleasure of God, thus to manifest his gracious properties, in his own ordinances. Look as, in the works of the creation, he shown the eternal power, and wisdom of the Godhead; Rom. 1.19, 20. so, in the ordinances of his service, he doth make known his justice, goodness, love, and mercy in Jesus Christ. This is most clear in the Gospel preached, and in the Evangelicall sacraments rightly administered; wherein with open face, we behold the glory of the Lord, and are transformed into the same image. 2 Cor. 3.18. The world by wisdom knew not God, in the wisdom of God: that is, how God will show himself wise in man's salvation. 1 Cor. 1.21. Now, Christ crucified in the Gospel preached is, this power of God, and this wisdom of God. Verse, 24. Herein is made known the unsearchable riches of Christ. Eph. 3.8. and the manifold wisdom of God. Verse. 10. For it pleased the Father, that in him should all fullness dwell. Col. 1.19. in him are hid all the treasures of wisdom and knowledge, Col. 2.3. and are all opened unto us in the Evangelicall ministry. Now the legal service had the shadow of all these good things to come. Colos. 2.17. Heb. 10.1. for the sacrifices did lead to Christ, as 1 Cor. 5.7. and the purifying water shadowed out the sanctification of the spirit. Joh. 3.5. These and the rest of the legal ordinances▪ were figures for the time of the Law, Heb. 9.9. and the words of the Prophets, with them, were lights, that shined in a dark place, till the day of the Gospel did down, and the daystar; that is, the clearer light of knowledge, arise in men's hearts: 2 Pet. 1.19. Now, David had the spirit in prophet call wisdom, 2 Sam. 23.2. and thereby saw, even in these legal ordinances, the pleasant beauty of the Lord his God in Christ Jesus. This serves for instruction, and for admonition. The use for instruction. For instruction: see a reason of the different affections, to be seen in men toward the house of God; and the sacred ordinances therein used: some are exceeding zealous thereof, as Psal. 69.9. longing and fainting for the Courts of the Lord, Psal. 84.2. Psal. 63.1, 2. Psal. 42.1, 2. Others count it a weariness, and wonder that any should take delight therein. Now, the reason is, that some see the beauty of the Lord in his house, and others are blind, and ignorant, and see nothing at all: as Cant. 5.9. being like the Prophet's servant, that saw the horses and chariots of the enemy, but saw not the chariots of fire from the Lord, till the Prophet had prayed for him, 2 Kings 6.15, 16, 17. They are like the woman of Sichar, that asked not the water of life of Christ, because she knew him no●, nor the gift of God, John 4.10. For admonition, it serves two ways. First, to natural men, to give all diligence after spiritual illumination, that they may attain to this estate; to see the Lords pleasing beauty in his sacred ordinances. The way is to get the spirit, 1 Cor. 2.11, 12. for which end, we must use God's means, the word preached: Acts 10.44. Gal. 3.2. and prayer, Luke 11.13. in an holy manner, that is, first repenting of sin, Prov. 1.23. Acts 2.38. Secondly, hungering and thirsting after grace, Isaiah 44.3. Thirdly, walking in new obedience, Acts 5.32. The second Use for admonition. Secondly, to God's children, to be careful of their behaviour, that the beauty of the Lord may be still shining upon them. The way is: First, to watch against temptation to sin, which is a cloud, to hid God's face from his people: as Lam. 3.44. Isaiah 59.2. Secondly, to be frequent and diligent in those sacred ordinances, and religious services, wherein God begets, and increaseth grace in their hearts: which now are, the solemn parts of the Evangelicall ministry, in the word preached; sacraments reverently administered; and prayer with thanksgiving. Thirdly, to strive to show the power of godliness in conscionable obedience. john 14 21, 23. He that hath my Commandments, and keepeth them, he it is, that loveth me: and he that loveth me, shall be loved of my father: and I will love him, and will manifest myself unto him. If a man love me, he will keep my words: and my father will love him, and we will come unto him, and make our abode with him: and Psal. 50.23. To him, that ordereth his conversation aright, will I show the salvation of God. The second end, for which david's desires to dwell in God's house, is, that he may inquire in his temple, that is, diligently seek direction of God, in all cases of doubt, Hebr. early. or difficulty, that may any way concern him. Mark here then, The fifth Observation. That in God's house, the godly did inquire and seek of God, for direction and satisfaction, in all material cases of doubt, and difficulty, that did concern them. See, for David himself, 1 Sam. 22.10. Doeg tells Saul, that Ahimelech enquired of the Lord for David: and Vers. 15. Ahimeleches speech seems to imply, that he had done it often. Did I then begin not inquire of God for him? as if he should have said, that's a thing I have formerly done oftentimes for him. So Chapter 23.2. David enquired of the Lord, about his going to fight against the Philistims, that came against Keilah: vers. 4. Again he enquired of the Lord. This enquiry was thought to have been by the Prophet Gad, who was with David, 1 Sam. 22.5. and 1 Sam. 23.9, 10. he enquired by Abiathar the Priest, that was fled to him with the Ephod, as vers. 6. And 1 Sam. 30.7, 8. he enquired of the Lord, about the pursuit of the Amalakites, that had burnt Ziklag. So before this time, Judg. 1.1. the people asked the Lord, who shall go up against the Canaanites: and Judges 20.18. they ask counsel of the Lord, about going up against the Benjamites, and vers. 23. the second time, and vers. 27, 28. the third time, where the manner is showed: Add Gen. 25.22. The first Reason. The reason hereof is twofold: First, God's own ordinance; which is plainly set down, directing his people to this duty: See the promise of God's presence to give direction, Exod. 25.21, 22. whence the most holy place is thought to be called 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉, because thence God spoke, and gave answer, when he was rightly sought unto, 1 Kings 6.19, etc. And hereupon, Num. 27.21. Joshuah must be before Eleazar the Priest, who shall ask counsel for him before the Lord. Add Deut. 17.8, 9 The second Reason. Secondly, for the fruition of the benefits, and comforts of this privilege, which are exceeding great. First, freedom from manifold evils, The benefits that come by enquiring of God. that do accompany men's miscarriages, that walk in their own counsels, and after their own conceits: as we may see in the Israelites, making league with the Gibeonites, that were inhabitants in the land of Canaan, Josh 9.14, etc. Secondly, assurance to be acceptable to God, and bleffed of him in the things they take in hand, even of this world. See, 2 Chron. 15.2. If ye seek him he will be found of you: and Verse 15. they sought him with their whole desire, and he was found of them. Thirdly, undoubted fruition of glory in the life to come. See Psal. 73.24. Thou shalt guide me with thy counsel, and afterward receive me to glory. See also, Psal. 24.3, 4, 5, 6. Who shall ascend into the hill of the Lord, etc. This is the generation of them that seek him: that seek thy face, O Jacob. This serves for instruction, and for admonition. The use for instruction. For instruction: see plainly, that the true members of God's Church, are advanced in privilege, dignity and honour, above all other people: for with whom doth the Lord so deal, in grace and favour, as with the true members of the Church? What nation is great, who hath God so nigh unto them, as our God is, in all things that we call upon him for? Deut. 4.7. he bids, Call upon me in the day of trouble, and I will deliver thee, and thou shalt glorify me. Psal. 50.15. The eyes of the Lord are upon the righteous, and his ears are open unto their cry. Psal. 34.15. The Lord is nigh unto them, that are of a broken heart: and saveth such, as be of a contrite spirit. Vers. 18. Obj. If any one say, this indeed was the prerogative of the Jews, that they were Gods peculiar people, and chief treasure, and the Lord would be enquired of by them, above all other people: but is it so with the Church of the new testament? Answ. Though there may be some difference, in the manner of Gods giving answer: yet for substance and real performance, the Church of the new Testament is preferred before the Jews, as we shall see in taking particular view of their means of enquiry of God, in cases of difficulty, which were especially four. How the Jews enquired of God. First, by Prophets: as 2 Kings 3.11. Is there not here a Prophet of the Lord, that we may inquire of the Lord by him? and 1 Kings 22.7. Secondly, by the high Priest: as Num. 27.1. Thirdly, by the ordinary teachers of the Law, Mal. 2.7. Fourthly, in prayer: Psal. 50.15. wherewith was joined fasting, when they sought of God blessings of importance this way: as Ezra 8.21, 23. Now, the Church of the new Testament, at this day, is not inferior to the Church of the Jews: for they sometime wanted extraordinary Prophets: as Psal. 74.9. And we do ever enjoy the spiritual presence of Christ Jesus, the great Prophet of the Church. Math. 28.20. For John Baptist was more than a Prophet, Matth. 11.9. and yet not worthy to unloose Christ's shooe-latchet, John 1.27. He is likewise the great Highpriest of our profession, who by his word and spirit, in all needful truth, revealeth his father's will, more plainly and fully, than the High Priest did by Vrim and Thummim: See Heb. 1.2. with 4.14. We have a great high Priest over the house of God, Heb. 8.2. a Minister of the Sanctuary and of the true Tabernacle: And for the written word, wherein Gods will is to be found, the great increase of the sacred Canon, by all the books of the new Testament, shows our prerogative, that way above the Jews. And for access and obtaining by prayer, with fasting, direction from the Lord, see the promise, Luke 11.9, 10, 11, 13. with John 16.24, 36. and behold the success by instance in Cornelius, Acts 10.2, 3, 30, etc. The Use for admonition. For admonition, it serves effectually to move every one, that lives in the Church, to look unto their state and carriage; that it be such, as may give them some good assurance, that they have right to this privilege, to inquire in the Temple. To this end, we must look to two things: First, that we be in covenant with God, else we have no right to this prerogative: as Ephes. 2.12. the promise of audience is made to God's people, 2 Chron. 7.14. Secondly, that we keep covenant, living in conscionable obedience, as Psal. 25.9, 10. else we forfeit our right, as we may see by Gods dealing with Saul, 1 Sam. 28.6, 16. and Ezek. 2, 3, 30, 31. But, if we keep covenant, we may claim our due of God, as David doth in this 27. Psalms, vers. 7.9. always remembering, that we walk in the Lord's highway, to consult with him in his word: as Psal. 73.17. for therein God teacheth his children: as Psal. 94.10, 12. and Psal. 119.98, 99 And to call upon him by prayer adding thereto the humiliation of our souls by fasting, as Ezra. 8.21, 23. with Acts 10, 2, 3, 30. etc. Vers. 5. For in the time of trouble he shall hid me in his pavilion: in the secret of his tabernacle shall he hid me; he shall set me up upon a rock. The meaning of the words. A Reason of David's earnest desire to dwell in God's house for ever, drawn from the benefit of safety, and security, there to be found in time of trouble. Which benefit is here expressed, under a double action of God: First, hiding in his pavilion, and secret of his tabernacle: Secondly, setting up upon a rock. For the better conceiving whereof we must know, that by God's pavilion David means the Lords Tabernacle, and his dwelling place in Zion. And the secret of his Tabernacle was the most Holy place, where the Cherubims spread their wings, over the mercy seat, the cover of the Ark of the covenant, whither indeed David might not go personally, as we may see by Heb 9.8. and Levit. 16.2. but aimeth at that, which those things did shadow out, namely, special providence, and protection for safety: as Psal. 91.1, 4. and 61.3, 4. Those places indeed were generally taken for places of safety, as may appear by the fact of Adonijah, 1 Kings 1.50, 51. and of Joab, 1 Kings 2.28. and by the charge of Jehoiadah the high Priest, 2 Kings 11.15. The ground whereof is thought to be (besides reverence of God's presence) God's ordinance in the Wilderness, that the Tabernacle of the congregation should be a sanctuary, for that time, as the cities of refuge were afterward: as is gathered by Exod. 21.13, 14. So that here David assures himself, that being a true member of God's Church, his grace and favour, power and providence should be, as the Lords pavilion, and as the secret place of his tabernacle; even a sure and safe place of safety, and security to him. And likewise as a rock, that is high and strong, doth give safety and security to him that is set thereon, from the violent assault of all malicious enemies: so the Lords power, and favour, would become the means of safety unto David: who thereupon doth usually call the Lord his rock and his salvation: as Psal. 18.2. Psal. 42.9. In this reason thus conceived, note two things: the first implied, touching his state; liable and subject to manifold evils and troubles: the second expressed and intended, touching the means of his preservation, and safety from the foresaid evils. The first Observation. For the first, mark here, that David makes account, that while he lives here on earth, he is liable, and subject to manifold evils, to sore and great troubles. Psal. 40.12. Innumerable evils have compassed me. Psal. 88.3 My soul is full of trou●les. The first Reason. The reason or ground hereof is fourfold. First, God's divine sovereignty, whereby he may do with his own what he will, and dispose of his dearest children, to endure both sorrow and great affliction: as he dealt with Job, Job 2.3, etc. wherein our Saviour instructeth Peter, John 21.18, 22. which it seems David had learned concerning himself, Psal. 39.9. I was dumb, I opened not my mouth, because thou didst it. The second Reason. 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉. Secondly, because of iniquity: for sin is truly that Ate, which brings all evil: affliction follows sinners. And here first, David's own sins make him liable to evils of affliction: he complains, that his iniquities took hold of him: and so he felt 2 Sam. 12.10. Likewise, the sins of the wicked in his time, might make it to go fare worse with him: as Eliah told Ahab, thou and thy father's house trouble Israel: 1 Kings 18.18. and so we may think it was in the time of the Church's complaint. Psal. 44.9, 10, 17, 18, 19 The third Reason. Thirdly, Satan's malice; who cast out floods against the woman, Revel. 12.15. and prevails with God, for leave to afflict holy Job, with grievous plagues, Job 1.10, 11. and 2.5. and let not David escape, 1 Chron. 21.1. Being indeed that roaring lion, going about seeking whom he may devour, 1 Pet. 5.8. The fourth Reason. Fourthly, the malice of the wicked, who are the seed of the serpent: who hated and persecuted David; not for his offence or sin: as, Psal. 59.3, 4. but because he followed goodness: as Psal. 38.19, 20. Like to Cain, who slew his brother Abel, because his own works were evil, and his brothers righteous, 1 John 3.12. whereof Christ forewarned his disciples, John 15.19, 20. This serves for instruction, and for admonition. The use for instruction. For instruction: see from David's resolution, what is the case and condition of all the godly: namely, to be subject to evils and troubles, which David made account of: for all the forenamed reasons fasten themselves upon the godly, now living, as they did upon David. And for plain testimony, see Psal. 34.19. Many are the afflictions of the righteous. 2 Tim. 3.12. All, that will live godly in Christ Jesus, shall suffer persecution. For instance, see jacob's confession of himself, Gen. 47.9. Few and evil have the days of my life been: and the state of Job, Chap. 1. and 2. And that of Moses. Psal. 90.15. Also Heb. 11.37, 38. they whom the world was not worthy of, were most miserable for outward things: as Paul confesseth for all the godly, 1 Cor. 15.19. The first Use for admonition. For admonition two ways: First, to the wicked of the world, to beware of self-deceit, in promising to themselves continued happiness, and freedom from evils, because for the present they enjoy peace and prosperity. That this is their thought and course, see Psal. 10.6. He hath said in his heart, I shall not be moved: for I shall never be in adversity: also, Isaiah 28.15. they say, We have made a Covenant with death, and with hell we are with agreement, when the overflowing scourge shall pass through, it shall not come unto us. But consider what God saith, Verse 18. Your covenant with death shall be disannulled, and your agreement with hell shall not stand, etc. Be not therefore deceived in a matter of such importance. Judgements unlooked for will light, and lie the more heavy. Consider how the Holy Ghost reasoneth, 1 Pet. 4.17, 18. Judgement must begin at the house of God: and, if it first begin at us, what shall the end be of them, that obey not the Gospel of God? And if the righteous scarcely be saved, where shall the ungodly and the sinner appear? So, Jer. 25.29. Lo I begin to bring evil on the City, that is called by my name, and should ye be utterly unpunished? Luk. 23.31. If they do these things in a green tree, what shall be done in the dry? Matth. 10.24, 25. The Disciple is not above his Master, nor the servant above his Lord— If they have called the Master of the house Beelzebub, how much more shall they call them of his household? The second Use for admonition. Secondly, to the godly to bethink themselves with David, that troubles may come, the days, in which they live, may be full of evils; and thereupon to prepare for it, and to glorify God under afflictions, if it please God to send them. For the satisfying of the heart, of every man's subjection to troubles, consider the forenamed reasons, from God's sovereignty, from sin, from the devil, and the wicked of the world, that are the instruments of Satan: whereto, if none can answer otherwise, then by acknowledgement of subjection, then will true wisdom say, it is best to prepare for it, that we may glorify God under the cross. The way of preparation is this: How to be prepared for afflictions. First, to make sure we be rightly in covenant with God: which is undoubted to the true professors of Gods holy religion, maintained amongst us, wherein we avouch the true God for our God, and he avoucheth us for his people: as Deut. 26.17, 18. with Deut. 29.10, 11, 12, 13. whereof Baptism is a true Sacramental sign and seal, as circumcision was to the Jews, Rom. 4.11. But he, that would be assured thereof, must make conscience to perform the vow of moral obedience, made in Baptism, of forsaking sin, believing in God, and walking in new obedience. Secondly, to get the grace of faith in Christ, whereby we rest, and rely upon him, for all the blessings of the covenant: This grace enables the just to live even in affliction, as Heb. 1.38. whereupon Paul said, he was able to do all things, through Christ, that strengthened him: as to want, and to abound, to be full, and to be empty. Philip. 4.11, 12. Thirdly, to redeem the time, by labouring to profit, according to the means of grace, afforded unto us. Eph. 5.16. Fourthly, to become merciful to those, that be in misery: so shall we lay up in store a good foundation, for mercy to ourselves, Psal. 41.1, etc. Matth. 5.7. Jam. 2.13. Then, when affliction is come, we must set faith a work, by looking at God's hand therein, as Christ teacheth Mat. 10.28, 29. which is the only ground of true patience: as Psal. 39.9. Also consider, what good it pleaseth God to to raise to his children by afflictions: as Psal. 94.12. Psal. 119.67, 71. add 2 Cor. 4.17, 18. The second Observation. The second thing to be noted here, is purposely intended That when God shall grant to David to dwell in his house, he doth assure himself of special safety, and protection in times of trouble: for that he means by hiding in his pavilion, and in the secret of his tabernacle, and setting up upon a rock, as we heard before: See, Psal. 61.3, 4, 6, 7. Thou hast been a shelter for me, and a strong tower from the enemy. I will abide in thy Tabernacle for ever: I will trust in the covert of thy wings— Thou wilt prolong the King's life: and his years as many generations. He shall abide before God for ever: O prepare mercy and truth which may preserve him. The Reason. The ground of this assurance was Gods own testimony, for the continuance of his presence in his Sanctuary, and for the exercise of his power and providence; for their safety, that be true members of his Church: See Psal. 46.5, 6, 7. God is in the midst of her, (i. e. his Church) she shall not be moved: God shall help her, and that right early. The heathen raged, the kingdoms were moved: he uttered his voice, the earth melted. The Lord of hosts is with us: the God of Jacob is our refuge. Psal. 48.3, 8, 12, 13, 14. God is known in her palaces for a refuge: As we have heard, so have we seen in the City of the Lord of hosts, in the City of our God, God will establish it for ever. Walk about Zion, and go round about her, tell the towers thereof— For this God is our God for ever and ever: he will be our guide even unto death. See Isa. 33.20, 21, 22. Look upon Zion the City of our solemnities: thine eyes shall see Jerusalem a quiet habitation, a Tabernacle that shall not be taken down, not one of the stakes thereof shall ever be removed; neither shall any of the cords thereof be broken. But there the glorious Lord will be unto us a place of broad rivers and streams— For the Lord is our Judge, the Lord is our Lawgiver, the Lord is our King, he will save us. Isa. 37.35. I will defend this City to save it, for mine own sake, and for my servant David's sake: that is, for my promise sake to David in Christ: as Psal. 132.11, 13, 14, 17. The Lord hath sworn in truth unto David, he will not turn from it: of the fruit of thy body will I set upon thy throne, etc. There will I make the horn of David to bud— Now David he continued a true member of God's house, being careful to keep in covenant with God, as he both professed in word, and testified by godly behaviour, upon which he grounds his assurance of God's especial protection. His profession of being in covenant, see Psal. 116.16. O Lord truly I am thy servant, I am thy servant. Psal. 23.1.4. The Lord is my shepherd, I shall not want— Though I walk through the valley of the shadow of death, I will fear none evil. His godly behaviour whereon he grounds his assurance of God's special protection, is threefold. First, he puts his trust and hope in God: as Psal. 21.7. For the King trusteth in the Lord: and thorough the mercy of the most high, he shall not be moved. Psal 11.1. In thee, O Lord, put I my trust: how say ye to my soul fly as a Bird to your mountain? Psal. 16.1. Preserve me, O God, for in thee do I put my trust. Psal. 86.2. O thou my God, save thy servant, that trusteth in thee. Secondly, he testified his trust in God by prayer. Psal. 7.1. O Lord my God, in thee do I put my trust: save me from all them, that persecute me, and deliver me. Psal. 116.3, 4. The sorrows of death compassed me, and the pains of hell got hold upon me: I found trouble, and sorrow. Then called I upon the name of the Lord: O Lord, I beseech thee deliver my soul. Thirdly, he made conscience of a godly and upright life, and thereon grounds his assurance of special protection: Psal 4.3. Know that the Lord hath set apart him that is godly, for himself: the Lord will hear, when I call upon him. Psal. 18.17, 20. He delivered me from my strong enemy— The Lord rewarded me according to my righteousness, &c, Vers. 21, 22, 23. For I have kept the ways of the Lord, and have not wickedly departed from my God. For all his judgements were before me: and I did not put away his statutes from me. I was also upright before him: and I kept myself from mine iniquity, etc. Psal. 41.2. Thou upholdest me in mine integrity, and settest me before thy face for ever. This serves for instruction, and for admonition, and for comfort. The use for instruction. For instruction: see here with David the true and right way of safery in time of trouble. Get to dwell in God's house, and then Gods special providence shall be over us: as the former testimonies do plentifully testify. But here a doubt a riseth, where we shall find this house, and how to get a place therein? Where to find God's house, and how to get a place therein. Answ. In the days of grace, and times of the new Testament, the Tabernacle of God is with men, and he dwells with them, they are his people, and God himself shall be with them, and be their God. Rev. 21.3. But is this common to all, as they are men, or is there some special work of God required in them, and among them, that be his house? Answ. John 6.44. No man can come to me, except the father, which hath sent me, draw him, that is, give him grace so to do from above. Vers. 65. It is not of him that willeth, nor of him that runneth, but of God that showeth mercy. Rom. 9.16. Those, that believe on his name, are born not of blood, nor of the will of the flesh, nor of the will of man, but of God. John 1.13. For it is God, which worketh in you both to will, and to do, of his good pleasure. Phil. 2.13. But what hath man then to do, sigh our conversion and regeneration is God's work? Answ. It is indeed God's work, yet in the use of outward means, which he gives to reasonable creatures, that therein they may wait for, and receive God's work of grace, in an holy calling: which, both amongst Jews and Gentiles, doth distinguish the elect from the reprobate: as Acts 2.39. Now this calling is in the Gospel preached, sanctified by prayer, 2. Thes. 13.14. and therein are men made God's house: Heb. 3.6. 1 Pet. 2.5. 1 Cor. 3.16. But may every man in the use of the Gospel preached, attain to this calling? Answ. For aught that either Minister or people do know to the contrary, every one may be called that lives under the Gospel; the fault is their own if they be not: as Christ saith, Light is come into the world, and men love darkness rather than light, because their deeds are evil. 1 John 3.19. For men undoubtedly do first rebel against the word, and refuse God's mercy offered in the means of grace, before that God withdraw his grace, or take away from them the use of the means. In regard whereof, Christ complains of the Jews, that, when he would have gathered them, they would not. Matth. 23.37. For, though the best employment and improvement of nature, be insufficient to get the true habit of grace, without the work of the spirit; as Rom. 9.16. yet sure it is, men are first wanting to themselves, in the use of means, before the blessing of the spirit be denied unto them. Their own hearts can tell them, they have failed in turning from sin, as Prov. 1.23. in hungering after grace, Isaiah 44.3. and in doing the good they know, Acts 5.32. The Use for admonition. For admonition: as we desire safety and shelter in time of trouble, so we must with David strive and endeavour after, a sure place in God's house, become true members of God's Church. The way is; First, to leave, and break off the course of all known sin; for that prevents society with God: as 2 Cor. 14.15, 16. and thereupon the exhortation is unto repentance, Chap. 7.1. Secondly, to labour for true faith in Christ, for that joins us unto Christ, to make us living stones, to be built up a spiritual house: as 1 Pet. 2.4, 5, 6, 7. for, Ephes. 3.17. Christ dwelleth in our hearts by faith. Thirdly, to walk in new obedience, performing every good duty, which the Lord requireth: as Isaiah 56.3, 4, 5, 6, 7. Let not the son of the stranger, that hath joined himself to the Lord, speak saying, the Lord hath utterly separated me from his people: neither let the Eunuch say, behold, I am a dry tree. For thus saith the Lord, unto the Eunuches, that keep my Sabbaths, and choose the things that please me, and take hold of my covenant: Even unto them will I give in mine house, and within my walls, a place and a name, better than of sons and daughters, etc. The Use for comfort. For comfort, this makes greatly to all true believers, in times of trouble: for certainly, they have right and title to this immunity of God's house. Indeed, outward peace, ease and plenty are but temporal blessings, and the promise thereof must be understood with the exception of the cross, so as God, for trial of grace, and correction for sin, may exercise them in afflictions: as he did Job, and David: yet this is their comfort therein. First, How the godly may comfort themselves in afflictions. that God will not fail them, nor forsake them, Heb. 13.5, 6. and therefore they may boldly say, The Lord is mine helper, I will not fear, what man shall do unto me: as Psal. 91.15. He shall call upon me, and I will answer him: I will deliver him in trouble, I will be with him, and honour him. Secondly, that God will cause their troubles to work for their good, as Rom. 8.28. Heb. 12.10. Thirdly, God will give an issue with the trial, that they may be able to bear it. 1 Cor. 10.13. Vers. 6. And now shall mine head be lifted up above mine enemies round about me: therefore will I offer in his Tabernacle sacrifices of joy, I will sing, yea, I will sing praises unto the Lord. The meaning of the words. IN the beginning of this Verse, the Prophet adds another reason, of his earnest desire to dwell in God's house, expressed, vers. 4. drawn from the benefit of honour and dignity, whereto God would now shortly advance him, and lift up his head, above his enemies round about him: whereupon he solemnly professeth, that he would glorify God, with the sacrifices of joy, and sing praises unto God. Here then we have two things to handle: First, David's prediction of his dignity and honour: secondly, his solemn profession of his thankful behaviour. The prediction of his honour is, in the first part of the verse, set out metaphorically, and comparatively, and amplified by the circumstance of time, when it shall be. Metaphorically thus, my head shall be lifted up: that is, I shall be advanced in dignity and honour, and so to cheerful and comfortable estate: for men dejected and humbled hang down the head, when therefore they are advanced and cheered, then are they said to have their head lifted up: as Gen. 40.17. Pharaoh shall lift up thine head, and restore thee to thy place. Jer. 52.31, 32. Evilmerodach the King of Babylon lifted up the head of Jehojakin King of Judah, and brought him forth out of prison, and kindly spoke unto him, and set his throne above the throne the Kings, that were with him in Babylon. Comparatively, he saith, his head shall be lifted up above his enemies round about him. And the time when it shall be is now, the time present, which makes it the more comfortable. As if he should have said, though I have been long and much dejected, yet now shall I be advanced and cheered, above mine enemies round about me. The first Observation. In this prediction of his honour and comfort, note these things. First, implied and taken for granted, respecting David's dangerous estate, He had enemies round about him. Psal. 3.1, 2. Lord, how are they increased that trouble me? many are they that rise up against me. Many there be, which say of my soul, there is no help for him in God. Psal. 69.4. They that hate me without a cause, are more than the hairs of mine head: they, that would destroy me, being mine enemies wrongfully are mighty. Psal. 118.10, 11, 12. All nations compassed me about— they compassed me about— like Bees— and Psal. 56.2. Mine enemies would daily swallow me up: for they be many that fight against me. The first Reason. The reason hereof is fourfold. First, in God disposing of David to be a type of Christ, even in his troubles and opposition in the world, For Chr. see Is. 53.10. wherewith God was pleased to have them exercised: as is plain, Psal. 2.1, etc. and Psal. 22.12, 16. Many Bulls have compassed me— dogs have compassed me: the assembly of the wicked have enclosed me: and Psal. 71.20. Thou hast showed me great and sore troubles. The second Reason. Secondly, in God's favour advancing him to dignity and honour. Psal. 4.2. Psal. 62.4. which was fully verified in Daniel, Dan. 6.3, 4. The third Reason. Thirdly, in David sometime provoking the Lord by his sin: as, 2 Sam. 12.9, 10, 11. wherefore hast thou despised the commandment of the Lord— therefore the sword shall never departed from thine house— I will raise up evil against thee out of thine house. See Psal. 3.1, 2. with 2 Sam. 15.13, etc. The fourth Reason. Fourthly, in David's enemies, that were the seed of the serpent, and hated him for his goodness. Psal. 37.19, 20. They that hate me wrongfully are multiplied. They also, that render evil for good, are mine adversaries, because I follow the thing that good is. This serves for instruction, admonition, and comfort. The use for instruction. For instruction: see in David the state of the godly; they are liable to be compassed about with enemies: for that which befell David, as the type, and Christ Jesus himself the truth, typified by David, may befall any servant of God in this world: as Christ reasoned. Luke 23.31. If they do these things in a green tree, what shall be done in the dry? Matth. 10.25. If they have called the Master of the house Beelzebub, how much more shall they call them of his household. The use for admonition. For admonition, to beware of rash judgement, as well against others, when they are compassed about with adversaries, as also against ourselves, when that evil doth befall us. Corrupt nature measures God's love by outward things: and therefore thinks with the wicked, that when troubles increase, God forsaketh. Psal. 71.12. But God's ways are not as man's ways, Isa. 55.8. As many as he loves, he rebukes and chastens, Rev. 3.19. whom the Lord loveth he chasteneth, and scourgeth every son whom he receiveth. And he useth the rods of men to correct his children: as, 2 Sam. 7.14. Psal. 89.31, 32. The Use for comfort. For comfort, this makes greatly in opposition by many and mighty in the world: for in David we may see, that no strange thing befalleth us, but such as appertaineth to man, and God will give the issue: as 1 Cor. 10.13. Let us say, the servant is not above his Lord. Matth, 10.24, 25. Consider, that if their opposition be for a good cause, we have great cause to rejoice: for we are made conformable to Christ; and have fellowship with him in afflictions. See 1 Pet. 4.12, 13. 2 Cor. 1.7. The thing here expressed by David is this, that God will now restore him to comfort, and advance him to honour. Where we may note two things. The second Observation. First, that David knew, that the time of comfort and honour was at hand: for he saith, Now shall my head be lifted up. The Reason. This he might do by special instinct, being a Prophet, for the spirit of God spoke in him, and by him. 2 Sam. 23.1, 2. It serves for instruction, and for admonition. The use for instruction. For instruction: see what God is able to do for his children, he can not only bestow joy and honour, but acquaint them with the particular time, when they shall receive it. So God revealed to Moses the delivery of Israel out of the bondage of Egypt, Exod. 3.7, 8. and chap. 11.1. The Use for admonition. For admonition, to labour to be followers of David, for upright hearts and obedient lives; as Psal. 18. in the title, he is styled the servant of the Lord; and verse 21. he saith, I have kept the ways of the Lord, I was upright also before him: and unto such it is that God reveals his secrets, Psal. 25.14. Prov. 3.32. The third observation. Secondly, here note the phrase in which David expresseth his assurance of honour and comfort: my head shall be lifted up, wherein he plainly makes himself a patiented, ascribing both honour and comfort unto God, Psal. 23.1. etc. The Lord is my shepherd, I shall not lack— He maketh me lie down in green pastures— he restoreth my soul, etc. to the end, Psal. 18.48. Thou liftest me up above those that rise up against me, verse 35. thy right hand hath holden me up, and thy gentleness hath made me great. See Psal. 121.1, 2. with 1 Sam. 18.23. The Reason. He knew God's calling would be the best shelter, against envy and opposition, from which high places are seldom free: as Jeremy in his calling doth comfort himself, Jer. 17.16. As for me, I have not hasted from being a pastor to follow thee. And so David comforts himself against Eliabs' reproach, for making offer to encounter with Goliath, 1 Sam. 17.29. The Use for reproof. This serves first, for the reproof of the ambitious, that by any sinister means will seek advancement: a common sin in all ages, and a great evil in our times, moving many to oppression, bribery, and sundry other ungodly courses. The Use for admonition. For admonition, to be followers of David, in receiving honour and dignity: walk uprightly in our places, till God advance us; be sure of his calling, before we stir, lest in time of trouble our consciences say unto us, How camest thou hither? See the danger of usurpation in the jewish exorcists, Acts 19.13, 16. Therefore will I offer in his Tabernacle, sacrifices of joy: I will sing, yea, I will sing praises unto the Lord. Here David professeth his thankful behaviour toward God, for the honour and comfort, which God would shortly vouchsafe unto him: and it stands in the cheerful performance, of such religious service, for thanksgiving, as God required at the hands of his people, when he bestowed his blessings upon them. Hereof he mentioneth these two: First, real sacrifices of joy, whereby he meaneth sacrifices of thanksgiving, over which the Priests sounded an alarm with their silver trumpets, Num. 10.10. called the joyful sound, Psal. 89.15. And this duty he amplifieth, by the circumstance of the place, where he would perform it, namely, in God's Tabernacle, the place appointed for that solemn part of God's service. Deut. 12.11, 12.13, 14. There shall be a place which the Lord your God shall choose, to cause his name to dwell there: thither shall ye bring all that I command you, your offerings and your sacrifices, etc. Secondly, singing praises unto God: which duty he promiseth with repetition or gemination, to testify his more certain resolution for the performance of it, saying, I will sing, yea, I will sing praises. In this profession of thankful behaviour, note two things: First, the duty he will perform: secondly, the place where. The fourth Observation. For the first, note. When David receiveth from God honour and comfort, then will he offer unto God sacrifices of thanksgiving, with joy and rejoicing: his sacrifices shall be sacrifices of joy, and when he offers them, he will sing praises unto God. The like he shown, at the fetching home of the Ark of the covenant towards the city of David, 1 Chron. 13.8. and 15.16. David spoke to the chief of the Levites, to appoint their brethren to be singers, with instruments of Music, Psalteries, and Harps, and Cymbals, sounding by lifting up the voice with joy. And upon his deliverance from the hand of Saul, and other enemies. Ps. 18.1, etc. Ps. 116.12, 13. The first Reason. The reasons hereof are great, as well in regard of God, and of himself, as also his brethren. In regard of God. First, because he commands it, Psal. 100.1. and obedience is acceptable, 1 Sam. 15.22. Psal. 69.30, 31. Secondly, it is for his glory. Psal. 50.23. who so offereth praise, glorifieth me. The second Reason. In respect of himself. First, it is pleasant and comely. Psal. 33.1. Psal. 147.1. Secondly, it is good and profitable: for them that honour God, will he honour: 1 Sam. 2.30. Hence the Samaritan Leper, returning to praise Christ for his cleansing, received an assurance of an heavenly and spiritual cleansing. Luke 17.15, 19 Thirdly, the omitting of it is dangerous, to provoke God's wrath, being at least a shameful neglect of God's mercy. See 2 Chr. 32.25, 26. The third Reason. In respect of others, to whom David desired to do good: Psel. 34.11. Psal. 51.13. His zeal for God's glory would provoke many: as, Psal. 34.2, 3. My soul shall make her boast in the Lord, the humble shall hear thereof, and be glad: O magnify the Lord with me, and let us exalt his name together. And, if his example could not move them, yet it would leave them without excuse, under the censure and punishment of ingratitude: as Jobs friends were, Job 42.7. For it is a dangeeous thing to neglect good example: as Jer. 22.15, 16, 17. Did not thy father eat and drink and do judgement and justice, and then it was well with him? But thine eyes and thine heart are not but for thy covetousness— Therefore thus saith the Lord, etc. This serves for instruction, reprehension, and admonition. The use for instruction. The instruction is, from David's example, to all God's people, to show them fitting behaviour towards God, when they receive blessings and benefits from him; namely, to be thankful unto God, in praises and songs and that with joyfulness and gladness. The Use for reproof. For reproof, it makes justly against all those, that are unthankful for God's blessings, and likewise dull and heavy hearted in God's praises. See Deut. 28.47, 48. Because thou servedst not the Lord thy God, with joyfulness and with gladness of hear, for the abundance of all things. Therefore shalt thou serve thine enemies, etc. with Deut. 32.6. Do ye thus requite the Lord, O foolish people and unwise? The Use for admonition. For admonition, that every child of God be a follower of David, both for the duty itself, and for the manner of performing it, with cheerfulness and gladness. Consider, that David studied the art of thankfulness, Psal. 116.12, 13. and that upon weighty grounds, respecting God, respecting himself and his brethren: all which we should meditate on, to stir us up to the cheerful performance of this duty of thankfulness. The fifth Observation. The second point to be observed in Davias' profession of thankful behaviour is, the circumstance of place, where he will offer his sacrifices: namely, in God's Tabernacle. David will offer his sacrifices in God's Tabernacle: so 2 Sam. 6.17. David set the Ark in his place, in the midst of the Tabernacle, that David had pitched for it: and David offered burnt offerings, and peace offerings before the Lord: meaning by the hands of the Priests, as, 1 Chron. 16.1. The first Reason. This he observed. First, that he might have acceptance before the Lord in this service: for, in observing this circumstance of place, he obeyed God's ordinance: Deut. 12.11, 12, 13, 14. and so had title to the favour of acceptance, as Is. 56.7. The second Reason. Secondly, David knew there was danger in transgressing God's ordinance: as 1 Chron. 15.13. The Lord our God made a breach upon us, for that we sought him not after the due order: Therefore doth he observe the place appointed by God. The Use for admonition. This should teach us to be followers of David, in respecting and observing God's ordinance for the place of his service. It is true, difference of place in respect of holiness, is now in the New Testament taken away; as, John 4.21, 23. and therefore Paul willeth, that men pray every where, lifting up holy hands unto God, without wrath or doubting. 1 Tim. 2.8. Yet, where Christ hath said, where two or three meet together in ny name, that is, by warrant from me, I am in the middle. Mat. 18.20. and go teach— I am with you to the end of the world. Matth. 28.20. therefore must we frequent diligently, and reverently use Church assemblies. Consider, 1 Cor. 11.22. despise ye the Church of God? That is, the place where God's people come together for his service. Vers. 7. Hear me, O Lord, when I cry with my voice, have mercy also upon me, and answer me. The meaning of the words. HEre David gins the second testification of his true affiance in God, by humble and earnest prayer, and supplication for sundry blessings: whereof the first is for mercy in audience, and answer to his earnest prayers, in this verse. Wherein (the words being plain) we may observe three things. First, what David prayed for: Secondly, in what manner: thirdly, his esteem of God's audience to his prayers. The first Observation. For the first, David prays for audience and answer to his prayers. Hear, O Lord, when I cry, and answer me. So Psal. 4.1. Hear me, when I call. Psal. 5.1, 2. Give ear to my words— harken to the voice of my cry. Psal. 28.1. Unto thee will I cry, O Lord, my rock, be not silent to me: lest, if thou be silent to me, I become like them that go down into the pit. Hear the voice of my supplications, when I cry unto thee. Psal. 61.1. Hear my cry, O God, attend unto my prayer: and Psal. 141.1. Qu. What needs this prayer for audience, seeing God hears every word that is spoken? Psal. 139.4. and it is his property to hear prayer. Psal. 65.2. whereto he hath bound himself by promise. Psal. 50.15. Matth. 7.7. Answ. The audience which David prayeth for, is not the bare art of hearing, in taking notice of that he said in prayer, for he knew well that would never be wanting in God towards man. But by hearing, he meaneth God's favourable act of audience, testified by gracious answers, as he saith, in thy faithfulness answer me. Psal. 143.1. The Reason. The reason, why David here prayeth for this gracious audience, is, because he knew, God did many times, for just causes, Why God doth sometimes deny to give gracious answers to the prayers of his servants. deny to give such gracious answers, even to the prayers of his servants. As first, when he would humble them, and correct them for their sins. Psal. 66.18. If I regard iniquity in my heart, the Lord will not hear me. John. 9.31. God heareth not sinners: For sin separates between God and us. Is. 59.2. makes God say, Though ye make many prayers, I will not hear. Isa. 1.15. So as his people complain, that God seems angry against their prayers, Ps. 80.4. Secondly, when he would stir them up to more zeal, and fervency in prayer, than yet they have showed: See his dealing with the woman of Canaan, coming to him for her daughter. Matth. 15.22, 23, etc. and with the father of the child possessed with a dumb and deaf devil. Mark 9.18. Thirdly, when he will exercise them under some affliction, either for recreation for sin, or for trial of grace, as, Psal. 22.1, 2. My God, my God, why hast thou forsaken me? O my God, I cry in the day time, but thou hearest not, and in the night, and am not silent. That was true, both in David the type, and in Jesus Christ the truth: yet herein that is verified, which Christ said to Paul, my grace is sufficient for thee. 2 Cor. 12.9. being as good, as direct audience in particular answer: for it makes them willing and able to bear the cross, which is a gracious hearing to the prayer of the afflicted. Heb. 5.7. This serves for instruction, and admonition. The use for instruction. For instruction: see, that the best of God's children may be denied audience, for a time, to their prayers: for that which befell David in the type, and Jesus Christ himself, as the truth may befall any other child of God: for the servant is not above the master. Matthew 10.24, 25. The first Use for admonition. For admonition, two ways. First, to beware of rash judgement, either against ourselves, or others, under this dealing of God, denying audience to our prayers. That it is a great trouble to God's children, see, Psal. 80.4. Psal. 22.1, 2. Isa. 49.14. That it opens the mouth of the wicked, see Psal. 71. 1●, 11. Matth. 27.42, 43. The second Use for admonition. Secondly, in this case, to consider the causes of this course of God's dealing, and take them in their order: begin with sin, to find it out, return into thine own heart, and turn unto the Lord: as 2 Chron. 6.37. be humble, and earnest in prayer to God, and then, though God, for his glory, may deny thee audience, in particular things, yet will he be sure to give thee something as good, that is, the strength of patience to bear the cross, and in the end a blessed issue. The second Observation. The second thing to be noted here is, the manner of David's praying: He cried with his voice: which notes great servency, great zeal, and earnestness. David was fervent and zealous in prayer unto God: he cried unto God with his voice, Psal. 5.2. Harken to the voice of my cry. Psal. 17.1. Attend unto my cry. Psal. 22.1, 2. Why art thou so fare from helping me, and from the words of my roaring. I cry in the day time. Psal. 142.1, 5. I cried unto the Lord with my voice, with my voice unto the LORD did I make my supplication. I cried unto thee, O Lord. The first Reason. The reasons hereof are great. First, prayer is a good thing; and zealous affection in a good thing is always good and commendable. Gal. 4.18. The second Reason. Secondly, zeal and fervency in prayer is very moving. St. James saith, the effectual fervent prayer of a righteous man availeth much. Jam. 5.16. And our Saviour Christ showeth it by two resemblances: one of the man, that came to borrow bread of his neighbour by night. Luk. 11.8. though he will not rise and give him, because he is his friend: yet because of his importunity, he will rise and give him as many as he needeth. The other of the poor widow, that prevailed with the unrighteous Judge. Luk. 18.1, 5. The third Reason. Thirdly, God's mercies, testified by gracious promises, and answerable performances, did notably encourage him to be zealous and earnest in prayer. For his promises, see Psal. 50.15. Call upon me in the day of trouble. Exod. 22, 23. If thou afflict them in any wise, and they cry at all unto me, I mill surely hear their cry. See for his observing Gods dealing, with those that cry, Psal. 22.4, 5. Psal. 107.6, 13, 19 Psal. 6, 8, 9 The fourth Reason. Fourthly, David's own necessities and distresses did urge and enforce him to be earnest in prayer. Psal. 18.4, 5, 6. The sorrows of death compassed me, and the floods of ungodly men made me afraid. The sorrows of hell compassed me about: the snares of death prevented me. In my distress, I called upon the Lord, and cried unto my God. This serves for instruction, admonition, and comfort. The use for instruction. For instruction, it acquaints us with a property in prayer, both profitable and commendable, which few regard, viz. to be zealous, and fervent, and earnest therein. They, that think the service of God stands in the work done; as Papists, and ignorant people do, who therefore tie themselves to a set number of prayers, so many times said over, cannot much regard this property. But we must know, that the true God, who cannot endure lukewarm professors of his true religion, threatening to spew such out of his mouth, Rev. 3.16. cannot like of cold or lukewarm prayers. Is not prayer a good work? Now Christ Jesus hath redeemed us to be zealous of good works. Tit. 2.14. therefore we must not be cold in prayer. The use for admonition. For admonition, this serves to move every child of God to labour for this property of zeal and fervency in prayer. For which end, How to get zeal and fervency in prayer. we must first consider God's commandment requiring it. Rom. 12.11, 12. Fervent in spirit, continuing instant in prayer. Luke 11.5, 6, 7, 8. Christ bids ask, seek, and knock, upon the resemblance of a man's importunity, prevailing with his friend, to rise out of bed, to lend him provision for a friend come unto him. Secondly, we must labour to get the spirit of God, which is the spirit of grace and supplication, and that will stir up mourning, with bitterness for sin: as Zech. 12.10. and most earnest desires of grace and mercy. Rom. 8.26. prayer is as incense, Psal. 141.2. the spirit is the fire, Job 32.18, 19 Jer. 20.9. Now this spirit is given in God's means, used in an holy manner, often showed, that is, in the word and prayer, used by those, that turn from sin, and desire grace, and walk in obedience to the word. Hereto we shall be well furthered, by the former reasons considered: whereto we may add, that natural and heathen men have sped well with God, when they have showed zeal in prayer: as Jonah 1.14. the mariners, and chap. 3.8. the Ninevites. The Use for comfort. For comfort, this makes greatly to those, whose wants and miseries cause them to cry in prayer: for, though God's delay may cause them to fear Gods forsaking, yet if they cry unto God, they are in no worse a case, than David was, nay then Christ Jesus was, Heb. 5.7. and shall the servant think it strange to be afflicted as his Master was? Consider, that he heard the rebellious Jews when they cried. Psal. 106.44. with Judg. 10.10, 16. The third Observation. Thirdly, here observe David's esteem of this work of God, when he gives audience, and answers to his prayers. David accounts it a great mercy of God to have hearing and audience to his prayers. Psal. 4.1. Have mercy upon me, and hear my prayer. Psal. 30.10. Hear, O Lord, and have mercy upon me. Psal. 86.3. Be merciful unto me, O God, for I cry unto thee daily: Psal. 116.1, 4, 5. I love the Lord, because he hath heard my voice: I called upon the name of the Lord, O Lord, I beseech thee deliver my soul: Gracious is the Lord, and righteous, yea our God is merciful. Psal. 119.58. I entreated thy favour with my whole heart. Be merciful unto me, according to thy word. The Reason. The reason is, because he, as every other man, stood gnilty of sin, which separates between God and us. Ps. 59.2. The use for instruction. This serves for instruction, and for admonition. For instruction: see, that David was not acquainted with the opinion of: Papists, that hold prayer a meritorious work: for then audience should be due, not of mercy, but of debt. The first Use for admonition. For admonition: First, to every one to get good title to God's mercy, that would have assurance of audience to their prayers. Now the way is to get into covenant with God, and to walk worthy of the Lord: Now we enter covenant by believing in Christ; for that is the condition that gives us title to audience, 1 Jer. 4.22, 23. And we walk worthy of the Lord, and of the favour of audience, when we eschew evil, and make conscience of sin: for see John 9.31. Psal. 66.18, 19 sin separates and hinders audience, Prov. 1.24, 28. Is. 1.15. Is. 59.1. whereto also we must adjoin conscience of well-doing; for, if we do well, we shall be accepted, Gen. 4.7. which though it extend not unto God, for the bettering of his estate, Psal. 16.3. yet it makes greatly for God's glory, John 15.8. and is good and profitable unto men, Tit. 3.8. For God doth promise audience to those, that set their love on God, and know him, that when they call he will answer, Psalm 91.14, 15. The second use for admonition. Secondly, those, that profess themselves to be in covenant with God, must observe God's mercy in audience to their prayers, as Psal. 85.7, 8. Show us thy mercy O Lord, and grant us thy salvation: I will hearken what God the Lord will say. So did David, Psal. 66.17, 19 and Psal. 116.1, 2. This we must do, that, if we find want of audience, we may appeal unto his mercy, and seek good title thereto: for gracious audience is of mercy. And if we find, that God hath heard us, that then we may return praise and thanks for God's mercy, and labour to walk worthy of it. We have received many deliverances in this and, upon our humiliation. in 88 from the invincible navy, in 605. from the devilish Powder treason, in 625. from the fearful plague of pestilence, besides out comfortable freedom from wars, in the common trouble of other nations; unthankfulness brings wrath, 2 Chron. 32.25. we must therefore remember David's practice, Psal. 116.12, 13, 14. And seeing, when we come to the Lords table, we pray for part in Christ's redemption, let us endeavour to walk worthy of it, and show the power of it, in leaving sin, and living godly; else we trust in lying words, if we think we are redeemed to do wickedly; as Jer. 7.8, 9, 10 and indeed are like the dog, and so returning to vomit and filth, 2 Pet. 2.22, 23. Verse 8. My heart said unto thee, when thou saidst, seek ye my face: thy face, O Lord, will I seek. 9 Hid not thy face fare from me, put not thy servant away in anger: Thou hast been my help, leave me not, neither forsake me, O God of my salvation. HEre David goes on in the matter of prayer, begun in the former verse; The meaning of the words. and first doth testify the truth and readiness of his heart, to answer and obey God's command, for the seeking of his face, verse 8. which being chief done in the duty and exercise of prayer, he doth verse 9 put up humble and earnest suit unto God, for favour and mercy in sundry petitions; and to move the Lord to grant them, he makes mention of God's former favour in this kind, saying, thou hast been my help, and shuts up these requests, with notable testimony of true affiance in God, calling him the God of his salvation. Here then, in these two verses, we have in general three things to handle: First, David's sincerity, in readiness to answer God's command unto his people, that they should seek his face, verse 8. Secondly, David's humble and earnest requests, for favour and mercy, answerable to his former profession. Thirdly, David's motives propounded to God, to move him to grant his requests verse 9 For the first: David's sincerity, and readiness to answer God's command, for the seeking of his face, is this: when thou sayest, seek ye my face, my heart said unto thee, thy face O Lord, will I seek. For the right understanding whereof we must know, that the speech, of sentence in the original to make it plain, requires the supply of some words, which are fitly added in our bibles: when thou saidst: as the like is elsewhere, 1 Kings 20.34. And I (said Ahab) will send thee away with this covenant. This defect of a word, to be supplied for plainness sake, hath caused great variety amongst translatours. The most ancient of them, as the Septuagint, Aquila, Simmachus, the vulgar latin, and Jerom (whom most of the Popish expositors, and the Douai bible do follow) translate the words to this effect: My face hath sought out, or sought thee out, making the word face the nominative case to the verb sought, whereas our translations make the word face the accusative case following the verb seek: and, though the words in the original will bear either of the former, yet seeing both were not intended by the holy ghost, for this reason do I prefer our own translations before the ancients, because in the bible, the words in the orginal are ordinarily translated by the foresaid ancients, as ours have done; as 2 Chron. 7.14. and not once, I take it, in all the bible, can their translation be warranted, by showing the like disposing of the words, where face is the nominative case to the verb seek. Now then, taking the words in that sense, which our translation gives, we have two things to note in them: first, God's commandment unto his people for the seeking of his face: Secondly, David's readiness to yield obedience thereto. For the first, the words translated, seek ye my face, are in the original, not a question, but a command; for the verb is of the imparative mood, which biddeth or commandeth to seek. The thing to besought is God's face, which here noteth, not simply God himself, as Exod. 20.3. Thou shalt have none other Gods before my face, that is, before me: but God's grace and favour in his Sanctuary, where God did manifest his presence, between the Cherubims, above the mercy seat, there communing with the high priest, of all things given in charge concerning the children of Israel, Exod. 25.22. towards which the people were to look, when they sought God's grace and favour: Mark then, The first Observation. God enjoined his people the Jews to seek his face, that is, his grace and favour in the sanctuary, looking toward the mercy seat, which is sometime called the face of God, because it was a testimony of his presence among his people, Psal. 105.4. Seek ye the Lord, and his strength (that is the ark of the covenant, Psal. 132.8.) seek his face continually (that is, the mercy seat, a blessed testimony of his gracious favour, and presence amongst his people), so 2 Chron. 7.14. The first Reason. The reason, or ground hereof is threefold: First and principally, by their seeking to the mercy seat the type he would lead them unto Christ, that was the truth and substance: for the material tabernacle and temple, was a part of the worldly sanctuary, and belonged to the ceremonial law, which led them unto Christ, Gal. 3.24. For the law had but the shadow of good things to come, Heb. 10.1. but the body is Christ, Col. 2.17. And that he was prefigured by the mercy seat is plain, Rom. 3.25. 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 God set forth Christ Jesus to be a propitiary, through faith in his blood: giving the same name to Christ Jesus, which the 72. give to the legal mercy seat: to which also St. John alludeth plainly, 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 1. John 2.2, 3. saying, Jesus Christ is the propitiation for our sins. The second Reason. Secondly, God herein had respect to his own glory: For this seeking of God's face, by frequenting the sanctuary, was not only an obedience to his ordinance, which was very pleasing unto him, 1 Sam. 15.22. but a singular testimony of affiance in God through Christ, which is the honour of the heart: whereupon he accounts the neglect of this duty by his people, when they go to false Gods, a forsaking of him, a thing whereat the very heavens should be astonished, Jer. 2.12, 13. nay more, he accounts in their very denial, that they have any such God amongst them, 2 Kings 1.6. Thirdly, God herein had special regard to his people's goods: for this is the right way to the fruition of his favours, which is better than life, Psal. 63.3. this makes the Church to say; cause thy face to shine, and we shall be saved. Psal. 80.3.7.19. Thus they were on●i●led to three great blessings: First, to s●●re direction in all important difficulties: as 2 Sam. 21.1. Secondly, to assured deliverances from all hurtful evils: as 2 Chron. 15.2.4. If you seek him, he will be found of you: and he that findeth him findeth life, Prov. 8.33. Thus Ezra found of God a good way, Ezra 8.21, 23. This serves for instruction, adnonition, and comfort. The use for instruction. For instruction; this charge and command of God unto his people to seek his face shows plainly, that the service of God is not a matter: arbitrary to God's people; that is, such a thing as they may at pleasure use, or refuse without danger of God's displeasure, and of his heavy judgements thereupon. Under the law, the jews were straight enjoined to seek to the place, which the Lord their God should chufe, to put his name there, and thither to come, and bring their offerings, sacrifices, vows, free will offerings, etc. and there eat, and rejoice before the Lord their God, Deut. 12.5, 6, 7, 12, 17, 18, 26, 27, 28. and the Lords solemn feasts must every male observe, and appear before the Lord with his gift or offering, Deutr. 16.16, 17. yea mark a severe threatening of judgement, for the neglect of God's worship, profitically delivered in legal terms, Zech. 14.17. It shall be, that who will not go up, of all the families of the earth, unto Jerusalem, to worship the King, the Lord of hosts, even upon them, shall be no more rain. And in plain ●ormes, the Apostle saith to all Christians, we reserving a Kingdom, which cannot be moved, let us have grace, whereby we way serve God acceptably, with reverence and godly s●an, Heb. 12.28. The first Use for admonition. For admonition: First, to inform ourselves rightly in the will of God to touching his worship for as under the law, so now we may not do what seems good in our own eyes 〈◊〉 12.8. but what the Lord appointeth; ●ls● God may say to us, as Christ did to the Jews, ye worship me in vain, teaching for doctrines the commandments of men, Mark 7.7. The true worshippers must worship the Father in spirit and truth, john 4.23. and that in and through the mediation of Christ, john 14.6. The second Use for admonition. Secondly, when we know how God will be sought in holy worship, than we must be careful, that we be such, as shall find him gracious, and favourable unto us: which estate requires two things of us: First, true repentance in regard of sins past; for, if we go on in a course of any known sin, we cannot have society with God; see Psal. 66.18. If I regard wickedness in my heart, God will not hear my Prayer. john 9.31. We know that God heareth not sinners. The throne of wickedness hath no fellowship with God, Psal. 94.20. 2 Cor. 6.14, 16. 1 John 1.6. therefore God denyeth favour to such, Ezek. 20.3, 4, Is. 1.15. Secondly, we must believe in God through Christ, according to the word of the Gospel, which is the word of the covenant of grace, which being received by faith, brings us truly into fellowship with God, 1 John 1.3, 4. See Heb. 11.6. The second Use for comfort. For comfort, this makes greatly to God's people, that make conscience of their ways in any distress: for God bids them seek his face, wherein he calls them to him, which is sufficient ground of comfort: as the people said to the blind man, whom Christ called, Mark 10.49. Be of good comfort, he calleth thee. For so David assureth his son Solomon, a little before his death, 1 Chron. 28.9. If thou seek him, he would be found of thee. And the true God is the chiefest good: so as, happy are the people that be so, yea blessed are the people, that have the Lord for their God. Psal. 144.15. These people have played the good Merchants, and found the pearl of price, better than all the world beside, Mat. 13.45, 46. They may therefore, on fare better grounds than Jacob did, say, I have enough, my son joseph is yet alive, Gen. 45.28. for Joseph died afterward; but the true God, whom the faithful have for their God, is the living God, and in jesus Christ their loving father, who will provide for them, not an earthly Goshen, as Joseph did for his father and his brethren, but an heavenly Canaan, even the Kingdom of heaven, as Christ said to his Disciples, Fear not little flock, it is your Father's good pleasure to give you the Kingdom, Luke 12.32. and Luke 22.29. I appoint unto you a Kingdom, as my Father hath appointed unto me. Worldly troubles may hasten us sooner to this happy estate, but they cannot deprive us of it, Rom. 8.35. Therefore, though the outward man perish, yet look up towards this Kingdom, and lift up thy heart to the living God, thy loving father in Christ, and the inner man shall be renewed daily, 2 Cor. 4.14, 15, 16. The second Observation. The second thing to be observed, is David's readiness, to yield sincere obedience to this condition of God, to seek his face: hereto David's heart answered, thy face O Lord will I seek. Mark here then, that David's heart was sincerely set on God's command to seek his face: that is, his grace and favour in the way he had ordained in his Sanctuary. Psal. 42.1, 2. As the hart panteth after the water brooks, so panteth my soul after thee, O Lord. My soul thirsteth for God, even for the living God, when shall I come and appear before God. Psal. 119.20.58. with my whole heart have I sought thee, I entreated thy favour with my whole heart. The word translated favour, is face in the original: 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 and the entreaty here meant is most earnest and importunate: for the word in the original signifieth to make sick or sorry. The reasons hereof are many and great. First, before this time, the Lord God had begun a good work in David's heart by his holy spirit, and revealed himself so far forth to David, that David's heart was enamoured with the Lord, as he notably expresseth, Psal. 84.1, 2. O how amiable are thy tabernacles— My soul longeth, yea, even fainteth for the Courts of the Lord: My heart and my flesh cryeth out for the living God; as Psal. 42, 1, 2. and Psal. 143.6, 7. I stretch forth my hands unto thee, etc. Hear me speedily, my spirit faileth; hid not thy face from me. And that this was the cause of David's seeking God's face and favour, see by the like, Cant, 5.4. My beloved put in his hand by the hole of the door, and my bowels were moved for him. The Churches beloved is Christ the Lord, his hand is his power, showed by the work of his spirit with the word, as Acts 11.19, 20, 21. when this comes, the bowels earn, as Peter did upon the view of Christ's glory. Matth. 17.2, 4. The second Reason. Secondly, David knew, that God had special regard unto the heart, above all the parts of man, as 1 Sam. 16.7. and therefore calls for the heart of every one, that is his child. Prov. 23.26. and would have this part begin all the actions of his service. See for hearing the word Deut. 32.46. Prov. 4.20, 21. and for prayer, Hos. 7.14. which when it is wanting, he rejecteth the service. Mat. 15.8, 9 The third Reason. Thirdly, the excellency of the blessing drew his heart unto it: for God's face is God's favour and loving kindness, wherein is life, Psal. 20.5. nay, it is better than life. Psal. 63.1, 2, 3. Thereupon, Psal. 4.6. Lord lift up the light of thy countenance upon us: and Psal. 80.3, 7, 19 cause the face to shine, and we shall be saved. The fourth Reason. Fourthly, he knew the seeking of the heart was true and sincere seeking, such as God required, Ps. 51.6. and such as he will speed, for this and all other blessings. Jer. 29.13. Ps. 24.3, etc. the way to joy, Ps. 106.3, 4. to blessedness, Ps. 119.2. This serves for instruction, admonition, and comfort. The first Use for instruction. For instruction two ways. First, it lets us plainly see the right ground and foundation of acceptable obedience unto God, in every duty which he requireth, namely, a good heart, an heart set for God's glory therein: for the heart is the fountain of the actions good or evil, as Christ teacheth, Mat. 12.34, 35. Out of the abundance of the heart the mouth speaketh. A good man, out of the good treasure of his heart, bringeth forth good things; and an evil man, out of the evil treasure of his heart, bringeth forth evil things: which we are the rather to note, because wicked men, though they cannot justify their actions, yet they will plead for the goodness of their heart, they have as good an heart to Godward as the best: which if it were true, Christ was deceived in the place aforenamed, either make the tree good and his fruit good; or the tree evil, and his fruit evil, as also Psal. 78.8, 36, 37. the old jews were a stubborn and rebellious generation, a generation that set not their heart aright— they scattered him with their mouth, and lied unto him with their tongue: for their heart was not right with him. The second Use for instruction. Secondly, see in David a double property of the godly: First, to make particular application to himself of general commands, given to all God's people: as Psal. 4●. 7. So did Joseph, Gen. 39.9. Secondly, that the heart of the godly is set to seek the face of God to be made partaker of his grace and favour in Christ. See David's speech to Zadok when he brought out the ark, 2 Sam. 15.25, 26. But most plain it is in that of Paul, Phil. 3.7, 8, 9 what things were gain to me, those I counted loss for Christ, etc. The first Use for admonition. For admonition two ways. First, to get such an heart, as doth mind the commandments of God; and doth undertake for obedience thereto: so did david's. This indeed none hath by nature: for every imagination of the thoughts of man's heart, is evil continually. Gen. 6.5. meaning so long as the heart remains natural unsa●●ctified. Therefore they, that would have a good heart like David, must wait upon God in the use of means, ordained by him for the bettering of man's heart. That it is God's work is plain, Ezek. 36.25, 26. I will take away your stony heart, and give you an heart of flesh: and therefore is regeneration called a new creation, 2 Cor. 5.17. which is a work proper to God. Yet God is pleased to do it in the use of means, enjoined to men; which when we use in obedience to God, we have title to his blessing. Now the means to get a good heart is, to be exercised much in the word and prayer: for in these ordinances in the spirit given, which renews the soul: as for the word is plain, Acts 10.44. Gal. 3.2. and for prayer, Luke 11.13. Now the obedien●● manner of using the foresaid means is, first, to break of the course of sin, Prov. 1.23. for reigning sin and saving grace never dwell together, 1 John 5.6: Secondly, hunger and thirst after grace and mercy, Is. 55.1 and Is. 44.3. Revel. 21.6. Thirdly, in the way of obedience unto that we know, Acts 5.32. wait upon God in the foresaid means, as the impotent people did at the pool of Bethesda, john 5.2; 3, 4. for they that wait upon the Lord shall renew their strength, Is. 40.31. The second use for admonition. Secondly, learn of David to set the heart on work on every action we perform to God, yea let it begin the work. This was David's care, as Psal. 57.7. My heart is fixed (or prepared) O God, my hedrt is fixed. Consider the reasons before named. The Use for comfort. For comfort, this makes greatly to the upright hearted, when they are not able to express in words, what they conceive, or to perform for God's glory, what they desire. Let them here observe, that there is sweet intercourse between the Lord and an upright heart, he knows the meaning of the sighs and groans thereof, Rom. 8.26. The heart can speak to God effectually without the help of the tongue, as, Psal. 25.1. Nehem. 2.4. and the heart can answer God's command, as in this place. Verse 9 Hid not thy face fare from me, put not thy servant away in anger: thou hast been my help, leave me not, neither forsake me, & God of my salvation. The meaning of the words. HEre David, according to his holy profession in the former verse, makes humble and earnest suit unto God, that he may not be denied, nor deprived of the comfort of God's favour, and the light of his countenance. This suit he puts up in variety of phrase; for the greater evidence of unfeigned desire, and that also by couples, as Christ sent forth his Disciples for their mutual strengthening, and further barketh each couple with a strong ●cuson. The first doubled suit is this, Hid not thy face fare from me, put not away thy servant in anger. The reasons propounded to strengthen them are two: the first employed in the title servant: the second expressed, drawn from former experience of God's goodness, thou hast been mine helper. The second couple or doubled request is this, leave me not, neither forsake me: and the reason backing them, is drawn from David's title to God by covenant: thus plainly expressed, O God of my salvation. The things then, which we have here to handle, are David's requests, and David's reasons to enforce the same. His requests are deprecatory against evils he feared, and in part felt: as the hiding of God's face, putting away in anger, Gods leaving and forsaking, which all aiming at one thing, even David's feeling and fruition of God's favour, we may in them all well observe; The first Observation. That David prayed earnestly, that he might not be deprived of God's grace and favour, nor want the light of God's countenance to shine upon him. Psal. 13.1. How long wilt thou forget me, O Lord, for ever? How long wilt thou hid thy face from me? The first Reason. The reasons hereof are weighty: First, the surpassing worth and excellency of God's special favour, whereof he would not be deprived: in it is life. Psal. 30.5. it is better than life. Psal. 63.3. now all that a man hath, will he give for his life. Job 2.4. The second Reason. Secondly, he knew the displeasure of God was a most heavy and grievous thing, which no creature is able to bear. Psal. 76.7. Thou, even thou, art to be feared: and who may stand in thy sight, when once thou art angry? See Deut. 32.41, 42. If I whet my glittering sword, etc. Vengeance is his, and he will recompense. Solomon saith, the wrath of a King is as messengers of death. Prov. 16.14. what then is the anger of God? The third Reason. Thirdly, David knew his own guilt of sin: both original, Psal. 51.5. and actual, Psal. 51.3, 4. and so must needs conceive that God in justice might hid his face from him, be angry with him, leave him, and forsake him: as he saith, Psal. 130.3. If thou Lord, shouldest mark iniquities, O Lord, who shall stand? The fourth Reason. Fourthly, he was not ignorant of God's sovereignty over all, whereby he may, even for trial of grace, hid his face, and seem angry with his dearest servants. For who was better than Job? None in his time was like him in all the earth, an upright man, fearing God, and eschewing evil, Job. 1.8. yet who endured sorer afflictions? so as he complaineth, that God hide his face, and held him for his enemy, that he writ bitter things against him, and made him to possess the sins of his youth. Job 13.24, 26. yea God himself confesseth, that Satan moved him to destroy Job without a cause, Job 2.3. This serves for instruction, and for admonition. The first Use for instruction. For instruction 3. ways. First, see in David, what the godly do think of the want of God's favour, surely, that it is a most grievous and bitter thing; as if a father should put away his child in anger, leave him and forsake him. This David manifested in his speech to Zadok, when he brought out the ark of God to carry with them: Carry back (saith he) the ark of God into the city, if I shall find favour in the eyes of the Lord, he will bring me again, and show me both it and his habitation. But if he say, I have no delight in thee, behold, here I am, let him do to me, as seemeth good unto him. 2 Sam. 15.25, 26. This is the rather to be marked, because the hearts of natural men are not affected with the least sorrow, for the hiding of God's face: if they may enjoy temporal blessings, wherein their natural hearts do take delight, they desire no more, being of saul's mind, who when Samuel had told him God had cast him away, yet desired to be honoured before the people, 1 Sam. 15.23.30. he fought for popular honour, but makes no entreaty for God's favour. And indeed, how should natural men do otherwise? The favour of God in Christ is a spiritual blessing, and the want thereof (expressed by the hiding of God's face) a spiritual judgement. These are things unknown, without the work of the spirit: as 1 Cor. 21.14. and so no marvel if the judgement be not feared, where the contrary blessing is not discerned, nor desired. The second Use for instruction. Secondly, see here, that the true child of God may, for a time, want the feeling of God's special favour, and remain under the sense of God's displeasure, as left and forsaken of God. See it plain in David, Psal. 38.1, 2, etc. Psal. 77.7, 8, 9, 10, in the complaint of the Church. Psal. 44.23, 24. Arise, cast us not off for ever, wherefore hidest thou thy face, and forgettest our affliction and oppression: and Lament. 3.1. to 19 I am the man that hath seen affliction, by the rod of his wrath: He hath led me, and brought me into darkness, etc. and vers. 43, 44. Thou hast covered with anger, and persecuted us: thou hast covered thyself with a cloud, that our prayers should not pass through. And Jobs complaint of this estate, is as plain as any, Job 13.24, 26. Nay more, did not our blessed Saviour, in the sense of his manhood, complain hereof? Matth. 7.46. Now if God do so with the green tree, what shall be done in the dry? Luke 23.31. yet remember, this distress is but for a time, Psal. 30.5. Isa. 54.7, 8. The third Use for instruction. Thirdly, here see, that prayer is a blessed and sanctified means, wherein the child of God may comfortably wait for the blessing of God's favour, in the want thereof, and for the removing of his anger under the signs thereof. See the promise of God himself in this case, Psal. 50.15. Call upon me in the day of trouble, I will deliver thee, and thou shalt glorify me. 2 Chron. 7.13, 14. If I shut heaven, that there be no rain, etc.— If my people do humble themselves, and pray, and seek my face, I will hear from heaven, and will forgive their sins, and will heal their land. The first Use for admonition. For admonition, it serves two way: First, that we examine ourselves, how our hearts esteem of the want of feeling Gods special love, and favour in Christ. If we judge it as David did, a grievous thing and better, we then have undoubtedly some work of the spirit, a● least in legal compunction, breaking up the fallow ground of the heart, and so preparing it for the seed of grace as Acts 2.37, 38. But if we slight it over without trouble or sorrow, as the jovial fellows of the world do, who delight in doing evil, and sport themselves in the frowardness of the wicked: as, Prov. 2.14. then certainly our case is woeful, we are not so near the state of grace, as were Cain and Judas, who were touched with legal remorse, upon the conscience of their heinous sins: as we may see, Gen. 4.13, 14. Mat. 27.3. The second Use for admonition. Secondly, God's children may hence learn not to be dismayed, for the temporary hiding of God's face, or sustaining of his anger: for nothing herein befalls them, but that which appertains to man, even to God's dear children, 1 Cor. 10.13. As we may see in Jod, David, Ethan the Ezrahite, Ps. 88.1, 2, etc. How Gods children must behave themselves, when he hides his face from them. Herein let us follow their godly practice, which was this: First, to consider their ways: Psal. 119.59. that so they might find out their sins, that bring the foresaid evils. Secondly, with sorrow and grief of heart, to confess against themselves: Psal. 32.4, 5. Job 42.6. Thirdly, to cry earnestly for mercy, as for life and death, Psal. 51.1, 2. Psal. 143.1, 2. Fourthly, walk in new obedience: Psal. 119.8, 16. I will keep thy statutes, O forsake me not utterly. I have sworn and will perform it, that I will keep thy righteous judgements. Lastly, in the use of God's ordinances, the word and prayer, to wait for comfort: as, Psal. 42.5.11. Psal. 43.5. Read, hear, and meditate on God's word: as, Psal. 119.13, etc. yea also watch, and wait in prayer, Col. 4.2. and if the fear be great, humble thy soul with fasting: as, Psal. 35.13. Limit not the holy one of Israel, for time or measure of any blessing, as the carnal Israelites did, Psal. 78.41. but with Job wait all our life long, Job 14.14. Say with the Church, Mich. 7.7, 8, 9 I will look unto the Lord, I will wait for the God of my salvation, my God will hear me— When I fall, I shall rise, when I sit in darkness, the Lord shall be a light unto me. I will bear the indignation of the Lord, because I have sinned against him, until he plead my cause, and execute judgement for me: He will bring me forth to the light, and I shall behold his righteousness. The reasons propounded by David, to move God to vouchsafe his favour, and not hid his face, etc. are three? The first is implied in the title servant, wherewith David styles himself in the second branch of this petition: put not thy servant away in anger. Where, in David's judgement this is plain, The second Observation. That to be God's servant, is a good ground, and step towards the attainment of God's favour: it is that which gives title to mercy, in time of trouble inward or outward: Psal. 31.15, 16. Deliver me from the hand of mine enemies— make thy face to shine upon thy servant, save me for thy mercy's sake. Psal. 69.17. Hid not thy face from thy servant, for I am in trouble. Psal. 86.4. Rejoice the soul of thy servant. Isa. 65.13, 14. Thus saith the Lord God. Behold my servants shall eat, but ye shall be hungry: Behold, my servants shall drink, but ye shall be thirsty: Behold, my servants shall rejoice, but ye shall be ashamed: Behold, my servants shall sing for joy of heart, but ye shall cry for sorrow of heart. The Reason. The reason is plain: Every true servant of God is certainly in covenant with God, by an holy calling, 1 Cor. 7.22. He that is called in the Lord, being a servant, is the Lords freeman: likewise also he, that is called being free, is Christ's servant: so that whether he be bond or free, by his holy calling he belongs to God. Now being thus in covenant with God, he is entitled to all God's blessings in Christ, and so to the fruition of God's favour. Psal. 89.4, 20, 21, 24. I have made a covenant with my chosen, I have sworn unto David my servant— I have found David my servant, with my holy oil have I anointed him— with whom my hand also shall be established— my faithfulness and my mercy shall be with him— my mercy will I keep with him for ever, and my covenant shall stand fast with him. This serves for instruction, and for admonition. The first Use for instruction For instruction, two ways. First, that it is a blessed, and happy thing, to be Gods true servant. Consider what the Queen of Sheba said of Solomon's servants, 1 Kings 10.8. Happy are these thy servants, etc. Now Christ Jesus is greater than Solomon. Matth. 12.42. and so a better Master. Good earthly Masters, will honour good servants: as Pro. 27.18. He that waiteth on his Master shall be honoured. Prov. 17.2. A wise servant shall have a portion, or inheritance, among the brethren. But how ever some earthly Masters may be Nabals, and Laban's, yet God will not be so. John 12, 26 Where I am, there shall also my servant be. If any man serve me, him will my father honour. See Luke 12.37. The watchful servants are blessed, their Master will make them to sit down to meat, and will come forth and serve them: as, Matth. 25.21, 23. Well done good and faithful servant, thou hast been faithful in a few things, I will make thee ruler over many things, enter into the joy of the Lord. The second Use for instruction. Secondly, here see the great error of natural men, that judge it a vain thing to serve God: as Mal. 3.14. Job 21.15. which, to be the common thought of most men, their behaviour doth plainly bewray: for mark their carriage, for diligence in God's service on the Lord's day, compared with the pains, and pleasure also, they take about worldly comodities in the week day: their behaviour saith aloud, that their heart thinks God's service is a vain thing, else they would take more pains and pleasure therein: undoubtedly they do not conceive of, nor believe the testimony of God, touching the prosperity of his servants: for God taketh pleasure therein, Ps. 35.27. else he would never undertake for their direction, in the way they ought to walk, for their provision, for all needful blessings, for their protection, from all hurtful evils, and for their remuneration, both here and for ever, as the Scripture saith he doth. The first Use for admonition. For admonition, it serves first, to the wicked, to beware of wronging Gods servants, and to refrain from that course: See Acts 5.38, 39 Gamaliels' counsel to the rulers of the Jews, about the Apostles, and his reason, lest they be found even to fight against God: as Christ said to Saul, Act. 9.4, 5. why persecutest thou me, etc. see Numb. 12.8. wherefore then were ye not afraid to speak against my servant Moses? and Ps. 105.14, 15. Zech. 2.8. And if ever they desire the privileges of God's servants, they must labour to get into covenant with God, doing as Saul did. Acts 9.5, 6. First, desire to know Christ, than subject themselves to his holy will, and wait in prayer for grace and mercy. See Acts 9.9, 11. The second Use for admonition. Secondly, God's children, that have entered covenant with God, must be careful to show themselves God's servants: for profession without practice is nothing but hypocrisy, making us like the Church of Sardis, who had a name to be alive, The properties of good servants. but was dead, Rev. 3.1. Therefore we must get the certain and infallible properties of good servants, which are partly inward, and partly outward. The inward are good affections, which are specially three. First, fear and reverence, Mal. 1.6. Psal. 2.11. Secordly, conscionable obedience to his revealed will. Reason from Eph. 6.5, 6, 7. and from the Centurion's confession Matth. 8.9. as from the less to the greater. Without this, none are acknowledged for servants, Luke 6.46. This must be seen, both in eschewing evil, and doing good: as God saith of his servant Job, Job. 1.8, 9 yea, we must show our well-doing, in improving our Master's talents, Matth. 25.23, 25. in fight for him and for the faith, John 18.36. Judas 3. in waiting for his coming, Luke 12.36. And in all these, we must be servants in ordinary, not only retainers that serve God by fits. Thirdly, we must patiently suffer his corrections, Heb. 12.9, 10. Reason from 1 Pet. 2.18, etc. as from the less to the greater. Fourthly, we must praise God for his mercy, Psal. 134.1. Psal. 50.23. Psal. 119.175. The second reason, which David useth to move the Lord not to hid his face, etc. is plainly expressed, drawn from his own experience of God's former mercies, in times of trouble, saying: Thou hast been my help, that is, when as heretofore I have been in distress and danger, thou hast helped me, and therein shown thy favour toward me. Now hereupon, saith David: knowing thee to be unchangeable, I appeal unto thee, for like mercy, that I have formerly felt. In this reason we have two things to note. First, the thing confessed by David, simply considered by itself: Secondly, with reference to the end, for which David here propounds it. For the first, the thing confessed by David, simply considered, is this. The third observation. That God was David's helper, and so had been, Psal. 54.4. Behold, God is mine helper. Psal. 3.3. Thou Lord art a shield for me: my glory, and the lifter up of my head: Psal. 30.10. Hear Lord, and have mercy upon me, Lord be thou mine helper. The first Reason. The reason hereof is threefold. First, God's free grace and mercy, receiving David into covenant, and therein undertaking to become his helper and deliverer. Psal. 89.3.21, 22. I have made a covenant with my chosen, I have sworn unto David my servant— with whom my hand shall be established— the enemy shall not exact upon him, etc. And this is answerable to that, which God saith to his people in general, Psal. 50.5.15. The second Reason. Secondly, David put his trust in God, whereby he was entitled to Gods help in trouble. Psal. 28.7. The Lord is my strength, and my shield, mine heart trusted in him, and I am helped: for indeed to such God becomes an helper. Psal. 37.39, 40. Psal. 33.18, 19 The third Reason. Thirdly, David walked before God in conscionable obedience, which gave him title to this blessing, to have the Lord to be his helper. Psal. 18.16, 17, 18. He sent from above, he took me, he drew me out of many waters. He delivered me from my strong enemy, and from them which hated me— they prevented me in the day of my calamity: but the Lord was my stay, etc.— ●ers. 21. For I have kept the ways of the Lord, etc. which was answerable to God's general promise, Deut. 28.1, 2, 7 and Psal. 81.13, 14, 15, 16. This serves for instruction, and for admonition. The use for instruction. For instruction, in that, which David professeth, we may see a notable privilege of the godly, who be in covenant with God, do love and fear God, and trust in him, and testify the same by conscionable obedience, these have this prerogative, that the true God, is their helper: which, to be a great blessing, is plainly affirmed, with very significant illustration. Psal. 146.3, 4, 5. for Princes are potent earthly helpers, but vain is their help without the Lord: for their breath is in their nostrils, but the God of Jacob is the living God, who doth neither slumber nor sleep, Ps. 121.1, 2, 3, etc. and so is the best helper, as we may see at large, Psal. 91. throughout, especially, vers. 9.14, 15. whence he is by way of excellence, styled the deliverer, Rom. 11.26. because, as Nabuchadnezzar said, none can deliver as he doth, Dan. 3.28, 29. which is plain also by daniel's delivery from the Lion's den, Dan. 6. which made Paul to say, though we be compassed about on every side, yet we are not in a straight, etc. 2 Cor. 4.8. for the way of help is never shut to the prayer of faith, Psal. 50.15. Nay, man's extremity is God's opportunity; and therefore hath. God lessened outward means, for the plainer evidence of his own power, Judg. 7.4. The first use for admonition. For admonition, it serves two ways. First, to labour diligently, to get into ourselves the grounds of this prerogative, in having the true God for our helper, as David had. The way hereto we may see in David: First, get truly and rightly into covenant with God, and rest not in the outward title of profession, having only the outward seals thereof: for so far went the foolish Virgins, Matth. 25.2, 3. and Judas, and Simon Magus: but as Paul said of the Jews, Rom. 2.28, 29. their outward circumcision did not make them such, no more doth our outward baptism, as 1 Pet. 3.21. Therefore we must get the engrafting grace of true faith, which purifies the heart, Acts 15.7. wherein stands true inward baptism: for where God establisheth the covenant of grace, he writes the law in the inward parts, Heb. 8.10, 12. Then professing this estate, of being in covenant with God, get the inward saving graces of love and fear, and from them bring forth the fruits of new obedience, as David did, and the prerogative of having God for our helper, shall be assured unto us, for he hath said, I will not fail thee, nor forsake thee. Heb. 13.5. The second Use for admonition. Secondly, to watch carefully and constantly against that thing, which will deprive us of this privilege, and that is sin: for it is a work of darkness, wherewith God will have no society. Psal. 94.20. 1 John 1.6. It separates between God and us. Isa. 59.2. Whereupon the Lord said to his own people the Jews, he would deliver them no more out of the hands of their enemies. Judg. 10.13, 14. Therefore with David, we must hid God's sayings in our hearts, that we may not sin against him, Psal. 119.11. and so strive to keep ourselves from our iniquity. Ps. 18.23. Secondly, consider this prerogative professed by David, in having God for his helper, with reference to the end, for which he doth here mention it, which is, to move the Lord not to hid his face from him, etc. because formerly he hath showed himself gracious and favourable towards him: and therein this is plain. The fourth Observation. That David makes his own experience of God's help, in former evils, a ground of prayer, for present favour, in his renewed troubles. When David was in the wilderness of Judah, flying from saul's persecution, Psal. 63. the title; in the 7. verse he pleadeth thus for mercy; Because thou hast been my help, therefore under the shadow of thy wings will I rejoice. Psal. 77.2, 5. In the day of my trouble I sought the Lord— I considered the days of old. Psal 89.49. Lord where are thy former loving kindnesses. Psal. 71.4, 5, 6. Deliver me, O Lord, out of the hand of the wicked— for thou art my hope, O Lord God, thou art my trust, even from my youth: by thee I have been holden up from the womb. Vers. 17, 18. O God, thou hast taught me from my youth. Now also, when I am old, and gray-headed, O God, forsake me not. The reason hereof is plain: David knew, the true God was unchangeable, and immutable, The Reason. not only in his essence, but also in his love, favour, and mercy towards his elect, who are his redeemed, in and by Christ Jesus, with whom his covenant of grace is everlasting, so as he will never turn away from them to do them good. Jer. 32.40. Whereupon he saith, I am the Lord, and I change not, and ye sons of Jacob are not confounded. Mal. 3.6. For as much as he loved his own which were in the world, to the end he loved them. John 13.1. For though he repent of temporal gifts and blessings, as of making of Saul King; 1 Sam. 15.11. yet his gifts and calling (which concern salvation in Christ) are without repentance. Now David's holy calling, entituling him to this covenant, he might plead, for the renewing of God's favour in present troubles, upon the sense and feeling thereof in former times. This serves for instruction, and for admonition. The use for instruction. For instruction: learn here in David one notable way of comfort in time of trouble: to wit, search and try, whether God hath been thine helper, from under former evils, for than thou mayst with David, plead for present help and comfort: so doth the Church in their renewed troubles, after their return from the captivity of Babylon. Psal. 85.1, etc. Lord, thou hast been favourable to thy land, thou hast brought back the captivity of Jacob, thou hast forgiven the iniquity of thy people— wilt thou not revive us again— show us thy mercy, O Lord, and grant us thy salvation. So Ps. 44.1, 9, 23. We have heard with our ears, our fathers have declared unto us, what work thou didst in their days, in the times of old— But thou hast cast us off, and puttest us to shame— Awake, why sleepest thou, O Lord, arise, cast us not off for ever, etc. Isa. 51.9, 10, 11. Awake, awake, put on strength, O arm of the Lord— Art thou not it, which hath dried the Sea, the waters of the great deep— Therefore the redeemed of the Lord shall return, etc.— and Isa. 63.11, 12, 13, 14. The Use for admonition. For admonition, this serves notably for every child of God, in time of trouble: become a follower of David, in observing Gods former mercy in helping us, and so we shall be encouraged, in renewed evils. Did not David thus animate himself to fight with Goliath? 1 Sam. 17.34. and St. Paul did so encourage himself against troubles, 2 Tim. 4.16, 17, 18. At my first answer no man stood with me; but all men forsook me— notwithstanding the Lord stood with me, and strengthened me— and I was delivered out of the mouth of the lion. And the Lord shall deliver me from every evil work— Now not true child of God can want experience of former help, when he may strongly reason for his comfort, from the greater to the less, as David did. Psal. 56.13. Thou hast delivered my soul from death: wilt thou not deliver my feet from falling? So may the true child of God say, thou, by thy holy calling to the faith, hast delivered me from the power of darkness, in the bondage of sin and Satan, as Col. 1.13. and wilt thou not deliver me from this or that carnal evil? If God spared not his own son, but gave him for us, how shall he not with him him give us all things? Rom. 8.32. Indeed the signs of God's favour may be hid sometimes from God's dearest servants, as Psal. 77.7, 8, 9 Will the Lord cast off for ever, etc. But we must then consider the cause, which is either correction for sin, or trial of grace, in which the way to comfort, is to repent of sin, and to labour for patience, remembering that God doth help, not only when he gives deliverance out of evil, but even when he gives strength of grace to bear it: as 2 Cor. 12.8, 9 Heb. 5.7. The third thing propounded by David, to move the Lord, not to hid his face from him, nor forsake him, is David's title to the blessing of salvation from God, by virtue of the covenant, wherein he stood with God, even for this blessing, which he thus expresseth. O God of my salvation: where by salvation he meaneth the great salvation, which is eternal life by Jesus Christ, Heb. 2.3. and with it temporal preservation in this world, therefore do not hid thy face, do not forsake me. The fifth Observation. In this reason we have two things to note. First, the thing professed by David: secondly, the end for which he mentioneth it. For the first, the thing professed by David is his particular and personal claim, unto salvation from God for himself, O God of my salvation: thou art unto me the God of salvation, upon thee I rely, both for life eternal in heaven, and temporal preservation here on earth. Psal. 18.2. The Lord is my rock, and my fortress, and my deliverer— the horn, that is, the strength of my salvation. Psal. 25.5. Thou art the bed of my salvation. Psal. 51.14. Deliver me from blood guiltiness, O God, thou God of my salvation. Psal. 62.6, 7. He only is my rock, and my salvation— In God is my salvation, and my glory. The first Reason. The true reason hereof is. First, God's mere grace and favour in Christ, freely accepting of David into covenant with himself, whereby he becomes the God of salvations unto him, as the Church calleth God. Psal. 68.20. See Psal. 89.3, 21, 36. I have made a covenant with my chosen, I have sworn unto David my servant— with whom my hand shall be established— He shall cry unto me, thou art my father, my God, and the rock of my salvation. And hereupon David saith, I am thine, save me. Psal. 1●9. 94. The second Reason. Secondly, with the favour of acceptance into covenant, God vouchsafed to work in David's heart such inward graces, as did maintain and continue unto David sure title to God's salvation: as first, trust and affiance in God. Psal. 86.2. Save thy servant, that trusteth in thee. Psal. 25.2. O my God, I trust in thee. Secondly, love unfeigned, whereby his heart did cleave to God. Psal. 18.1, 2. I will love thee, O Lord my strength. The Lord is my rock. Thirdly, David did fear God, and reverence him in his heart, Psal. 119. 12●. My flesh trembleth for fear of thee, I am afraid of thy judgements. Now he will fulfil the desire of them that fear him: he will hear their cry, and save them. This serves for instruction, and for admonition, and for comfort. The Use for instruction. For instruction, see that it is a right and privilege of them, that be truly Godly, by particular and special faith. to apply God's blessings of the covenant to themselves: so David did ordinarily, and Paul, Gal. ●. 20. I am crucified with Christ, nevertheless I live, yet not I, but Christ liveth in me, and the life which I now live in the flesh, I live by the faith of the Son of God, who loved me, and gave himself for me. 2 Tim. 1.12. I know whom I have believed, and I am persuaded, that he is able to keep that, which I have committed unto him against that day. Now herein he is a pattern to believers, 1 Tim. 1.16. Which is the rather to be marked, because Papists deny there is any such special faith, for particular and personal assurance, of the great blessings of the covenant, but only a general applying of them, as they belong to God's Church. But so the truly godly, should go no further, then wicked men, nay then the very devils do: for they know that there is a God, and believe his goodness in Christ belongs to his Church. Neither is it true, that particular assurance, of the many blessings of the covenant, is only a fruit of special and extraordinary revelation: for the Scriptures testify it comes from true particular ordinary saving graces: as faith, 1 Joh. 5.13, and love, 1 John 3.14. The use for admonition. For admonition: every one, that desires the comfort of this estate, must labour to testify the truth of being in covenant with God, by those graces, that did entitle David to the great blessings of the covenant, even true faith in God, through Christ, true love, and true fear of God. The getting of faith is in the reverend exercise of the Word, Rom. 10.17. to pray humbly, and earnestly, for the work of the spirit, which is the worker of this grace, 2 Cor. 4.13. The grace of love to God in our hearts, is a fruit of the spirit. Gal. 5.22. and so gotten, in and by the reverend use of the same means, the word and prayer, whereby the spirit is given, with which we must also join endeavour, to feel the love of God in Christ towards us, in justification and sanctification, and then shall we out of doubt love him, as 1 Joh. 4.19. And the grace of reverence and fear is a fruit of the same spirit, Isa. 11.2. & so gotten as the other, when by the word we are taught rightly to conceive of God, and of ourselves. The Use for comfort. For comfort, this makes greatly to those, that, being in covenant with God, do testify the truth of their faith in Christ, of their love and fear of God: which is rightly done by the fruits of these graces, according to Christ's rule, The tree is known by his fruits. Matth. 12.33. Now the sure fruit of true faith is the saving work of the word. 1 Thes. 2.13. The fruit of love is obedience, in doing good for God's glory. 1 John 5.3. The fruit of fear is obedience to God, in eschewing evil. Exod. 20.20. Prov. 8.13. Prov. 14.27. Secondly, consider David's claim to have God for the God of his salvation, with the end, for which he doth here make it: which is to move God, not to hid his face from him, nor to leave him, nor forsake him, and then this is plain, The sixth Observation. That they, that have God for the God of their salvation, have a good ground of assurance, that he will not forever hid his face from them, nor leave them, nor forsake them. I say forever, because, for a long time, God may hid his face, and seem to leave and forsake: as, Psal. 13.1, 2. How long wilt thou forget me, O Lord, for ever? How long wilt thou hid thy face, etc. And, Psal. 77.7, 8. Will the Lord cast off for ever? Is his mercy clean gone? But, if they be his by covenant, he will certainly return, and show mercy, see, Psal. 30.5. His anger endureth but a moment, in his favour is life: weeping may endure for a night, but joy cometh in the morning. See, Isa. 49.14, 15, 16. Zion saith, the Lord hath forsaken me, and my Lord hath forgotten me. Can a woman forget her sucking child, etc. Isa. 54.7, 8. For a small moment have I forsaken thee, but in great mercies will I gather thee, etc. The reason is from God's faithfulness, The reason. in the covenant of grace in Christ, which is established in the very heavens. Psal. 89.2. Faithful is he that calleth you, who will also do it 1 Thes. 5.24. If we believe not, yet he abideth faithful, he cannot deny himself. 2 Tim. 2.13. If we mark well, the causes of Gods forsaking those, that be truly in covenant, are ever temporary, answerable whereunto m●st the forsaking itself be, to wit, correction for sin, and trial of grace: for they, that are effectually called, are born of God, and so cannot sinne unto death, 1 John 3.9. and 5.18. unto whom God's corrections are, with instruction, the way of life: for thereby God humbles them for their sins, and so brings them to repentance, as, Jer. 31.18, 19 And the end, which God made with Job, shows that God's trials of grace make them come forth as gold. Job 23.10. This serves for instruction, and for admonition. The use for instruction. For instruction: see here a plain evidence of great gain in true godliness: as, 1 Tim. 4.8. and 6.6. for their piety gives evidence of their being in covenant, and then their troubles, though they may be many and grievous, yet certainly they are but temporary: as, Psal. 34.19. Many are the afflictions of the righteous, but the Lord delivereth them out of them all. Psl. 37.7. Mark the perfect man, and behold the upright, for the end of that man is peace: so that a man shall say, verily, there is fruit for the righteous. Psal. 58.11. The Use for admonition. For admonition, to every one, that lives in the Church, to give diligence to get this estate, to have the true God for the God of our salvation: then we may be sure, Gods leaving and forsaking will not be overlong. Psal. 119.8. Now this requires, first, true repentance in forsaking all sin in respect of dominion: for, Psal. 119.155. Salvation is fare from the wicked. 1 John 1.6. Then get the fore named graces of faith, love, and fear, and certainly the covenant of grace in Christ shall be stable unto us. Vers. 10. When my father and my mother forsake me, than the Lord will take me up. The meaning of the words. IN the former Verse, the Prophet David prayed, that the Lord would not leave him, nor forsake him, moving God thereto by this, that God was the God of his salvation: and here, prosecuting the same matter, he testifies his affiance and confidence in God, for the enjoying of the blessing there prayed for: which testimony he setteth forth, by way of comparison, preferring Gods tender care over him, for his preservation, before the care of his own parents, both father and mother, whom common nature bound to be dearly and tenderly careful over him: saying, when (or although) my father and my mother forsake me, yet the Lord will gather, or take me up. Which words being plain, we have in them two points to note, the first implied, the second expressed. The thing implied is this: The first Observation. That David's father and mother, and so his dearest and nearest friends, might leave him and forsake him, in times of distress. Psal. 38.11. My lovers and my friends stand aloof from my sore, and my kinsmen stand afar off. Psal. 88.8.18. Thou hast put away mine acquaintance fare from me: thou hast made me an abomination unto them— Lover and friend hast thou put fare from me, and mine acquaintance into darkness: as if he should have said, now I am in misery, I cannot see them, they will not see me. The first Reason. The reason hereof is twofold. First, their fear of Saul their King, who was a furious bloody-minded man, as may appear (beside his inhuman carriage to David, whose works towards Saul were very good, as 1 Sam. 19.4, 5, 10, 11.) by his barbarous dealing with the Lords Priests, whom he put to the sword, both men, and women, children, and sucklings, and oxen, and asses, and sheep, without any just cause. 1 Sam. 22.18, 19 Yea further, by his unnatural dealing with his own son, whom he did not only shamefully revile, but must unnaturally seek to slay, for his love and kindness unto David. 1 Sam. 20.30, 31, 33. Hereupon David's friends might justly fear his cruel hands: for they might say, if he would not spare his own son for David's sake, what will he do to us, if we show David any kindness? And hence no doubt it was, that David's father and mother, and all their house, went down to David, when he was in the cave of Adullam, that they might be out of danger from saul's fury, 1 Sam. 22.1, 3. The second Reason. Secondly, this might befall David by divine disposition, for the trial of David's faith and patience, as in like case it befell Job, Job 19.13, 14, 19 He hath put my brethren fare from me, and my acquaintance are verily estranged from me. My kinsfolk have failed, and my familiar friends have forgotten me— All my friends abhorred me, and they whom I loved, are turned against me. This serves for instruction, and for admonition. The first Use for instruction. For instruction two ways. First, it shows most plainly, how vain and uncertain the help of man is, in time of need. Psal. 60.11. Give us help from trouble, for vain is the help of man. Psal. 62.9. Surely, men of low degree are vanity, and men of high degree are a lie: to be laid in the balance, they are altogether lighter than vanity. A double ground of man's uncertainty. The vanity and uncertainty of man's help, stands upon a double ground in man: first, the mutability of his affection, whose greatest favour may soon be changed into sore displeasure: as Ahashuerus was towards Haman, whom he highly honoured for a while, Hest. 3.1, 2. but soon after, caused him to be hanged upon a gallows, which Haman had prepared for Mordecai, of 50. cubits high. Hest. 7.9, 10. and in Ammon towards Tamar, whose future hatred of her, after he had ravished her, exceeded his former love, wherewith he had loved her. 2 Sa. 13.15. Secondly, upon the instability of his condition, whereby in his best estate he is altogether vanity, walking in a vain show. Ps. 39.5, 6. For what man liveth, and shall not see death? Ps. 89.48. Now when death cometh, he returneth to his earth, in that very day his thoughts perish, Ps. 146.4. then can he do nothing for himself, less for others. Secondly, see in David, what may be the case of Gods own dear children, The second Use for instruction. even to be forsaken of their nearest and dearest earthly friends, in time of distress. Ps. 68 9, 20. I am become a stranger unto my brethren, and an alien unto my mother's children— I looked for some to take pity, but there was none, and for comforters, but I found none. So Paul complains 2 Tim. 4.16. At my first answer, no man stood with me, but all men forsook me: Holy Job saith, To him that is afflicted pity should be showed from his friend: but he forsaketh the fear of the almighty. My brethren have dealt deceitfully, as a brook, and as stream of brooks, they pass away. Job. 6.14, 15. Yea, this was the lot and portion of our blessed Saviour, at his apprehension, Matth 26.56. than all the Disciples forsook him, and fled. The first Use for admonition. For admonition, it serves two ways. First, that seeing father and mother may forsake us, we put not our trust in men, be they never so near or dear unto us, in nature. This is David's counsel, Psal. 146.3. Put not your trust in Princes, nor in the son of man, in whom there is no help: remember his mortality, there mentioned, Vers. 4. His breath goeth forth, be returneth to his earth: in that very day his thoughts perish. And add thereto the consideration of his mutability in affection before mentioned, with the Lords threatening of a curse to him, that trusteth in man. Jer. 17.5.6. Indeed, we may trust to men, as the means, but not as the foundation of our help. The second Use for admonition. Secondly, that we be not dismayed, when our friends do fail us: we see, by Job, David, and our Saviour Christ, that it is no strange thing. Reason as Christ doth, Matth. 10.24, 25. The disciple is not above his master, etc. and Luke 23.31. If they have done these things in a green tree, what shall be done in the dry? The second observation. The second thing, to be here observed, is purposely intended, that when David's nearest and dearest friends forsook him, than the Lord would gather him up. Psal. 142.4, 5, 7. I looked on my right hand, and behold: but there was no man that would know me: refuge failed me, no man cared for my soul. I cried unto the Lord, thou art my refuge— thou wilt deal bountifully with me. Psal. 4.8. Thou Lord only makest me dwell in safety. Psal. 62.6, 9 He only is my rock, and my salvation: he is my defence— surely men of low degree are vanity, and men of high degree are a lie. The first Reason. The reason of this special favour from God to David was threefold. First, David stood rightly and truly in covenant with God: he was one of God's people, and had the Lord for his God, and so was interested in Gods special providence, for protection and preservation. See Psal. 89.3, 20, 21, 22, 28, 35. I have made a covenant with my chosen, etc. The second Reason. Secondly, David trusted in God. Psal. 7.1. O Lord my God, in thee do I put my trust. Now they that trust in the Lord, shall be as Mount Zion, that standeth fast forever. Psal. 125, 1. The Lord will be a refuge for the oppressed: a refuge in times of trouble. And they, that know thy name, will put their trust in thee, for thou Lord hast not forsaken them that seek thee. Psal. 9.9, 10. God is he that saveth by his right hand, them that put their trust in him, from those that rise up against them, Psal. 17.7. See, Psal. 91. 1, etc. He, that dwelleth in the secret place of the most high, shall abide under the shadow of the Almighty, etc. The third Reason. Thirdly, David was holy in life and conversation, which gave him good assurance of special preservation. See Psal. 18.17, 23. He delivered me from my strong enemies— For I have kept the ways of the Lord, and have not wickedly departed from my God. The Lord forsaketh not his Saints. Psal. 37.28. This serves for instruction, admonition, and comfort. The first Use for instruction. For instruction two ways. First, see here, in that which David professeth, the stability of God's love towards those that be truly his, as David was, for when their nearest and dearest friends do forsake them, yet God will not. Hebr. 13.5. He hath said, I will never leave thee, nor forsake thee. John 13.1. Having loved his own which were in the world, he loved them unto the end. John 6.39. This is the father's will, which hath sent me, that of all which he hath given me, I should lose nothing. This we should observe and mark, to strengthen our souls against the Popish and Arminian error, of final and total falling from true grace. But blessed be God, it is as false, as uncomfortable, crossing the will of the father, and the fidelity of Christ Jesus, before named, as also the work of the spirit, which is permanent, as John 4.14. with John 7.37, 38, 39 If any that profess true religion, and give good hopes for a time, do fall away, they show by their apostaste, that they began in hypocrisy, or at the best, were but like the stony ground, who believed for a time, Luke 8.13. having only an humane acquired faith, not that precious faith, 2 Pet. 1.1. which is infused by the spirit, Gal. 5.22. who is therefore called the spirit of faith, 2 Cor. 4.13. and the spirit of power, 2 Tim. 1.7. greater than the evil spirit which is in the world, 1 John 4.4. abiding in God's children, 1 John 2.27. even for ever, John 14.16, 17. being, in the operation of saving grace, a fountain of living water, springing up unto eternal life, whereof whosoever drinketh, shall never be more a thirst. John 4.14. This is that free spirit, which doth establish the godly, in the state of grace, and is God's seal and earnest in their hearts. 2 Cor. 1.21, 22. Eph. 1.13, 14. Obj. But the godly may commit mortal sins, as David did, in adultery and murder: now an adulterer is the member of an harlot, 1 Cor. 6.13. and a murderer is the child of the devil, John 8.44. 1 John 3.12. was he not then fallen from grace? Answ. It cannot be denied, but for these heinous sins, David was justly under the wrath of God, till by the renewing of his repentance, and faith in the Messiah, he obtained atonement. But yet, under the guilt of these sins, he differed much from the impenitent and unregenerate, not only in regard of God's certain purpose to renew him by repentance, and restore him into favour but even in present state of soul, two ways: First, that the seed of grace did then remain, 1 John 3.9. Secondly, that he sinned not with full consent, Rom. 7.17, 19, 20. and so could not be so totally under the curse, as the unregenerate are. For the better conceiving whereof, we must know, that every regenerate man, whilst he is in this world, hath in him both flesh and spirit, inbred corruption, and renewed grace, and so consisteth (as it were) of a double person, the old man, which is corrupt through deceivable lusts, and the new man, which after God is created in righteousness and true holiness. Eph. 4.22, 24. Now when the child of God committeth sin, even grievous sins, as David did, to speak as Paul doth of himself, it is not he that doth it, so fare forth as he is regenerate, but he, so fare forth as he is corrupt, which Paul calleth sin that dwelleth in him, Rom. 7.20. His service of sin is with and from the flesh, but in his mind renewed, he serves the law of Christ, Vers. 25. which shows, that grace in the habit, and seed, and root doth then remain, when and while corruption, in sundry particular actions, doth prevail. Which to be true, is plain also by St. Peter, who denied his Master with cursing and swearing (which in itself was a fearful mortal sin) Matth. 26.72, 74. even after that comfortable speech of Christ unto him; Simon, behold. Satan hath desired to have you, that he may sift you, as wheat, But I have prayed for thee, that thy faith fail not. Luke 22.31, 32. Shall we say he now, by denying his Master lost all grace; when as Christ had prayed for the continuance of his faith? nay rather acknowledge, that this failing was in this particular act, not in the habit and seed of grace. The second Use for instruction. Secondly, see here the happiness of the godly, who indeed alone have the Lord for their God: for he is the strong and stable helper, who will safely keep those that be his, when all other helps do fail, Ps. 37.28, 33. He forsaketh not his Saints— The Lord will not leave him in the hand of the wicked. Vers. 24. Though he fall, yet he shall not be cast down, for the Lord upholdeth him with his hand: Psal. 34.19. Many are the afflictions of the righteous, but the Lord delivereth them out of all. See Job 8.20. God will not cast away an upright man. Job 5.13, 14. He shall deliver thee in six troubles, and in seven there shall no evil touch thee. Happy therefore is the man, that hath the God of Jacob for his help, whose hope is in the Lord his God. Psal. 146.5. Happy is that people, that is in such a case, yea happy is that people, whose God is the Lord. Psal. 144.15. The Use for admonition. For admonition, it serves effectually to move every one, that desires this comfortable state, that when dearest and nearest friends do forsake him, yet then the Lord may take him up to give all diligence, both to get and preserve those graces in his soul, and also to testify, that behaviour in life, which did entitle David to this happy estate: as namely, to get truly into covenant with God, to trust in the Lord, and to show the truth hereof by new and true obedience. Men in the world will serve hard Prenticeships, for temporal and worldly freedoms, in corporations, and privileged places: how much more should we take pains, for this great privilege of the citizens of Zion, to have the Lord for our God. The Use for comfort. For comfort, this makes greatly to the godly, in times of distress they must call to mind this property in God, to be more firm and faithful, to those that be his, then natural parents are to their dearest children. For which, besides this text, see, Isa, 49.14, 15. Zion said, the Lord hath forken me, etc. with Luke 11.13. If ye then, being evil, know how to give good gifts unto your children: how much more shall your heavenly father give the holy spirit to them that ask him? Let us make sure that we be rightly in covenant with God, and then we may say with David, The Lord is on my side, I will not fear, what can man do unto me? Psal. 118.6. The Lord is my shepherd, I shall not want— Yea though I walk through the valley of the shadow of death, I will fear none evil, for thou art with me. Psal. 23.1, 4. Vers. 11. Teach me thy way O Lord, and lead me in a plain path: because of mine enemies. Vers. 12. Deliver me not over to the will of mine enemies: for false witnesses are risen up against me, and such as breathe out cruelty. The meaning of the words. IN these two Verses, the Prophet David returns again unto prayer, and begs of God both instruction and direction in regard of his enemies, Vers. 11. and also preservation out of their hands, in regard of their unconscionable dealing, and cruel minds towards him, Vers. 12. For instruction and direction thus he prays; Teach me thy way, O Lord, and lead me in a plain path, because of mine enemies. For the meaning, God's way in Scripture is taken diversely: sometime for his own administrrtion and doing or working. as Job 26.14. Lo these are part of his ways: having spoken of many of his marvellous works in the former verses, 7, 8, etc. as afterward, Behemoth is called the chief of the ways of God, that is, of his works. Job 40.19. Psal. 77.19. Thy way is in the sea, and thy path in the great waters, thy footsteps are not known: which hath reference to Vers. 14, 15. Thou art the God that dost wonders, etc. Psal. 103.7. He made known his ways unto Moses, his acts unto the children of Israel. Otherwhile, and most commonly, God's way is that, wherein he would have man to walk: that is, the course of life and dealing, which he would have men to take: as Jethro saith to Moses, Exod. 18.20. Thou shalt teach them ordinances and laws, and shalt show them the way, wherein they must walk, and the work that they must do. See Jer. 42.3. Herein David desires to be instructed of God. Yea further, he would have God, not only to teach him the way, but to lead him in a plain path; that is, such a path as is right and straight without any crookedness: and such is the way of God's word, the course and behaviour, which God there prescribes them: as Pro. 8.6. The opening of my mouth shall be right things: 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 the same word, which is here used, further expounded, Vers. 8, 9 All the words of my mouth, are in righteousness, etc. And this favour he desires, because of his enemies, that is, of such as did observe and watch him, for advantage to do him hurt. The first Observation. In the words thus understood, note two things. First, his double request made to God: secondly, the reason of them both. For his requests, the first is this; David beseecheth God to teach him that way of his, wherein he would have him to walk. So Psal. 5.8. Led me, O Lord, in thy righteousness— make thy way plain before my face. Psal. 25.4. Show me thy ways, O Lord, Psal. 143.8. Cause me to know the way, wherein I should walk. Psal. 86.11. Teach me thy way, O Lord. The reasons hereof are three. First, in regard of God, The 1. reason. to glorify him, by seeking unto him for this blessing: for God undertakes to teach the godly that be in covenant with him, as it is written in the Prophets, and they shall be all taught of God, John 6.45. Psal. 32.8. I will instruct thee, and teach thee in the way, which thou shalt go. Prov. 4.11. I have taught thee in the way of wisdom. The second Reason. Secondly, in regard of himself sundry ways. First, because of his own inability of himself to know them, without Gods teaching: for the light of nature is but darkness in the ways of God. Matth. 6.23. For the natural man receiveth not the things of the spirit of God: they are foolishness unto him: he cannot know them (meaning of himself) because they are spiritually discerned. This is manifest by the Eunuch, Acts 8.30, 31. Understandest thou what thou readest, saith Philip to him; he answers by denial, How can I, except some man should guide me. Secondly, for his better enabling to obedience; for knowledge goes before doing. John 13.17. If ye know these things, happy are ye, if ye do them. Josh. 1.8. This book of the Law shall not departed out of thy mouth, but thou shalt meditate therein day and night, that thou mayst observe to do, according to all that is written therein. Thirdly, for his spiritual joy and comfort: for knowledge is a spiritual light, 2 Cor. 4.6. and so very pleasing and comfortable to those, that without it are in darkness: as Eccles. 11.7. Truly the light is sweet, and a pleasant thing is it for the eyes to behold the Sun. Hence we read, that many have greatly rejoiced, when they have been taught the knowledge of God's ways. Nehem. 8.12. All the people went their way, to eat and to drink, and to make great mirth, because they had understood the words, that were declared unto them. So the Eunuch went his way rejoicing, after he had been instructed, and baptised by Philip, Acts 8.39. and there was great joy in Samaria, after they were converted to the faith by Philip, Acts 8.6, 8. The third Reason. Thirdly, because of his enemies, as here he saith in plain words: for in God's ways there is safety: here God's Angels have charge to keep the godly, Psalm. 91.11. When thou goest in this way thy steps shall not be straightened, and when thou runnest, thou shalt not stumble, Prov. 4.12. These ways of God are ways of pleasure, and all the paths thereof are paths of peace, Prov. 3.17. Here nothing offends the godly, Psalm. 119.165. Nay, here is singing of heart; Psalm. 138.5. with Psalm. 65.14. This safety from enemies in the ways of God, the Lord assured his people, Deut. 28.17. If thou shalt hearken diligently unto the voice of the Lord thy God, to observe and do all his Commandments, the Lord shall cause thine enemies, that rise up against thee, to be smitten before thy face, etc. Psalm. 81.13, 14. O that my people had harkened unto me, and Israel had walked in my ways, I should soon have subdued their enemies, and turned mine hand against their adversaries. This David found true in his own person, Psalm. 18.16, 17, 21. He sent from above, he took me, he drew me out of many waters. He delivered me from my strong enemies. For I have kept the ways of the Lord, etc. This serves for instruction and admonition. The Use for instruction For instruction; see plainly by David's prayer, that there is more good to be had in the ways of God, then natural men imagine, else David would never have begged of God so earnestly to be taught therein. Consider but some of the aforesaid reasons, that moved us so to pray, as his direction unto acceptable obedience, wherein men are instiled unto all God's blessings, as Deut. 28.1, 2, 3. etc. Psalm. 119.1. His inward joy and consolation, which is an inseparable fruit of God's instruction, Psal. 119.162. I rejoice at thy word, as one that findeth great spoil, jer. 15.16. Thy words were found, & I did eat them, and thy word was unto me the joy & rejoicing of my heart. Lastly, his safety & protection herein from the head of his enemies: when God saith to his Church, all thy children shall be taught of the Lord, headdeth withal, and great shall be the peace of thy children. In righteousness shalt thou be established, thou shalt be fare from oppression, for thou shalt not fear, etc. Are not these great blessings? what shall we say then of natural men, that say unto God, Depart from us, we desire not the knowledge of thy ways? Job 21.14. Surely, the God of this world hath blinded their eyes: they are under that curse, whereby they become like the heath in the desert, and shall not see when good cometh, jer. 17.5, 6. The Use for admonition. For admonition, it serves notably, that our behaviour like david's, in praying unto God to teach us his ways. They are not undoubtedly contained in Scripture, which is the perfect register of Gods revealed will, showing our duty perfectly, for all things needful to be believed and done unto eternal life. In it we have express particular rules, for all the duties of our general calling of Christianity, which requireth piety towards God, justice, love, and mercy towards our brethren, with sobriety, and temperance towards our bodies, and care, and diligence for the gain, and growth of grace in our souls: as Tit. 2.12. 2 Pet. 1.5, 6, 7. In it also we have general rules, for the well ordering and managing of our particular callings, which respect the Church, Commonwealth, or family. For Magistrates see, Ex. 18.21, 22. with Deut. 17.8, 9 etc. 2 Chr. 19.9, 10, 11. For Ministers, 1 Tim. 3.2, 3. etc. and 2 Tim. 4.1, 2. For husbands and wives, parents and children, masters and servants, their godly behaviour in general is plainly propounded, Eph. 5.22, 23. etc. Eph. 6.1. etc. to the 10. Col. 3.18. etc. Tit. 2.1. &c, 1 Pet. 2.13. etc. And that our prayers this way may be available, we must also labour in life to be such as God will teach, Who they are whom God will teach. that is, first, penitent persons breaking off the course of sin, Prov. 1.23. Turn you at my reproof: behold, I will pour out my spirit unto you, I will make known my words unto you, Hos. 6.1, 3. Come, and let us return unto the Lord— Then shall we know— But the wicked and impenitent shall not be taught of God, he will not be enquired of by them, Ezek. 14.1. etc. Those, that are laden with sin, are ever learning, and never come to the knowledge of the truth, 2 Tim. 3, 6, 7. Secondly, diligent in using Gods ordinances man holy manner. God's ordinances for knowledge are the word and prayer. The word must be reverently heard, read and meditated, Psal. 119.99. I have more understanding than all my teachers, for thy testimonies are my meditation: and prayer gets wisdom, Jam. 1.5. The holy manner of using these ordinances is, in humility, and yielding obedience to that they do know, John 7.17. for such have a promise of the spirit, which God hath given to them that obey him, Acts 5.32. which is that anointing, that teacheth all needful things, 1 John 2.20, 27. The second observation. The second petition, which David here puts up unto God is, that God would lead him in a plain path, that is, in a path that is right and strait, wherein is no erring nor straying out of God's way, even in a path of righteousness, as some translate it. In which petition note two things: the first employed, that the paths of God's way are plain paths, such as are strait, and right, without crooked turn, Prov. 4.11. I have taught thee in the way of wisdom: I have led thee in right paths, Prov. 8.6, 8. The opening of my lips shall be right things— All the words of my mouth are in righteousness, there is nothing froward, or perverse in them. Therefore St. Paul calls them the strait ways of God Acts 13.10. The Reason. The reason is plain; these paths are of Gods own tracting out, being indeed nothing else, but plain evidences of his will, which in every thing is right and equal: for God's willing of a thing makes it good, though otherwise it were most abominable, if he should not require it: as is most plain in the fact of Abraham, when he offered up his son Isaac▪ for which Abraham's faith is renowned. Hebr. 11.17. and his ●ear of God approved, Gen. 22.12. And on the same ground David said, Therefore I esteem all thy precepts concerning all things, to be right. Psal. 119.128. This serves for instruction, admonition, and comfort. The use for instruction. For instruction it doth plainly discover the great measure of our natural corruption, who judge many of God's ways unequal, Ezek. 18.25. Ye say, the way of the Lord is not equal. And indeed, in one thing or other, wherein every carnal heart desires liberty to sin, we are like the evil servant, who in our thoughts charge the Lord to be an hard master requiring more exact obedience than he should, Mat. 25.24. doth not every black mouthed swearer, and curser, say in his heart, our tongues are our own, we ought to speak, who is Lord over us? Psal. 12.4. and all profaneness of the Lords day say the like of the solemn sanctification of it, viz. it is a weariness, and they snuff at it, Mal. 1.13. And so they deal about the rest of God's holy Commandments, in the transgression whereof their natural hearts desire carnal liberty, verifying the Apostles saying, Rom. 8.7. The carnal mind is enmity against God: it is not subject to the law of God, neither indeed can be. The Use for admonition. For admonition, to take special notice of the straightness of God's paths, as well to beat down our corruption, when we find in ourselves any untowardness, and unwillingness to walk therein: and if we be wise for our souls, to know our own estate, we shall find the flesh fight against the spirit, even strong corruption, called a law in our members, warring against the law of our minds, which is renewed grace, and leading us captive to the law of sin, as Paul complaineth, Rom. 7.23. And had we not need to fight against it, by the sword of the spirit, the word of God, laying it to our souls, by the hand of faith: and by humble earnest prayer, for the participation of God's power, to keep us in this strait ways of God, wherein is liberty, Psal. 119.45. For when the world and the flesh, by cor●●ption, draw us out of these paths, we are taken captives, as Paul confesseth, and so lose our liberty. See also 2. Tim. 2.26. As also, to give all diligence, to know the strait paths of the Lord, and to walk therein. This is the Lords commandment, with comfortable encouragement so to do, Jer. 6.15. Stand ye in the ways, and see, and ask for the old paths, where is the good way, and walk therein, and ye shall find rest for your souls, Luke 13.24. Strive to enter in at the straight gate: and walk in the straight way, that leadeth unto life. Mat. 7.13, 14. This was David's behaviour, as we may see by his prayer, in this place, and many other before quoted. Consider the benefit of rest to the soul, and of pleasantness, and peace to be found in these ways, Prov. 3.17. And withal think ou their fearful state and end, that leave these strait ways of God: see acts 13.10. they are enemies of righteousness, children of the devil, and are taken captive by him at his will, till they repent, 2 Tim. 2.26. and if they hold on in their crooked paths, they shall never know peace, Is. 59.8. The Lord will lead them forth with the workers of iniquity, Psal. 125.5. even to the damnation of hell, Psal. 9.7. Mat. 7.23. For the man, that wandereth out of the way of understanding, shall remain in the congregation of the dead, Prov. 21.16. The Use for comfort. For comfort greatly to those, that walk in God's ways, for they are ways of peace with God, and lead to glory eternal, Psal. 119.1. and Psal. 128.1. 2 Tim. 4.7, 8. The third Observation. Secondly, here observe the thing intended and expressed, David begs of God to lead him in a plain path, Psal. 5.8. Led me O Lord in thy righteousness, Psal. 25.5. lead me in thy truth, Psal. 139.24. Led me in the way everlasting. This he doth upon the like grounds, that he prayed to be taught the ways of God. As first, The 1. reason. upon the consideration of the inability of nature to walk at all in the strait paths of God: for we are dead in sins and trespasses, Eph. 2.1. and of no strength, Rom. 5.6. and how can such walk? And though God's holy calling, to the state of grace gave him spiritual life, yet he had experience, and so conscience of his own weakness in grace, unless the Lord were still with him to uphold and lead him. See Psal. 30.6, 7, 8. I said in my prosperity I shall never be moved— Thou didst hid thy face, and I was troubled, Psal. 6.2. Have mercy upon me O Lord, for I am weak, Psal. 38.17.21. I am ready to halt— forsake me not, O Lord. The second Reason. Secondly, David had knowledge of God's gracious property, in becoming a guide unto his children: as, Psal. 77.20. Thou leadest thy people like a flock, Psal. 80.1. Give ear, thou shepherd of Israel, that leadest Joseph like a flock: He led them with a cloudy day, and a pillar of fire by night, Ex. 13.21. Psal. 78.14. Now being in covenant, he lays claim to his favour, and begs it by prayer. The third Reason. Thirdly, David prayeth to be led by God, for his safety and security against his enemies: this reason is here rendered; lead me in a plain path, because of mine enemies: for when God is for him, he will not fear: what can man do unto him. Psal. 118.6. when God leadeth him, he will not fear, though he walk through the very valley of the shadow of death, Psal. 23.2, 4. This serves for instruction, and for admonition. The first Use for instruction. For instruction two ways: First, it lets us see the true ground, of the perseverance of the godly, in the state of grace, it is not in themselves, but in and from the Lord, who is with them, and leads them in the way everlasting: he by his spirit ministers daily supply of grace, and so keeps them from falling away. See 1 John 2.20.27. John 14.16, 17. 1 John 4.4, 13. This spirit gives sap and juice to the seed of grace, so as they cannot sin unto death, 1 john 3.9. jer. 32.40. Psal. 125.1, 2. These things we should mark, to arm ourselves against the uncomfortable doctrine of Papists and Arminians, that say, the true child of God may fall away from saving grace; but john 4.14. The water, that I shall give him, shall be in him a well of water, springing up into everlasting life, and, John 10.27, 28. The second Use for instruction. Secondly, David's practice shows the meekness of wisdom, that is in those, that be truly godly, not to trust in themselves, but humbly craving the Lords conduct, and guiding in this world, to put all their trust in the Lord. The use for admonition. For admonition, it serves notably to move every one to labour to be such, as God will lead, and guide in the paths of life; for so shall they be sure to find rest for their souls: as jer. 6.16. What we must do that we may be such as God will lead. Now that we may be such, we must be careful of four things. First, that we stand rightly in covenant with God; being indeed his people, and having him for our God, Deut. 32.9, 10, 11, 12. The Lord's portion is his people— he found him in a desert land— he led him about, he instructed him, he kept him as the apple of his eye— so the Lord alone did lead him. When David hath the Lord for his shepherd, he assures himself he will lead him by the still waters, Psal. 23.1, 2, 3. Secondly, we must be penitent persons, breaking off the course of sin: for God will not take the wicked by the hand, job 8.20. they that walk in darkness cannot have fellowship with God, 1 john 1.6. Thirdly, we must give diligent heed to the word of God: for that is God's counsel, whereby he guides his people unto glory, Psal. 73.24. Fourthly, we must daily beg this blessing of God, as David here doth, and in many other places, as is showed before. Because of mine enemies] david's reason of his two former petitions: therefore doth he desire of God to be taught his ways, and to be led in strait paths, because he had such enemies, as continually seek his ruin and destruction: so that, if he were out of God's protection, they would soon work his destruction. This reason may be considered two ways: First, simply by itself, for the matter which it contains: Secondly, with reference to the petitions, which it doth enforce. In the reason simply considered this is here plainly taken for granted, That David had enemies, The fourth Observation. who both wished and sought his overthrow. This is plain in this Psalm, verse 2. His enemies, and his foes came upon him, to eat up his flesh: and verse 12. they falsely accused him, and breathed our cruelty against him. Whereto we may add, for fuller and plainer evidence. Psal. 3.1. Lord how are they increased, that trouble me? Many are they, that rise up against me. Psal. 69.4. They, that hate me without a cause, are more than the hairs of mine head: they, that would destroy me, being mine enemies wrongfully, are many. The reasons hereof, with the application in uses, are set down before, Verse 6. Observation 1. briefly to this effect. The first Reason. First, the good will and pleasure of God, thus to make David a type of Christ, of whom it is said, Isa. 53.16. It pleased the Lord to bruise him, with Act. 4.25. etc. alleging the second Psalm true also of David the type. The second Reason. Secondly, David's sins sometimes occasioned this evil, 2 Sam. 12 9 The third Reason. Thirdly, corruptions in the wicked, who had to do with David, stirred them up against him two ways. First, in hatred of his goodness, Psalm 38.19, 20. therein verifying, Gen. 3, 17. whereupon our Saviour calls the Scribes and Pharisees Serpents, and a Generation of Vipers, Mat. 23.33. Secondly, in envy of his honour, Psalm. 4.2. Psalm. 62.4. as Dan. 6.3, 4. By way of use it serves for instruction, and admonition. For instruction, see in David the state of the Godly in this world, The use for instruction. liable to the trouble and danger of many and cruel enemies: reason, as Luke 23.31. and as jer. 25.9. The Use for admonition. For admonition, to beware of rash judgement, either against others, that they are nought, because they are by so many oppressed; for so we might condemn the Godly, as Psalm. 73.15. see jer. 15.10. or against ourselves, that we are forsaken of God, because men persecute us, as Psalm. 22.1. Indeed we must consider the cause, and make use of persecution accordingly. Now the cause is either correction for sin, or trial of grace. If we find our fins have brought enemies upon us, than we must humble ourselves under God's hand, who useth the rage of enemies, as rods to whip his children, Isa. 10.5, 6. In this case he must smell the savour of a sacrifice, as 1 Sam. 26.19. bring unto God a contrite and broken heart, that he will not despise, Psalm. 51.17. If we find that God would make trial of grace in us, by the enemies he doth raise up against us, than we must strive to give evidence of our faith in God, by patiented bearing the trial, which his providence layeth on us, whereto we shall be enabled: First, by considering God's hand herein: for a sparrow lighteth not on the ground without his will, Mat. 10.28, 29, 31. Thus David patiently bore Shemei his cursing, 2 Sam. 16.11, 12. with Psal. 39.9. yea thus Christ endured the cross, and condemnation by Pilate, John 19.10, 11. Secondly, by remembering the good end; for we shall come forth as the gold, Job. 23.10. Many are the afflictions of the godly, but the Lord delivers them out of all, Psal. 34.19. Nay hereby our glory shall be increased, Rom. 8.18. The sufferings of this time are not worthy to be compared with the glory, which shall be revealed in us: nay 2 Cor. 4.17. Our light affliction, which is but for a moment, worketh for us a fare more exceeding and eternal weight of glory: for, if we suffer, we shall also reign with him, 2 Tim. 2.12. Thus Moses encouraged himself under the cross, with respect to the recompense of reward, Heb. 11.25, 26. yea our Saviour Christ, Heb. 12.2. Who for the hope that was set before him, endured the cross, despised the shame, and is set at the right hand of the throne of God. For he himself hereupon encouraged his Disciples, Mat. 5.10, 11, 12. Blessed are they, who are persecuted for righteousness sake, for theirs is the Kingdom of heaven. Blessed are ye, when men revile you— Rejoice and be exceeding glad: for great is your reward in heaven. The fifth Observation. Secondly, consider this reason with reference to the two former petitions, which it enforceth, and this is plain, That the exposition of David's enemies moves him to be more humble and earnest in prayer and supplication unto God. Their insurrection against him becomes his provocation to fly to God, Psal. 77.2. In the day of my trouble I sought the Lord, Psal. 5.8. Led me, O Lord in thy righteousness. because of mine enemies, Psalms 69.12, 13, 14. They that sat in the gate (that is Judges and Magistrates) spoke against me. But as for me, my prayer is unto thee, O Lord— Let me be delivered from them that hate me, Psal. 109.2, 3, 4. The mouth of the wicked, and the mouth of the deceitful, are opened against me— They compassed me about with words of hatred, and fought against me without a cause. For my love they are mine adversaries, but I give myself unto prayer. The first Reason. The reason hereof is threefold. First, the consideration of God's hand in the opposition of his enemies, which ever hath an overruling power in all men's actions, Is. 45.7. Amos 3.6. The second Reason. Secondly, conscience of obedience to God, who requires to be sought in times of trouble, Psal. 50.15. The third Reason. Thirdly, confidence in God's help, grounded both on God's property and promise: for his property, he is the true God, that heareth prayer, Psal. 65 2. He is our refuge and strength: a present help in trouble. Psal. 46.1. For his promise it is plain, Psal. 91.15. He shall call upon me, and I will answer him: I will be with him in trouble, I will deliver him. This serves for instruction, reprehension, and admonition. The use for instruction. For instruction, we may see in David a notable property of the godly, which is, to seek help and safety from the Lord, when the wicked do eagerly labour for their destruction in the world. Unto David's practice in this place join the behaviour of Jehosaphat, 2 Chron. 20.2, 3, 4. who sought the Lord in solemn prayer and fasting, when Moab, Ammon, and mount Seir came against him in hostile manner. The like did Hezekiah, upon the bloody railing of Sennacherib, both by Rabshakeh and by writing, Is. 37.1. etc. Thus also did Mordecai and Esther, when Haman sought their utter rheum, Est. 4.16. So did Christ's Apostles for themselves, Acts 4.21, 30, 31. and the Church did so for Peter, Acts 12.5. The Use for reproof. For reproof, it makes justly to all natural wicked men, who in opposition against them by enemies do little regard this duty, as Joram said in the straight siege of Samaria, This evil cometh of the Lord, wherefore should I wait on the Lord any longer? 2 Kings 5.33. looking altogether to worldly and humane help: as the wicked Jews sometimes did, who asked not at God's mouth, but would, strengthen themselves in the strength of Pharaoh, and trust in the shadow of Egypt, Is. 30.2. yea though they had been told, the Lord would not have them to go down thither, saying, the strength of Pharaoh shall be your shame, and the shadow of Egypt your confusion: yet, against the Lords express revealed will, they would needs go thither, Jer. 42.14. But woe unto them saith the Lord, etc. Is. 31.1, 2. Nay, cursed be the man, that trusteth in man, and maketh flesh his arm, Jer. 17.5. When the heart is truly turned to the Lord, they will say, Ashur shall not save us, we will not ride upon horses— for in thee the fatherless findeth mercy, Hos. 14.3. The Use for admonition. For admonition, it serves effectually to move every one to become followers of David. Let men's opposition against us be our provocations to seek the Lord: so shall we not only show ourselves to be godly, but also reap good from that, which our enemies intent to be hurtful unto us, which is a special favour, showing that the Lord is with us, as he was with Joseph, when his brethren sold him into Egypt: for God was with him, and turned it to his great honour, and advancement: as Gen. 45.5, 7, 8, and Gen. 50, 20. And as he was with his people in the Wilderness, when Balack hired Balaam to curse them, but God turned it into a blessing, Numb. 23.8, 9, 11. and Numb. 24.10. And for further encouragement hereto, we must meditate on the reasons, that moved David so to do: for God's sovereignty is the same, over our enemies, and over us, that it was over David, and his enemies: he may justly exercise us under such affliction as he did David, either for correction for sin, or trial of grace, and if we be in covenant with him as David was, we have the like interest in his property, and promise of help, that David had. And if we put our trust in him, and call upon him, he will be likewise our defender and deliverer. Mark and apply his speech to Joshuah after Moses was dead, to give him encouragement in his place, Josh. 1.5, 6, 7, 8. As I was with Moses, so will I be with thee, I will not fail thee, nor forsake thee: which promise the Apostle extends to every Christian, Heb. 13.5. only let us look to the obedience, which God requires of us in our places, as he did of Joshuah in his, and then we shall with him prosper and have good success: for we fly to God by the prayer of faith, and the Lord is with us, if we be with him, and then we may boldly say, The Lord is my helper, I will not fear, what man can do unto me, Heb. 13.6. Verse 12. Deliver me not over to the will of mine enemies: for false witnesses are risen up against me, and such as breathe out cruelty. The meaning of the words. A Further petition of David unto God for mercy, in regard of his enemies, enforced by a strong motive. The mercy he requires is, that God would not deliver him over to the will of his enemies: the motive he propounds, to move God to grant that request, is drawn from the behaviour of his enemies, whereof some stood up to witness falsehood against him, and some breathed out violent wrong or cruelty. For the first, the word translated enemies, betokeneth such, 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 as by violent persecution seek to bring into an inevitable strait, as they do, that besiege a place in war, according to the use of the word in Scripture, Deut. 28.52. He shall besiege thee in all thy gates, and verse 55.57. Siege, and straightness, and distress, causing men and women to eat their own children, are there joined together in the threatening. 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 Also the word, translated will, properly signifieth the soul, which is often put for will, lust or desire, when those faculities or passions are eager, strong, and violent in men, as here they were in David enemies, after his mine. So as his meaning in this petition is this, in the words implying, that he had such enemies, as with all their hearts and souls, most eagerly did desire to bring him into an inevitable strait, for utter ruin, he beseecheth the Lord that he would not give him into their hands, to have their souls satisfied with his destruction. The first Observation▪ metonymia subjecti. In this petition so understood rote two things: First, the sacred trope, or rhetorical phrase, which David here useth to express the unsatiable desire of his enemies, to work his overthrow, he calls it their very soul: as also Psal. 35.25. Let them not say in their hearts, ah, ah, our soul, that is, our full desire, so we would have it: and Psal. 41.2. Thou wilt not deliver him to the soul of his enemy, that is, to the will and desire, where we see he puts the soul, that is the seat and subject for the will and desire that is seated therein. The Reason. The reason whereof seems to be this, hereof to manifest more plainly, the excessive measure of spite, and malice, which was in David's enemies, which seemed to him no less, then if their very souls had been framed and composed thereof. This serves for instruction, and for admonition. The first Use for instruction. For instruction, three ways. First, it shows the lawful use of the art of Rhetoric, if it be without vain assertation of wit and eloquence, even in the dispensation of God's Word; and withal. the necessity of some competent knowledge therein, for right interpretation of the same. The second Use for instruction. Secondly, here see, that men endued and guided by God's holy spirit, when they speak of corrupt affections in the souls of natural men, do not mince the matter, with qualifying terms, to make them seem small things of little or no danger, but do rather aggravate the same, by significant terms and phrases, which may plainly show, that sin therein is for measure exceeding great, for a danger damnable, why else should David style the malicious will, and desire of his enemies, by the very name of the soul itself? whose steps St. Paul doth plainly follow, speaking of the corruption of our nature, which Divines do call concupiscence, that it may seem in measure fearful, he calleth it the old man, and body of sin, Rom. 6.6. yea a body of death, Rom. 7.24. having many and strong earthly members, as fornication, uncleanness, and the like, Col. 3.5. And that it may seem strong and forcible, he ascribeth great power and might unto it in all natural men, Rom. 7.5. When we were in the flesh, the motions of sin, which were by the law, had force in our members, to bring forth fruit unto death: it hath a kind of spiritual sovereignty in them, it reigneth unto death, Rom. 5.21. where mark, their sins dominion is for the soul's damnation; the trouble, and terror whereof in the godly, is acknowledged by Paul, in his own person, Rom. 7.23. but I see another law in my members, warring against the law of my mind, and bringing me into captivity unto the law of sin. This terror, I say, that corruption causeth in the godly, may easily manifest how terrible the tyranny of it is in natural men. That blessed Apostle cries out of his misery, by reason of this corruption, yet dwelling in him, Rom. 7.24. though then it had received in him a deadly wound, by the power of Christ's death, effectually applied unto him by God's holy spirit, at the time of his conversion. Oh what slavish bondage then are all natural men under, that have in their souls original corruption, the devil's taskmaster, to keep them close under the drudgery of sin, for which they shall receive the wages of eternal death. The third Use for instruction. Thirdly, this very phrase, rightly understood, gives plain evidence, where corruption bears dominion: for look where the motions of sin for force and strength to bring forth evil actions, are as available, as the soul is in the body, for the effecting of natural actions, How to know where corruption bears dominion. there undoubtedly sin reigneth and corruption beareth sway. The soul we know gives life to the body, and sets every part a work about those things it liketh: so as we may sound argue, that he is endued with a reasonable soul, who doth, constantly manage his humane affairs with good discretion. In like manner doth inbred corruption quicken sinful motions in the soul, and gaining consent of will, draweth the parts of the body to become the tools of the mind, for the execution of sinful actions. Look therefore, where we see a course held in the practice of sin, there we may be sure, that corruption bears dominion: when the motions of sin hath force in their members, to bring forth fruit unto death, than men are in the flesh, Rom. 7.5. This reigning power of sin is the law of the members, warring against the law of the mind, and bringing man into captivity of the law of sin, Rom. 7.23. This reigning corruption, shows itself in man, when his mind is set in evil works, Col. 2.21. and he minds the things of the flesh, Rom. 8.5. when his heart is fully set in him to do evil. Eccles. 8.11. when his tongue proclaims his resolution for sin, as Jer. 44.17. we will certainly do whatsoever thing goeth out of our own mouth, Psal. 12.4. with our tongue we will prevail: our lips are our own, who is Lord over us? If. 56.12. Come ye, say they, I will fetch wine, and we will fill ourselves with strong drink: and when he cannot endure to be checked, or crossed in his evil course. This cuts them to the heart, Acts 7.54. stirs them up to rage and fury, as Acts 7.57, 58. Gen. 19.9. 1 Sam. 20.30. whereby they plainly show themselves to be brutish, Prov. 12.1. and sensual having not the spirit, Judas 19 The first Use for admonition. For admonition, it serves two ways. First, to observe in ourselves the force and strength of corruption in sinful motions and desires, after things forbidden of God: for if to enjoy them be our soul, so we would have it; as Psal. 35.25. then certainly we are wholly carnal, sold under sin, and if we so die, we perish eternally: for where sin reigneth, it is unto death, Rom. 5.21. And that we deceive not ourselves, in a matter of so great importance, besides the evidence of this estate, given in the last instruction, which is very plain, if we examine ourselves thereby, The dominion of sin illustrated by resemblance. mark some other resemblances that give further illustration. St. James, jam. 1.15. speaks of a strange conception in the foul, brought forth in life: when lust hath conceived, it bringeth forth sin: Man's sin is the child born, there spoken of; man's soul, as it is carnal, is the womb, wherein it is conceived: the Suggestion of Satan, with man's own evil concupiscence, are the seed whereof it is form, and so fare forth is man's sin begotten of the devil, and hath him for the father; as he is called the father of lies, John 8.44. for he put it into Judas heart to betray his master, john 13.2. & filled Ananias his heart, that he lied unto God, Acts 5.3. and so became in them the father of those grievous sins, treachery in Judas, and hypocrisy in Ananias. Now to try our estate, for the dominion of sin, by this resemblance, do we say of any sin, as Rachel did of natural children to jacob, Gen. 30.1. give me children, or else I die? doth lust make thee sick, as it did Ammon? 2 Sam. 13.1, 2. dost thou like the whorish woman, with an impudent face, allure others to sin? Prov. 7.13, 18. Is it pastime to thee to do wickedly? Prov. 18.23. dost thou not sleep, except thou have done mischief? Prov. 4.16. Dost thou devise iniquity, and work evil upon thy bed: and when morning is light, dost thou practise it, because there is power in thine hand? &c, Mich. 2.1. etc. upon all these, and the like, the dominion of sin may be concluded: he that saith of evil doing, aha, my soul, is as yet undoubtedly in his soul void of saving grace, Psal. 36.1. The transgression of the ungodly saith within my heart, there is no fear of God before his eyes. This is likewise evident by the contrary affections in the godly, in whom grace is renewed: to get grace, and to practise obedience is their soul: as Christ told his disciples, My meat is to do the will of him that sent me, John 4.34. As the hart panteth after the water brook, so panteth my soul after thee O God. My soul thirsteth for God, Psal. 42.1, 2. My soul longeth, yea even fainteth for the Courts of the Lord: my heart and my flesh cryeth out for the living God. Psal. 84.2. The word of God was to David as his soul: the soul we know quickeneth the body, and God's word quickened his soul, Psal. 119.50.93. They were the joy and rejoicing of Jeremiahs' heart. Jer. 15.16. And Paul was as a woman with child in travail after the conversion of others, Gal. 4.10. His life was not dear unto him, so he might further the Gospel, Acts 20.24. Mark these things, and pray for understanding. The second use for admonition. Secondly, if we find, that sinful affections be our soul, that is, our desire and delight, that then we give all diligence for change of estate: for who would continue in the gall of bitterness, and under the power of darkness, if he could help it? And though it be not in our own power, for it is a new creation, 2 Cor. 5.17. and the first resurrection, Rev. 20.6. and who can bring a clean thing out of filthiness? Not one, job 14.4. Can the Ethiopian change his skin, or the Leopard her spots? then may they do good, that are accustomed to do evil, Jer. 13.23. with man this change of himself is impossible, but with God all things are possible, Mat. 19.26. He can raise up children unto Abraham of stones, Mat. 3.9. And for his working of it, the wise and powerful God of heaven hath ordained a way & means, and prescribed the use thereof to natural men, of the understanding whereof reason is capable. This means is the preaching of the word, sanctified by prayer, for the blessing of the spirit. The moral law will discover sin, and the danger thereof to a natural man: for by the law comes the knowledge of sin, Rom. 3.20. and of the danger thereof, Gal. 3.10. And by the Gospel comes the knowledge of the remedy, for it is the word of his grace, Acts 20.32. revealing mercy in Christ, john 3.16. and showing the way and means to be made partakers of him. john 3.36. And in the use of these ordinances, a natural man may exercise himself, and wait for God's blessing: He may hear, and apply both the law and gospel, and pray for the blessing of God upon his endeavours. Husbandmen take pains for the precious fruits of the earth, and pray for the blessing of God upon their labour. And why may not natural men do so much for their souls? Surely the neglect of the use of means is and will be the condemnation of many, John. 3.19. For in the means God willeth their gathering, Mat. 23.37. and our Saviour tells the Jews, they would not come unto him that they might have life, John 5.40. saying, that the Queen of the South should rise up in judgement against them, for her pains to hear Solomon's wisdom, and yet a greater than Solomon was there, Mat. 12.42. Therefore wait in the means: as John 5.3, 4, 5. So did Cornelius fast and pray, Acts 10.3. then reverently hear Peter verse 33. The three thousand converted on the day of Pentecost, Acts 2.41. first heard Peter preach, and apply the law to the pricking of their hearts, verse 26.27. than they heard the Gospel, and gladly received it, and after continued in the Apostles doctrine. verse 41, 42. He, that had but one talon might have employed it, and is justly condemned for not so doing, Mat, 25.25. etc. The unbelieving Jew's might have heard Paul and Barnabas preach, but they would not: but put away the word, and judged themselves unworthy of eternal life. Acts 13.46. The second observation. The second thing to be noted in this petition is, the favour and kindness, which David craveth of God, namely, that he would not deliver him to the will of his enemies, so as they should have liberty to accomplish their bloody designs upon him: See Psal. 35.19, 25. Let not them, that are mine enemies, rejoice over me— Let them not say in their hearts, ah, ah, our soul. Psal. 36.11. Let not the foot of pride come against me, and lot not the hand of the wicked renone me. Psal. 71.4. Deliver me, O my God, out of the hands of the wicked, out of the hand of the unrighteous and cruel man. Psal. 140.1, 4, 8. Deliver me, O Lord, from the evil 〈◊〉▪ preserve me from the violent man— keep me O Lord, from the hands of the wicked— grant not, O Lord, the desires of the wicked. The first Reason. The reasons hereof are many. First, respecting himself, as the conscience of his sins. that deserved this evil, to be delivered into the hands of his enemies: for so he knew God threatened to do with his own people, and had formerly performed it, Judg. 2.14, 15. The auger of the Lord was kindled against Israel, and he delivered them into the hands of spoilers, and sold them into the hands of their onemies round about them. The hand of the Lord was against them for evil, as he had said, and sworn unto them. The second Reason. Secondly, in regard of his enemies, whom he knew, first, to be without conscience of dealing justly, and full fraught with all cruelty. This reason is rendered in this verse: for false witnesses are risen up against me, and such as breathe out cruelty. verse 2. they would swallow him up: as Psal. 56.1, 2. For their strength and cruelty he resembles them to strong bulls of Bashan, Psal. 22.12. to ravening and roaring Lions, verse 13. and to dogs, verse 16. Psal. 57.4. set on fire: their teeth are spears and arrows, and their tongue a sharp sword: yea Psal. 140.3. They have sharpened their tongue like a Serpent: adders poison is under their lips. Secondly, he knew they would vaunt and boast of their triumph over him to God's dishonour: as Ps. 35.19, 26. Let not them, that are mine enemies wrongfully, rejoice over me— they rejoice at his hurt, and magnify themselves against him: saying to his greatest grief, where is now thy God? Psal. 42.3.10. Herein no doubt sacrificing to their net, praising their own power, and policy: as the Philistims praised Dagon, for the conquest of Samson, Judg. 16.23. The third Reason. Thirdly, in regard of God; knowing, first, that his power and providence overruled all. Psal. 135.6. whatsoever the Lord pleases, that did he in heaven, and in earth: in the seas, and all deep places. If he speak the word, it is done, Psal. 33.9. Surely, the wrath of man shall praise thee: the remainder of wrath shalt thou restrain, Psal. 76.10. he shall cut off the spirit of Princes, verse 12. He knew they would have no power over him, but by God's permission: as John 19.11. Secondly, that by his sovereignty he might so deal with his dearest servants, either for their trial, as he dealt with Job, or to give way to the wicked, to fill up their sins, in afflicting the godly, that so his justice and power may be glorified in their destruction: so he suffered Pharo●● to afflict his people in Egypt, Exod. 9.16. Rom. 9.17. Thirdly that God having received him into covenant, stood bound to help him, as Psal. 119.94. and Psal. 89.3, 21, 22. This serves for instruction, and admonition. The first Use for instruction. For instruction three ways. First, see here, what may be the estate of the godly, even of God's dearest children: they may be in the hand of their enemies, under the power of their distressors: plainly by the bondage of Israel in Egypt for a long time, Gen. 15.13. with Exod. 1.9, 10, 11, 13, 14. The three servants of God were thus cast into the fiery furnace, Dan 3.20, 21. and Daniel himself into the Lion's den, Dan. 6.16. Jeremy felt this evil, Jer. 26.14. yea Christ himself by the wicked hands of the Jews was taken, crucified, and slain, Acts 2.23. which we are to mark, to prevent rash judgement, as well against others, as also against ourselves, in this case. A fault in which the godly themselves may fall, as well against others, Job 4.7. Remember, I pray thee (saith Eliphaz to job) who ever perished, being innocent? as also against themselves, Is. 49.14. Zion said, the Lord hath forsaken me, and my Lord hath forgotten me, Psal. 22.1. My God, my God, why hast thou forsaken me? But if we mark, every man's deserving by sin, and God's sovereignty over the best, it will stay our hearts and tongues, from the sin of rash judgement. The second Use for instruction. Secondly, this petition shows, that if the godly fall into the hands of the wicked, it is by God's permission and dispensation: for a sparrow lighteth not on the ground, without the will of God. Mat. 10.29. therefore Christ saith to Pilate, thou wouldst have no power over me at all, except it were given thee from above, John 19.11. and the Church saith unto God, thou hast given us like sheep appointed for meat— thou sellest thy people for nought, Psa. 44.11, 12. Paul saith, I think that God hath set us forth the last Apostles, as it were appointed to death. Which is a thing very observable, as the only ground of true patience, Psal. 39.9. with 2. Sam. 16.10, 11, 12. and also of sweet comfort in the greatest persecution: for he hath said, I will not leave thee, nor for sake thee, Heb. 13.5. Ps. 91.15. I will be with him in trouble, Psal. 66.10, 11, 12, Thou, O God, hast proved us, thou hast tried us, as silver is tried. Thou broughtest us into the net, thou laidest affliction upon our loins. Thou causedst men to ride over our heads: we went through fire and through water: but thou broughtest us out into a wealthy place. Mark the comfortable end of the troubles of the godly: as job 23.10. He knoweth the way, that I take; when he hath tried me, I shall come forth as the gold. And so the story shows, Job 42.12. So God blessed the latter end of job more than the beginning. The third Use for instruction. Thirdly, see here, that prayer is a sanctified means to obtain of God safety, and preservation, from the hands of those, that desire our hurt. Thus the Jews escaped from the bloody design of Haman, Eph. 4.16, 17. and 7.3, 4. etc. Thus Jehosaphat escaped in battle, when the Captains of the Chariots beset him about, 2 Chron. 18.31. And thus were he and his people preserved from three Kings, that came against him, 2 Chron. 20.3, 4. etc. And thus was Hezekiah preserved from the great Army of Senacherib, Isaiah 37.21, 33, 34. And no marvel; for as God requires the duty, so he hath made the promise, which he will perform, Psal. 50.15. Psalm 91.15. The use for instruction. For admonition, it serves effectually to stir up every child of God, to become a follower of David, in the performance of this duty, to be much and earnest with God in prayer, for the preservation of himself and the Church of God, out of the hands of their enemies. A most needful duty in these evil times, wherein the enemies of God's Church do band themselves, like Edom, Moab, Geball, Ammon, Amalek and the rest, Psalm 83.3, 4. etc. to root out Religion, to cut off God's people, that the name of Israel be no more in remembrance. Consider the good success of this duty, in this case, by the former examples: How prayer is prevalent with God against enemies. for it is not, as natural men do think a vain thing to serve the Lord, & unprofitable to pray unto him. Mal. 3.14. job 21.15. experience shows, that this duty is prevalent with God, one of these three ways, at all times. Either it prevents their attempts, as the former examples show fully and plainly: or else it procures deliverance out of the enemy's hands, after some time of trial and correction by them, as it did for Peter, when he was kept in prison by Herod, with purpose to put him to death, Acts 12.5, 6. etc. and for Israel to procure their deliverance out of Egypt, Exod. 2.23, 24. or at least, it procures strength of grace, to bear the violence and the cruelty of the enemy, though he proceed to inflict upon them most violent death: as we may see in Steven, Acts 7.59.60. and in the Saints of God, that would not be delivered, that they might obtain a better resurrection, Heb. 11.35. For indeed, when the godly do sincerely perform this duty, though the outward man perish, yet the inward man is renewed daily, 2 Cor. 4.16. and in death itself, the child of God is more than conqueror, Rom. 8.37. Let us not therefore be weary of this duty, the effectual fervent prayer of a righteous man availeth much, Jam. 5.16. while Moses his hands were lifted up, Joshuah prevailed, but when they were let down, Amalek prevailed. Exod. 17.11. God is much moved by prayer, it stays the wrath of God against his people, as Exod. 33.10, 11. etc. Psal. 106.23. Deut. 9.18, 19, 20. And therefore, when God is resolved to bring a judgement, he forbids Jeremy to pray for the Jews, Jer. 7.16. and 11.14. and 14.11. Qu. Is this all we have to do to pray in time of danger? Answ. No, we must likewise serve God's providence in the use of ordinary means, and withal use prayer, for God's blessing thereon. So Moses did for Joshuah, when he fought against Amalek: and Mordecai prayed for Esther, when she went unto Ashuerus in the behalf of the Jews. And besides these, we must have due regard to our estate, and behaviour, when we perform this duty, and pray: and namely, first we must see, that we stand rightly in covenant with God, and be his people, through faith in Christ for then we have a promise of protection, as Psal. 89.3, ●0, 21, 22 and of audience in time of trouble, 2 Chron. 7.13, 14. which encouraged the Church in adversity, Is. 63.19. we are thine, thou never bearest rule over them: they were not called by thy name: And Jeremiah herewith moveth God to mercy, Jer. 14.8, 9 O the hope of Israel, the saviour thereof in time of trouble, why shouldest thou be as a stranger in the land?— as a man that cannot save? yet thou, O Lord, art in the midst of us, and we are called by thy name, leave us not. Secondly, if we have failed by transgression (for in many things we sinne all, Jam. 2.) then we must be careful to renew covenant with God, by renewing our repentance for our sins, and our saith in Christ Jesus: so did the Jews, and found help for deliverance, Judg. 10.10, 15, 16. So did Jehosaphat, and was preserved, 2 Chron. 20.3. etc. This renewing of repentance and faith is, for a Christian, with ●od, as the sounding an alarm on the silver trumpets was, for the old Israelites, when they went out to war: it causeth remembrance before the Lord, that we may be saved from our enemies, Numb. 11.9. Lastly, we must make conscience of new obedience, and do that which the Lord commandeth, then will he be an enemy to our enemies, and an adversary to our adversaries. Exod. 23.22. If herein we approve ourselves the children of Abraham, we shall receive from God the blessing of Abraham, God will bless them, that bless us, and curse them, that curse us, Gen. 12.3. For false witnesses are risen up against me, and such as breathe out cruelty. The reason of David's former request, that he might not be delivered to the will of his enemies, drawn from their unconscionable behaviour, and deadly hatred towards him. Their unconscionable behaviour, they risen up against him, in false witness bearing: their deadly hatred, in breathing out cruelty or violence. Both which may be referred to the same persons: for a man that beareth false witness against his neighbour, is as a maul, and a sword, and a sharp arrow Prov. 25. 1●. all which are evidences of great violence. Yet, because these two sentences are in the original in divers numbers (for the latter is expressed in the singular number, 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 He that breatheth out cruelty) therefore, I take it, in the latter he pointeth out Saul himself, and in the former such, as did falsely accuse him unto Saul. For David elsewhere pointeth out Saul by the term and phrase of a violent man, Psalm 18.48. Thou hast preserved me from the violent man: and Psal. 140.4. Preserve me from the violent man. Here then we have to consider two grievous evils, that befell David from his enemies: the first from saul's flattering followers, the second from Saul himself. The third Observation. For the first, false witnesses did rise up against David, such as without all conscience accused him of evils, whereof he was not guilty. See Psal. 35.11. False witnesses did rise up against me, they laid to my charge things that I knew not, Psal. 56.5. Every day they wrist my words, Ps. 57.4. My soul is among lions: I lie among them that are set on fire, even the sons of men, whose teeth are spears, and their tongue a sharp sword, Psalm 59.7. Behold, they belch out with their mouth, swords are in their lips, Ps. 64.3. They whet their tongue like a sword, and bend their bows to shoot their arrows even bitter words: Such a one was Cush the Benjamite, of whom he complains to God, Psal. 7. see the title▪ and such was Doeg the Edomite, Psalm 52. the title. The first Reason. The reason hereof is twofold. First, God's divine providence disposing, that under this affliction, of sustaining false accusations, David should be a type of Christ who was thus wronged. Mat. 26.59, 60. The second Reason. Secondly, this proceeded from the dominion of corruption in David's enemies themselves: who wanting the fear of God, as Psal. 54.3. and hating David without a cause, Psal. 59.3, 4. even because he followed goodness, Psalm 38.20. and knowing Saul desired to hear evil of David, as 1 Sam. 22.7, 8. that he might have some colour at least to put him to death, to which purpose false witnesses served fitly, as 1 Kings 21.10. therefore to please Saul, and to procure David's hurt, did they thus bear false witness against him. This serves for instruction, admonition, and comfort. The use for instruction. For instruction: see in David's enemies into what fearful evils, and horrible sins, the corruption of nature will bring natural men, whom God doth leave to themselves, even to bear false witness against their neighbour, which is a most heinous and horrible sin, even against the light of nature, which teacheth, that men should not do to others, what they would not have done unto themselves: and the very heathen have most severely punished this sin. And the Word of God accounts false witnesses to be the children of the devil: for who is meant by Belial. 2 Cor. 6.15. but the devil? So the Syriac renders the word by Satan. Now false witness bearers are the children of Belial, 1 Kings 20.10. Prov. 6.12. and 16.17. and 19.28. they do the lusts of the devil, John 8.44. in a most horrible thing, even putting upon God, the person of the devil, to be the patron of a lie. The Use for admonition. For admonition, to wicked men, that dare be bold upon such ungodly practices: consider the heinousness of this sin, as proper to the wicked, and the dreadful judgements it must needs bring upon them, being so dishonourable to God, and abominable in his sight. See Prov. 6.16, 19 Psal. 52.4, 5. Thou lovest all devouring words, O thou deceitful tongue: God shall likewise destroy thee for ever, and root thee out of the land of the living. The Use for comfort. For comfort, to the godly, that are thus wronged: it hath befallen better than thyself, Christ Jesus, David, Stephen, etc. See Luke 23.31. and let the godly consider, that the devil is the false accuser of the brothers, Rev. 12.10. if they can find, that they have repent truly, and do rest upon Christ, for pardon, and walk in new obedience, they may rest assured of mercy upon God's promise, Prov. 28.13. 1 John 1.9. and so prove the devil a false accuser in their consciences, as he was to Job, chap. 13.16. For when God hath pardoned sin, he doth not behold it, Numb. 23.21. his sin is covered, Psalm 32.1. The second branch of the reason, why David desires to be kept out of the hands of his enemies, is, because of their deadly hatred towards him, The fourth Observation. Saul, David's arch-enemy, breathed out violence against him, 1 Sam. 21.31. send and fetch him unto me, for he shall surely die: therefore doth David so often style him by the name of the violent man, Psal. 140.1, 4. and means him and his followers, when he saith, mine enemies hate me, with hatred of violence, Psal. 25.19. In heart you work wickedness, you weigh the violence of your hands in the earth, Psal. 85.2. Magistrates should dispense justice and mercy, Psal. 101.1. but Sanl and his counsel became the tradesmen of violence: violence covered them as a garment, Psal. 73.6. The 1. reason. The reason hereof in Saul was twofol. First, envy at David's honour: for when the women sang to his renown, Saul hath slain his thousand, and David his ten thousand, Saul was very wrath, and the saying displeased him: and he eyed David from that day forward, and shortly after cast a javelin at him to kill him. 1 Sam. 18.7, 9, 10, 11. plainly verifying that of Solomon, wrath is cruel, and anger is outrageous, but who is able to stand before envy, Prov. 27.4. The second Reason. Secondly, ambition, an insatiable desire to enjoy the honour of the Kingdom in his own person, and to leave the same to his posterity, which he feared would be crossed by David, and thereupon hates him to the death: so as he cannot endure his own son Jonathan, who spoke in his behalf, but calls him the son of a perverse rebellious woman, who had chosen the son of Jesse, David, to his own confusion— for as long as the son of Jesse liveth on the ground, thou shalt not be established, nor thy Kingdom: wherefore send, and fetch him unto me, for he shall surely die, 1 Sam. 20.30, 31. This serves for instruction, and for admonition. The first Use for instruction. For instruction two ways. First, touching the state of the godly, that they are in this world liable to the deadly hatred of ungodly Kings and Governors. A grievous thing to God's poor servants, but too true, as with divine testimony plain instances will manifest. For testimony, Mat. 10.18. Ye shall be brought before Governors, and Kings for my sake, for a testimony against them, Mat. 24.9. They shall deliver you up to be afflicted, and shall kill you: and ye shall be hated of all nations for my name's sake. For instance, consider the bondage of Israel under Pharaoh in Egypt, Exod. 1, 2, and 3. chapters: their seventy years' captivity in Babylon, Jer. 25.11. the bloody design of Haman for the destruction of all the Jews, in the Kingdom of Ahashverus, Esther 3.8, 9, 10, 13. the persecutions of the Apostles by the Jews, Acts 4.24, 25, 26, 27. the persecutions of the Apostles and other Christians by Herod, Acts 12.1, 2, 3, 4. Fox Acts and Monuments. Tom. 1. and the ten most bloody persecutions by the heathen Roman Emperors, recorded in the Ecclesiastical stories. The second Use for instruction. Secondly, see in this violence of Saul against David, an infallible sign of the dominion of malice, and envy in the heart: namely, when the mouth doth breath out violence: for of the abundance of the heart the mouth speaketh: an evil man out of the evil treasure of his heart bringeth forth evil. Mat. 12.34, 35. Indeed sometimes the godly may over-shoot themselves, in words of violence, through sharp and sudden provocations, as Job and Jeremy did, when they cursed the time of their birth, Job 3.3. Jer. 20.14. therefore the dominion of malice, by violent words, must be judged, not by some particular acts, but by ordinary and continual course: as the Apostle doth, Rom. 3.9, 14. prove man to be in the state of nature, under sin, when his mouth is full of cursing and bitterness: wherewith that of Solomon doth fitly accord, Prov. 10.11. saying, violence covereth the mouth of the wicked, and Prov. 16.29, 30. A violent man shutteth his eyes, to devise froward things, moving his lips he bringeth evil to pass: like unto Saul, Acts 9.1. who breathed out threatening against the Church. The first Use for admonition. For admonition, it serves two ways. First, to the godly, not to think it strange, that the great ones of the world do frown upon them, for they may breathe out violence against them. They are by nature the seed of the Serpent, as well as others, and so continue, till they be effectually called; and therefore no marvel, though they show enmity to the seed of the woman, and join with the old dragon, in bitter persecution against the true members of the Church: as Revel. 12.17. It is wisdom therefore for the godly, to prepare for it, by getting strength of grace, to cleave fast to the Lord, in the strongest oppositions of the world: whereat our blessed Saviour directly aimeth. Luke 14.26, 27. John 16.33. And when their violence is breathing out against them, then to do as David did in like case, namely, for sure direction in acceptable carriage towards God and men, to meditate in God's word, Psal. 119.23. and verse 95. The wicked have waited for me to destroy me: but I will consider thy testimonies. verse 161. Princes have persecuted me without cause: but mine heart standeth in awe of thy word. And for preservation and deliverance give themselves to prayer, as Psal. 140.1. etc. Psal. 35.1. Psal. 59.1, 2, 3. The second Use for admonition. Secondly, this seruss very profitably to all natural men, to warn them to consider their behaviour, towards those whom they do not love: for if, like Saul toward David, they breathe out violence with their mouth, than no doubt, as it was in Saul, the hellish fire of rage and fury is kindled in their breast: which is a plain evidence, that original corruption hath dominion in them, they are yet carnal, sold under sin, they are in the snare of the devil, held captive by him at his will. 2 Tim. 2.26. And as, in this particular case of envy and wrath, the dominion of corruption is discerned, by the ordinary fruits of these corrupt affections, in bitter words, and cruel deeds; so it may be in any other sin. Filthy speaking, and wanton dalliance, are plain flames of the fire of lust: when the mouth is full of cursing and swearing, the heart undoubtedly is full of corruption: such stinking breath argues unsound lungs. Coal mines, that lie deep in the earth, do ordinarily discover themselves by black smuts, in the outward face of the ground: and so doth the corruption of nature, in the heart, bewray its dominion in natural men, by their ordinary practice of sin in life. Solomon makes the desire of sleep the smut of sluggishness. Prov. 24.33. and keeping company with drunkards. seeking where the good liquor is, and sitting by it, the smuts of drunkenness, Prov. 23.20, 30. So his oppression, hard dealing, lying, and deceiving for gain, the smut of covetousness, Mich. 2.2. An high look is a shrewd smut of a proud heart, Psat. 101.5. and so is meddling with matters above our place, Psal. 131.1. and humouring those, that may be means of our advancemeut: whether by flattery, with Absolom, 2 Sam. 15.2, 3. or by bribery, with the devil himself: that for the honour of homage from our Saviour Christ, offers to give all the Kingdoms of the world, Mat. 4.8, 9 Let all Symonists in the Church, and bribers in the Common wealth. look towards their ghostly father: for like will to like, the briber to the devil. Now when, by these smuts of sin, they discern the black mine of corruption, than (unless they will be as the fuel of hell fire) they must set themselves to seek a change of estate. This flesh and blood cannot effect: for the way of man is not in himself, Jer, 10.23. man, accustostomed to do evil, can no more do good, than the Ethiopian can change her skin, or the Leopard her spots, Jer. 13.23. Yet with God this is possible, Mat. 19.26. He can raise up children unto Abraham of stones, Mat. 3.9. And this change he worketh by regeneration, whereby we are born again, not of flesh, nor of blood, nor of the will of man, but of God, John 1.13. even by his spirit blessing the word, unto our effectual calling into his holy mountain, his true Church, where the wolf shall dwell with the lamb, and the leopard lie down with the kidd, etc. Is. 11.6. etc. where most cruel and bloody minded men, as Saul was before his conversion, Acts 9.1. shall lay aside their cruel nature, and live most lovingly, and peaceably with the children of God: as Acts 9.26. and 20.24. Now this holy calling is wrought by God, in the use of means ordinarily, even in the word preached; the law to discover sin, Rom. 3.20. and the gospel to sow the seeds of grace, Acts 20, 24. Herein must we exercise ourselves as Cornelius did, Acts 10.33. and as Lydia did, Acts 16.14. and sanctify our endeavour therein, by prayer to God for the blessing of his spirit: for by prayer the spirit is obtained, Luke 11.13. of those that by repentance turn from sin. Prov. 1.23. and by new obedience endeavour to adorn the gospel of Christ. Acts 5.32. Thus waiting on the Lord, we may with comfort expect his blessing: as the poor impotent people did for their bodily cure, at the pool of Bethesda, by the Angels moving of the water, John 5.1. etc. Verse 13. I had fainted, unless I had believed to see the goodness of the Lord in the land of the living. Vers. 14. Wait on the Lord, be of good courage and he shall strengthen thine heart: Wait, I say, on the Lord. The meaning of the words. THese two last verses contain the third and last part of the Psalm, which is this: Upon acknowledgement of the great benefit he received by believing, he doth notably encourage and stir up himself, and others, to wait still on God by faith. The acknowledgement of the great benefit of his believing on God's promise is, verse 13. the encouragement to his own soul, and others also, by faith to wait on God is in the last verse. The sentence in the original, setting down the acknowledgement of the great benefit David had by believing, Aposioposis. is for some words, though not in sense, defective and imperfect, requiring some supply: which the scope and circumstances of the place do show must be, either what his enemies would have done, if he had not believed; namely, they had prevailed and overthrown him: and so (a) Jwius and Piscator. some supply the defect: or what he himself should have done, if he had believed; namely, fainted, and sunk under the burden of violent persecution, as vatablus, whom our translations follow. For we must not leave out the word 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉, Bellarm. except, as the Papists do, saying, it was left out by the Septuagint, because it was of no great moment. Following therefore the supply, which is rightly made in our bibles, the words bear this sense: as if he should have said, so great was my persecution, that I had fainted, and so the enemy had prevaited against me, unless I had believed to see the goodness of the Lord, that is, to enjoy those good things, both temporal and spiritual, which the Lord hath promised me of his goodness and bounty. So the phrase is taken, Eccles. 2.1. Enjoy pleasure: in the Hebrew it is, see good, as also verse 24. and 3.13. and 5.18. In the land of the living, that is, in this world, here on earth, where the living are: so, with the scope of the Prophet here, the use of the phrase generally in Scripture doth show it must be taken, and understood, as shall be fully showed afterward. In the words thus understood note two things. First, the name, or title which the holy ghost gives to this world. Secondly, that in this world God vouchfases to impart his goodness unto the sons of men. Thirdly, that David for his part believed to enjoy God's goodness here on earth. Fourthly, that by believing he was upheld from fainting in himself, and from ruin by his enemies. The first observation. For the first, God by the mouth of David here calleth this world the land of the living. This habitable place of the earth, wherein men live a natural life, is the land of the living, in the stile and and phrase of the holy Ghost. This is plain, and certain by the ordinary use of this phrase in Scripture. See Job 28.12. The place of wisdom is not found in the land of the living, that is, among living men in this world: for it were absurd to say, the place of understanding were not to be found in heaven, seeing it is there said, God understandeth the way thereof, verse 23. See also, Psal. 52.5. David foretelling the destruction of Deeg, saith God shall take thee away, and pluck thee out of thy dwelling place, and root thee out of the land of the living: not out of heaven, where he never was planted, nor grew, but of this world, where he grew, as a great tree, till God plucked him up, and rooted him out, by death and destruction, Is. 38.11. I said, I shall not see the Lord, even the Lord, in the land of the living, that is, among the living here on earth: for who can imagine, that Hezekiah meant, he should not see the Lord in heaven? But here on earth the godly saw him in his ordinances: as Psal. 63.2. and 68.25. and his meaning he further cleareth in the end of the verse, I shall behold men no more with the Inhabitants of the world. The same phrase in the same sense is used, Is. 53.8. Ezek. 26.20. and 32.23. Psal. 116.9. and 142.2. Jer, 11.9. and in the same sense is the like phrase taken, the light of the living, Job 33.30. Psal. 56.13. The Reason. The reason why this habitable word is called the land of the living is, because God created it, and doth maintain and preserve it for man's habitation, while he lives a natural life in this world. Psal. 115.16. The heaven, even the heavens are the Lords: the earth hath he given to the children of men. And opposeth hereunto the place of the dead, calling it a land of darkness, and the shadow of death a land of darkness, as darkness itself, and of the shadow of death, without any order, and where the light is as darkness, Job 10.22, 23. a land of forgetfulness, Psal. 88.12. This serves for instruction, and for admonition. The use for instruction. For instruction, see here plainly, that it is an error, and mistaking, to take the land of the living for the Kingdom of heaven, as generally the Papists do, following herein the ancient fathers, who * Hieron. in Ps. 26. August. in Ps. 26. Cassiodorus. many of them do so expound it. Which I do therefore note to show, how uncertain a rule it is, to tie ourselves, for the right understanding of Scriptures, to the exposition thereof made to the ancient fathers: for in very many things, they differ in judgement one from another, as the learned do plainly show. (a) Whitak. de Script. interpret. Controv. 1. quaest. 5. cap. 8. Reynolds & Hart. And they themselves, in differences, do disclaim the authority of men, though never so learned, and send us to the Scripture. See August. Ep. 19 Iren. 4. adversus haeres. cap. 63. The Use for admonition. For admonition, that we consider God's providence over us herein, causing us to have our time in the land of the living, which we cannot deny to be a great favour: and therefore should endeavour to walk worthy of this blessing which after the example of Christ is, to work the works of him that sent us, John 9.4. First, that we repent of our sins, Mat. 3.2. Luke 13.3, 5. Secondly, that we believe on Jesus Christ, whom God hath sent to be our Saviour, John 6.28. This God commandeth to all, that would be saved, 1 John 3.21. with 5.13. Thirdly, that we work out our salvation with fear and trembling, Phil. 2.12. which is then done, when with reverence to God, who worketh all grace, we do humbly and constantly exercise ourselves in the means thereof, ever making conscience of sin, till we receive the end of our faith, which is the salvation of our souls, 1 Pet 1.9. The second Observation. The second point to be here observed is this, That in the land of the living, that is in this world, God doth bountifully impart his goodness to the sons of men: this is here taken for granted, and elsewhere plainly affirmed, Psal. 33.5. The earth is full of the goodness of the Lord, Psal. 119.64. The earth is full of thy mercy, Psal. 145.9. The Lord is good to all: even the brute creatures do daily taste of his bounty, Psal. 104.27.28. They all wait upon him, he gives them their meat in due season. That he giveth they gather: he openeth his hand, and they are filled with good. The first Reason. The reason hereof is twofold. First, because in nature and essence he is goodness itself, love itself, and bounty itself, and so can no more detain his goodness from the creatures, than the sun can his light from the world, when it is risen: and indeed by the exercise of goodness and bounty doth he manifest this essential property: as Psalm 119.68. Thou art good, and dost good. Jam. 1.17. By his good gifts and perfect givings he is seen to be the father of lights. The second Reason. Secondly, by his free and abundant communication of goodness he binds every creature unto him, and man particularly to honour him: for even temporal benefits are his witnesses, that he, from whom they come, is the true God, and that he must be honoured for them: see Acts 14.17. Hereupon the godly do stir up themselves to due and daily thankfulness: as Psal. 103.1, 2. and 116.12. This serves for instruction, admonition and comfort. The first Use for instruction. For instruction two ways. First, this shows plainly, that the true God is not known, as he ought to be, no not in this property of goodness. That which Pharaoh professed of himself without fear, Exod. 5.2. who is the Lord? I know not the Lord: is true of all natural men: for if they rightly knew this one property of goodness and bounty, in the communication of blessings, their hearts would cleave unto him, in an unfeigned desire to be his by covenant: for every man is a friend to him that giveth gifts. Prov. 19.6. while they therefore say, who is the Almighty, that we should serve him? and what profit should we have, if we pray unto him? Job 21.15. they show themselves worse, than the devil himself, who said, doth Job serve God for nought? hast thou not made an hedge about him? Thou hast blessed the work of his hands, Job 1.9, 10. The second Use for instruction. Secondly, this shows, what manner of persons all those aught to be, who call God father, namely, free and forward in doing good: so we shall resemble our heavenly father: which is enjoined us. Mat. 5.44, 55. This was Christ Jesus his property, while he was on earth, he went about doing good, Acts 10.38. And it is commanded, and commended to us all, Eph. 5.1. Be followers of God as dear children, and walk in love, Heb. 13.16. To do good, and to communicate forget not. The first Use for admonition. For admonition, it serves three ways. First, in the want of any good thing to go to God by prayer, for he is the father of lights from whom all good cometh, and for the obtaining thereof, with the use of lawful means, join prayer to him, that saith, ask and ye shall have, Mat. 7.7. But withal we must look, that we go not on in a course of sin, for that withholds good things, Jer. 5.25. and causeth God not to hear our prayers, Ps. 66.18. The second use for admonition. Secondly, this must move us to labour to be such, as shall surely partake of God's best blessings: For God is the great housekeeper, that makes provision for children, for servants, yea for bruit creatures, even for his very dogs. And answerable to his greatness in provision, is his justice, and wisdom in distribution: he gives not to all alike, but to every one his portion, and will not have children's bread given to dogs, Matth. 15.26. Indeed for temporal blessings he many times gives a larger portion to the wicked, then to his children, as we may see by the outward state of Divet and Lazarus, Luke 10.19, 20. as great housekeepers will many times feast strangers more liberally, than their own children. Yet God hath better things for his own, then for the world, as Mat. 3.11, 16. And the right way to partake of the best blessings is, The right way to partake of the best blessings. first in general to make sure we be in covenant which God through faith in Christ Jesus: for he that cometh unto God must believe, Heb. 11.6. yea believe in Christ, for he is the way, the truth, and the life, no man cometh to the Father but by him, John 14.6. Now being thus in covenant, all is ours, whether things present▪ or things to come, 1 Cor. 3.21, 22. we partake hereby of his fatness and sweetness, Rom. 11.17. and God will prevent us with blessings of goodness, Psal. 21.5. In particular, to testify the truth of our faith, we must get and manifest the grace of love: for this is a sure companion of faith, Gal. 5.6. and a sure fruit of the same sanctifying spirit, Gal. 5.22. and this entitles us unto God's best blessings, 1 Cor. 2.9. What eye hath not seen, ear hath not heard, nor heart conceived, hath God prepared for them that love him, 1 John. 3.14. We know we have passed from death to life, because we love the brothers. Secondly, we must fear God with a filial fear: by the consideration of God's power and presence, seeking to bring our hearts to true conscience of eschewing evil, and doing good, wherein his grace is certainly made evident, as Job 1.8. Prov. 14.2. Thus shall we be surely entitled to God's blessings; Psal. 25.12, 13, 14. What man is he that feareth the Lord?— His soul shall lodge in goodness, or dwell at ease (as it is translated) The secret of the Lord is with them that fear him, and he will show them his covenant. Psal. 31.19. O how great is thy goodness, which thou hast laid up for them that fear thee, and wrought for them that trust in thee, even before the sons of men. Thirdly, we must walk in obedience, in well doing, according to the duties of our places, labouring in all things to keep a good consciente, both towards God and men. Herein stands the power of godliness, which hath the promise of the life that now is, and of that which is to come. 1 Tim. 4.8. No good thing shall be lacking to him that walketh uprightly. Psal. 84.11. What man is he that desireth life, and loveth many days, that he may see good? Keep thy tongue from evil, and thy lips from speaking guile. Depart from evil, and do good, seek peace and pursue it, Psal. 34.12, 13. Yea to them, that by continuance in well-doing, seek for glory, and honour, and immortality, shall be eternal life— glory, honour, and peace, to every man that worketh good, Rom. 2.7.10. The thi●d Use for admonition. Thirdly, when we enjoy any good, we must remember whence it comes, and stir up ourselves to true thankfulness, 1 Thess. 5.18. In all things give thanks. Psal. 50.23. He that offereth praise and thanks honoureth him. Therefore we must with David study the art of thankfulness, as Psal. 116.12. What shall I render unto the Lord, for all his benefits towards me? and call upon our souls for the performance of this duty: as Psal. 103.1, 2. Bless the Lord, O my soul, etc. remembering the Samaritan. Luke 17.15, 19 who, upon his thanksgiving, was sent away with a better blessing for his soul, than he obtained for his body by humble supplication. For comfort, this makes greatly to all the godly, in any want or distress: The Use for comfort. for surely their God is kind to the unkind and in temporal blessings very liberal, even to the wicked: as we may see, Psal. 73.3, 4, 5. etc. The wicked have proserity: there are no bands in their death, their strength is fi●m, etc. Psal. 17.14. They have their portion in this world: their bellies God filleth with his hid treasure. Now all they have are but effects and fruits of his common favour: what then do we think hath he in store for those whom he loves in Christ? Surely for them he hath a worthy dowry: as 1 Sam. 1.5. Consider, Mat. 6.26. etc. Behold the fowls of the air, for they sow not, neither do they reap, nor gather into barns: yet your heavenly father feedeth them; are not you much better than they? etc. when a gentleman keepeth his dogs and his hogs, fat and fair, shall we think he will suffer his children to starve, for want of food and raiment? Nay, nay, though dear parents may sometimes prove unnatural, and a mother forget her sucking child, yet will not God forget his children, Is. 49.15. The third Observation. The third thing to be noted here is this. David believed that he should enjoy the goodness of the Lord in this world. Psal 116.9, 10. I will walk before the Lord, in the land of the living. I believed, therefore have I spoken: and more plainly, Psal. 23.1, 5, 6. The Lord is my shepherd, I shall not lack— Thou preparest a table before me, in the presence of mine enemies: thou annointest my head with oil, my cup runneth over: Surely, goodness and mercy shall follow me all the days of my life. The Reason. The reason of this his persuasion was the goodness of God to David, both making promises of these blessings unto David, and also enabling him by grace to rest and rely thereon, as he confesseth unto God, Psal. 119.40. Remember the word unto thy servant upon which thou hast caused me to hope. The promises of God to David, were twofold: First general, which are good to all God's people, that be truly in covenant with God, and make conscience of obedience: which are at large set down, Levit. 26.3, 4, etc. to 14. and Deut. 28.1. etc. to 15. and fully, though briefly, Psal. 34.9. there is no want to those that fear him. Psal. 37.3. Trust in the Lord and do good, so shalt thou dwell in the land, and verily thou shalt be fed: Secondly, more particular and personal unto David himself alone, for the honour of the Kingdom over Israel, assured by special promise, Psal. 89.20, 21, 22. and ratified by holy anointing, 1 Sam. 16.13. and for the building and blessing of his house, 1 Sam. 7.11.27. This serves for instruction, and for admonition. For instruction, The use for instruction. see here plain evidence of the great use and benefit of faith, it serves to entitle us, not only unto spiritual and heavenly blessings in Christ, but even to the good things of this world, in temporal blessings; as here David lays hold on God's goodness promised in this world. So did Noah by faith build the ark, for the saving of his household in the flood, Heb. 11.7. So did Paul receive safety to himself, and those that sailed with him, in his dangerous voyage, Acts 27.24, 25. Thus Asa and his people received victory in time of battle, 2 Chron. 18.8. and Jehosaphats preservation from assault, 2. Chron. 20.20. And what shall I more say (saith the Apostle) for the time would fail me to tell of Gideon, of Barack, of Samson, of Jephta, of Samuel, David, and the prophets: who through faith subdued Kingdoms, etc. Heb. 11.32, 33, 34. So as we may well say of faith, what the Apostle doth of godliness, 1 Tim. 4.8. that it is profitable for all things, and hath the promise of all kind of blessings: for true faith is the prime grace of godliness, to the sure entitling of us to the best blessings; as Gal. 5.6. Here indeed every Christian must wisely and rightly consider the different nature of blessings promised, and according to the Lords meaning, entitle themselves thereunto. For some promises concern blessings, simply necessary to true happiness, as be justification and sanctification: other promises are made of blessings, both spiritual and temporal, which are very good and comfortable, but not simply necessary to salvation, as be peace of conscience, and joy in the holy ghost, and all degrees of spiritual graces, above that which shows the truth and life thereof, as abundance of knowledge, strong faith, fervent love, and the like● which high degrees of grace some have had, as Abraham, Rom. 4.19, 20. the Centurion, Luke 7.9. and the woman of Canaan. Mat. 15.28. whereas the disciples themselves were, for a good while, men of little faith. Mat. 6.30. and 16.8. and the Church of Philadelphia had a little strength, Rev. 3.8. Now the promises of blessings, simply necessary to true happiness, are made absolutely in Christ to true believers, without any other condition, as Acts 16, 31. John 3.16. but the promises of blessings, not simply necessary to salvation, must be understood to be made with the exception of the cross, which is this. That God, out of his sovereignty over his dearest children, may deny the accomplishment of these promises, either for correction, or prevention of sin, or trial of grace, which well considered prevents much perplexity, and distress in soul, to those, that labour to walk honestly, and yet are more under the cross, than some of God's children be, with whom they live. For admonition, The Use for admonition. this serves notably to stir up every one to get true faith: for every one desires to enjoy God's goodness, many say, who will show us any good? Psal. 4.6. Now the way is to get faith, which entitles us to all God's promise: and the right course herein is, to begin with the main promise in Christ, to get that faith in him, which may entitle us to his righteousness: for in him we are restored to sanctified right in the creature, and in him all things are ours, things present, and things to come. 1 Cor. 3.21, 22. All the promises of God are in him, yea and in him amen. 2 Cor. 1.20. Therefore Christ himself bids his Disciples, First seek the King doom of God and his righteousness; and then all these things, pertaining to food and raiment, shall be ministered unto us, Mat. 6.33. For if God spared not his own some, but gave him for us, how shall he not with him give us all things also? Rom. 8.32. Now this true faith, is never severed from true repentance, not new obedience: for by sight and sorrow for sin the way is prepared for Christ and his Kingdom. Mal. 3.1. and Mat. 21.32. And new obedience in eschewing evil, and doing good, is that behaviour which comes from love, a fruit of the spirit, by which faith worketh. Gal. 5.6, 22. The fourth and last point to be here observed is, The fourth Observation. the benefit which David received, by believing God's word and promise, hereby he was preserved from fainting in himself, and from being foiled by his enemies, in their most violent opposition: for one or both of these evils he confesseth would have befallen him, if he had not believed: see Psal. 3.3, 6. Thou Lord art a buckler for me, there is his saith, I will not be afraid of ten thousand of the people, that have set themselves against me round about: there is his security from faith, Psal. 57.1, 3. My soul trusteth in thee: yea in the shadow of thy wings will I make my refuge, till these calamities be overpast— He shall send from heaven and save me, etc. The reason hereof is plain: The Reason. for his faith entitled him to God's power and providence, for protection and safety in time of danger, from whence sprang that courage, which upheld him from fainting in the depth of distress: whereas, if he had wanted faith, he had indeed been out of covenant with God, and so void of title to God's power and providence, and so must needs have fainted, when worldly power and refuge had wholly failed him. This Davids enemies knew well, and therefore, thinking that God had forsaken him, they do thereupon encourage themselves to persecute him, with assurance to take him, Psal. 71.11. This serves for instruction, The first Use for instruction. and for admonition. For instruction two ways. First, it lets us plainly see the great evil of unbelief, for it takes away heart and courage in time of persecution. This we may seeby Nabal, whose heart died within him, when he heard of deadly danger already past, 1 Sam. 25.37. and in Saul, when the Philistines came upon him, he was sore troubled at the sight of that huge Army. 1 Sam. 28.5. and afterwards fainted, when he heard, by the witch of Endors means, the heavy tidings of his approaching ruin, verse 20. and the day following desperately fell upon his own sword, when the Philistines pressed near unto him, 1 Sam. 31.4. Hence Ahaz and his people's hearts were shaken as a leaf, when they heard, that Syria and Ephraim were conspired against him, Is. 7.2. at which time the Lord promised him mercy: but withal tells him of the hurt of unbelief. verse 9 If ye will not believe, ye shall not be established. Secondly, here again see the great benefit of faith, The second Use for instruction. both for courage and comfort in time of danger, for the righteous is bold as a Lyon. Prov. 28.1. when the wicked fly, and no man pursueth: and also for safety and deliverance, while it is a blessing to them. See Psalm 31.19, 20. Psalm 91.1, 2, 9 For admonition, The Use for admonition. it serves notably to move every one to get the grace of true faith, and to set the same a working in the time of danger. This world is full of evils and troubles, as the Sea is of storms and waves: now faith is as the stern that guides, and the anchor that holds fast, against the greatest blasts and billows. Heb. 6.19. this entitles us to God's power and providence, which is like the pillar of a cloud by day, and fire by night, to guide and keep us, as it did Israel, Exod. 13.21, 22. and 14.19. This gave courage to the three children. Dan. 3.16, 17, 18. Verse 14. wait on the Lord: be of good courage, and he shall strengthen thine heart: wait, I say, on the Lord. THese words are the Prophet's zealous exhortation and encouragement, The meaning of the words. both to his own soul and to others to wait on God, and be of good courage, meaning in time of trouble and affliction. Unto which good duties he doth stir up himself and others, by the benefit they shall receive thereby: viz. God will strengthen their hearts: and afterward repeats the first duty again, for waiting on God to show the necessity of it. So that here in general we have to handle the duties propounded, and the reason to enforce them. The duties are two, both of them respecting our behaviour in time of affliction: First, to wait on God: secondly, to be of good courage. For the first to wait on God, is patiently to tarry the Lords leisure, for the things we desire, whether it be to be freed from evils, or made partakers of blessings, or both; though here the exhortation hath special conference to expectation of deliverance from evils. So that the first thing we have here to note is this. That every child of God, The first Observation. who is under any evils, of body, or mind, or both, must stir up his heart to wait the Lords good pleasure, and leisure for deliverance, Psal. 130.6. Let Israel hope in the Lord, Luke 21.19. By your patience possess yourselves, when you are betrayed, by parents, kinds folks, and friends: now waiting on God is the holy art, or work of patience, Rom. 8.25. The examples of God's children, professing the practice of this duty, are many: as of Jacob. Gen. 49.10. I have waited for thy salvation, O Lord. Job 14.4. All the days of mine appointed ●ime will I wait. David. Psal. 130.5.6. I wait for the Lord, yea, my soul doth wait, my soul waiteth for the Lord, more than they that watch for the morning. Yea, this is the practice of the Church itself, Is. 25.9. It shall be said in that day, lo, this is our God, we have waited for him, and he will save us. This is the Lord, we have waited for him. All which are an excellent cloud of faithful witnesses, showing plainly, that the duty is required of God, and that the performance of it is acceptable in his sight. The reasons hereof are plain. The first R●●●●●. First, all afflictions come by God's disposing and ruling providence: a● Is. 45.7. I create peace and evil. Amos 3.6. Is there evil in the City, and the Lord hath done it? and the removing of them is his doing also: for he doth heal and bind up, as well as tear and smile, Hos. 6.2. Jer. 33.6. Therefore it is wisdom to go to him that smitteth, and to wait upon sin for help. Secondly, waiting on God is a work of faith, The second Reason. Is. 28.16. and ascribes unto God the honour of the blessing we wait for: when as refusing to wait on God hew aies an evil heart of unbelief: as 2 Kings 6.33. Wherefore should I wait on the Lord any longer? Thirdly, The third Reason. by waiting on God we are surely entitled to singular benefits, Lam. 3.25. The Lord is good unto them that wait for him. See this his goodness in sundry particular blessings. First, they shall inherit the earth, that is, every good and comfortable blessing in this world, Psalm 37.9. Secondly, God will save them from their enemies, Prov. 20.22. Thirdly, he heareth their cry and prayer, Psal. 40.1. Fourthly, they shall never be ashamed, Psal. 25.3. Is. 49.23. Fifthly, they shall renew their strength, Is. 40.30. Sixtly, God prepareth for them blessings spiritual in Christ, which surpass the conceit and reach of man, Is. 64.4. This serves for instruction, and for admonition. For instruction, it may well inform us to conceive, The use for instruction. what is like to be our estate in this world, in regard of troubles: namely, seeing we must wait upon God for deliverance from them, it seems he would have us to resolve, they may be our portion, here on earth. When an earthly King enjoins all his subjects to prepare arms, and be in readiness, they will easily conceive they shall have wars. And thus deals the Lord with his children, he bids them wait upon him, for deliverance from troubles, when they come. Now patiented waiting is the act of hope in God for his help: which is one part of defensive a ●●our in time of trouble: as Luke 21.19. by your patience possess your souls, Eph. 6.15. And your feet shod with the preparation of the gospel of peace: which needed not but for afflictions, which are plainly foretold, John 16.33. Acts 14.22.2 Tim. 2.12. and preparation for them enjoined Luke 14.26, 27 amplified ●here by two resemblances. verse 28. etc. For admonition, The Use for admonition. it serves effectually to stir up every godly man, to make sure he be endued with these graces and give himself to that behaviour, which may enable him with patience to wait on the Lord, in the time of affliction. Every good husband is provident in summer to make provision for winter: and shall not Christians be wise for their souls in the like? The way to Christian patience. The sure way to Christian patience is this. First, to break off the course of every sin by true repentance, for the guilt of sin takes away peace of conscience, unless it be seared: and they, that are in that estate and case, are like the troubled Sea, when it cannot rest, whose waters cast out mire and dirt, Is. 57.20. who can rightly wait on God for nothing, but judgements: for while they go on in sin, they have no title to mercy, and therefore it is said the hope of the ungodly shall perish, Prov. 10.28. it shall be like the giving up of the ghost, Job 11.20. but if they repent, putting iniquity fare away, as Job 11.14. then there is hope. verse 18. Secondly, they must believe in God through Christ: for this they are justified and have peace with God, Rom. 5 1. and this faith is the ground of things hoped for, Heb. 11.1. and when it is tried in affliction it bringeth forth patience, Jam. 1.3. the perfect work whereof is this waiting on God here enjoined. Thirdly, they must fear God, by remembering his hand and providence in these evils that lie upon them: for a sparrow lights not on the ground without his will, Mat. 10.29. This will check and suppress both repining and grudging towards God, as Luke 23.34.49. and envy, and desire of revenge against men, and give us hope of a comfortable end. Prov. 23.17, 18. Let not thine heart envy sinners, but be thou in the fear of the Lord all the day long: for surely there is an end, and thine expectation shall not be cut off. Fourthly, they must walk in obedience, Psal. 7, 34. wait on the Lord, and keep his may, and he shall exalt thee to inherit the earth. Be of good courage] The second duty, whereunto David stirs up himself, and others in the time of affliction: namely, they must not suffer themselves to be daunted, dismayed, or faint-hearted, but stir up themselves, encourage their hearts, and keep fast the confidence of their hope, even in the depth of distress: this is the meaning. Mark then, The third Observation. God's children must not suffer themselves to be dismayed, or daunted in time of affliction, but cheer up their hearts, and encourage themselves in the Lord their God. See Psal. 31.24. Be of good courage, Is. 35.3. strengthen the weak hands, and confirm the feeble knees, 1 Pet. 3.4. not being dismayed with any terror: even as David did, when his own men would have stoned him, he encouraged himself in the Lord his God. 1 Sam. 30.6. and this is the meaning of the Apostles charge. 1 Cor. 16.3. Stand fast in the faith, quit you like men, be strong. The reasons hereof are plain, and of great importance. The first Reason. First, to be fearful and faint-hearted in affliction comes, either from the want, or at least from the weakness of grace, even of that most excellent and needful grace of faith: as Solomon saith, If thou be faint in the day of adversity, thy strength is small, Prov. 24.10. even thy faith: as Christ told his Disciples, in a great storm upon the Sea, Matth. 8.26. Why are ye fearful, O ye of little faith? Now there is great danger herein, for hence comes Apostasy in Religion, when men withdraw themselves, for fear of persecution. In those the Lords soul takes no pleasure: such drawing back is unto perdition, Heb. 10.38, 39 and such fearful ones are set in the first rank of those, that must be cast into the burning lake. Rev. 21.8. The second Reason. Secondly, God's children must do as much for God's glory, in a good cause, as wicked men do to his dishonour: in that which is evil: now they encourage themselves in an evil matter, Psal. 64.5. and hearten one another to do wickedly. Is. 41.6, 7. They helped every one his neighbour, and every one said to his brother, be of good courage. So the Carpenter encouraged the goldsmith, etc. about their idols. Say thou therefore with Nehemiah, should such a man as I fly? Nehem. 6.11. Remember, that the spirit of glory, and of God, is glorified, when we show courage in suffering for a good cause, 1 Pet. 4.14. Yea and our weak brothers are much heartened by our example: as Philip. 1.14. Many of the brothers in the Lord, waxing confident by my bonds, are much more bold to speak the word without fear: whereto old Eleazar had great respect in his sufferings, ●2 Maccab. 6.18, 24, 25. The third Reason. Thirdly, courage is needful under afflictions, in respect of the reward, which not of our merit, but of God's bounty, is no less than a Kingdom, even the Kingdom of heaven, and the crown of life. See, 2 Thess. 1.4, 5. Paul tells the Thessalonians, that through faith and patience in suffering, they shall be counted worthy the Kingdom of God: and 2 Tim. 2.12. If we suffer, we shall also reign with him. Rev. 2.10. Be thou faithful unto the end, and I will give thee the crown of life. Now what courage will men show for earthly Kingdoms? and what will they not endure to get them? And much more should we do so for that Kingdom, which is undefiled, immortal, and fadeth not a way, reserved in heaven, 1 Pet. 1.4. The fourth Reason. Fourthly, God is with them, that suffer for well-doing, and if they be courageous for his glory, he will strengthen their hearts, as it followeth in this verse, Psal. 91.15. I will be with him in trouble. Herewith he encouraged Paul at Corinth, Acts 18.9, 10. and David herewith did notably encourage himself, Psal. 118.6. The Lord is on my side, I will not fear. See Rom. 8.31. If God be with us, who can be against us? Thus the Angel encouraged Gideon. Judg. 6.12. Jeremy encourageth himself, Jer. 20.11. God encourageth his people, Is. 35.4, and 41.10. This serves for instruction, and admonition. The use for instruction. For instruction, it shows what manner of persons the professors of true religion ought to be, for truth & strength of grace: namely, not babes, or children, but men of stature and courage in Christ Jesus, even perfect men, Eph. 4.13, 14. Children are so fearful, and not fit for war: but Christians must sighed the Lords battles, against spiritual enemies, Eph. 6.12. and endure hardness, as good soldiers, 2 Tim. 2.3. Few do think on these things: but the most content themselves with the shows of godliness, and want the powers thereof, 2 Tim. 2.5. But wisdom is justified of her children, Mat. 11.9. The Use for admonition. For admonition, according to this charge, every one should give all diligence, to get this spiritual courage into their hearts, which will enable them to wait upon the Lord in times of distress. The way to get spiritual courage. The way hereto is to make sure of two things: first, that the state of our persons towards God be good: Secondly. that our godly behaviour express the same. That the state of our persons may be good before God, three things are required: repentance, faith, and sanctification. Repentance is that grace of God, whereby we, considering our own ways in our hearts, do humbly confess our wicked ways unto God, and praying for mercy and pardon, do forsake the sins wherein we have lived. And this is needful unto true courage, because the guilt of every sin brings fearfulness: as Gen. 3.8, 10. Deut. 28.66. Thou shalt fear day and night, Prov. 28.1. The wicked fly, when none pursueth: neither shall any man strengthen himself in the iniquity of his life, Ezek. 7.13. Faith is that grace of God's spirit, whereby we rest, and rely on God's mercy in Christ's merits, for justification and salvation: hereby we are justified, and be at peace with God, Rom. 5.1. and the righteous are bold as a Lion, Prov. 28.1. Hereby we are in Christ the son of God, Gal. 2.20. and in him we shall be strong and courageous, as Ephes. 6.10. Phil. 4.3. Thirdly, sanctification is the work of the spirit, abolishing corruption, and renewing grace more and more every day. Now they, that are in this estate, have the spirit dwelling in them. Rom. 8.11. which is the spirit of strength, Is. 11.2. the spirit of power, and of a sound mind. 2 Tim. 1.7. These graces bring quietness, and confidence, which are the strength of the godly, Is. 30.19. The godly behaviour needful to true spiritual courage is threefold. First, to make sure our trouble be for a good cause: for if we suffer for righteousness sake, we need not be afraid for any terror, 1 Pet. 3.14. Let none of you suffer as an evil doer— but if any man suffer as a Christian, let him not be ashamed, 1 Pet. 4 15, 16. So the Jews strengthened their hands for the good work. Nehem. 2.18. Secondly, we must store our hearts with the word of God, both for direction in carriage, and consolation in distress. So did David. Psal. 119.11. hid God's say in his heart: and hereby kept himself from the paths of the destroyer. Psal. 17.4. This is my comfort in mine affliction, for thy word hath quiekened me, Psal. 119.50. And in particular know God is present with us, Deut. 31.6. 1 Chron. 28.20. 2 Chron. 32.7, 8. Hag. 2.4. Thirdly, beside all the former, we must ever join humble and earnest prayer, for strength and courage from God: as Nehem. 6 9 They made us afraid— Now therefore, O God, strengthen my hand. Acts 4.29. Now Lord, behold their threaten, and grant unto thy servants, that with all boldness they may speak thy word. And he shall strengthen thine heart.] The reason whereby he Prophet doth encourage himself, and his godly brothers, to the former duties of waiting upon God, and being of good courage in the time of affliction, drawn from the great benefit they shall reap hereby, namely, God will strengthen their hearts: he will put strength and courage into them, and make them resolute, or steadfastly minded, as this phrase is translated. Ruth 1.18. and able to hold out until they have a blessed issue. The third observation. Mark then, They that wait on the Lord, and encourage themselves so to do, in the times of affliction, shall have the Lord in mercy to put strength into them, for their better enabling to wait on him, Psal. 31.24. Be of good courage, and he shall strengthen your heart: all ye that hope in the Lord. This David found to be true by good experience, Psal. 40.1, 2. I waited patiently for the Lord, and he inclined unto me— and established my go, according to the Lords promise. Is. 40.30. They that wait upon the Lord shall renew their strength. The first Reason. The reason hereof is plain. First, to wait on the Lord, and to encourage ourselves in affliction, are notable actions of faith, as is showed before: Now the grace of faith doth surely entitle us to the participation of God's power, 2 Chro. 20.20. Believe in the Lord your God, so shall ye be established. The second Reason. Secondly, in waiting on the Lord, and encouraging ourselves in time of affliction, are the right improving and employing of the talents, which the Lord hath left with us: for in so doing we set faith a work And this behaviour hath title to increase: for to every one that hath, it shall be given, Mat. 25.28, 29. It is said of Paul, that he increased in strength, Acts 9.22. and the way and means thereof is showed by himself, 1 Cor. 15.10. I laboured more abundantly than they all. This serves for instruction, and for admonition. The first Use for instruction. For instruction two ways. First, see here plainly that God's gracious gifts, and works in our hearts, are vouchsafed, though not for, yet in, and upon our endeavour, in obedience to his will, in the use of those means wherein he is pleased to work the same: as here, increase of strength from God is promised, upon our obedience, in waiting on the Lord, and encouraging our hearts so to do. So, Is. 55.3. Hear, and your soul shall live: for faith comes by hearing. Rom. 10.17. and he that believeth in me, saith our Saviour, shall never die. John. 11.26. A most needful point, worthy of all observation, because the corruption of nature is such, that we willingly yield to the contrary conceit, which is, to hope for good from God, though we neglect the means, wherein God is pleased to work the same, and therein separate the means from the end: as the Jews looked to have eternal life in the word, and yet would not search to find therein, what it testified of Christ, John 5.39. They would have life, but they would not come to Christ to have it in him. verse 40. As on the other side, we easily persuade ourselves, we shall escape damnation, though we make bold upon sin, the meritorious cause thereof, to live therein. The second Use for instruction. Secondly, here see the true fountain of al● that courage, and boldness, which in all age's God's children have showed, for God's glory, and for the maintenance of his truth, even to the amazement of their adversaries: as in David against Goliath, 1 Sam. 16.32, 34. Psal. 3.6. and 23.4. in the three servants of God before Nabuchadnezzar. Dan. 3.16, 17. in the Apostles before the rulers of the Jews, Acts 3.13. and in many thousand Martyrs before their persecutors, whereof the Ecclesiastical histories give plentiful testimony. Surely, they had it from the true God, who did strengthen their hearts: and this the godly have confessed, as David often, calling the Lord his strength: as Psal. 18.1, 2. Psal. 144.1. and Paul, 2 Tim 4.17. This Lord stood with me, and strengthened me. The first Use for admonition. For admonition, it serves: First, to observe the ways and means, whereby God doth strengthen the hearts of his children, that so we may therein wait upon God, in the day of affliction, for increase of strength, and courage in our souls. God's ways for this end are of two sorts: some extraordinary, as the touch of Christ's hand, vouchsafed to Daniel, How God doth strengthen the hearts of his Children. Dan. 10.10, 16, 18. and the laying on of his right hand, vouchsafed to Fohn, Rev. 1.17. Others are ordinary, and that of two sorts, outward and inward. God's ordinary outward ways of strengthening the heart are four. First, and chief his word spoken, either by God himself, as Josh. 1.6, 7, 9 or by his servants in the ministry thereof; as Heb. 12.12. Lift up the hands that hang down, Is. 40.1, 2. Comfort ye, comfort ye my people— speak ye to the heart of Jerusalem. Hence David saith, ●his is my comfort in mine affliction, for thy word hath quickened me, Psal. 119.50. and Jerem. 15.16. Thy word was unto me the joy and rejoicing of my heart. A good weapon in a man's hand puts courage in his heart against an enemy: now God's word is the sword of the spirit, Eph. 6.17. yea the sword of God's mouth, Rev. 2.16. nay sharper than any two edged sword, Heb. 4.12. Secondly, the works of his providence, wherein we have had experience of his goodness in former deliverances. Thus David's heart was strengthened, to encounter with Goliath, by the experience of God's power and providence, in killing the Lion and the Bear. 1 Sam. 17, 34, 35, 36, 37. yea, the remembrance of God's power, and mercy unto others, in like case, putteth life and courage into the hearts of God children in distress. Psal. 22.4, 5. Our Fathers trusted in thee, and thou didst deliver them. They cried unto thee, and were delivered. Here thou mayst say, as Elisha did, at the waters of Jordan, where is the God of Elijah? 2 Kings 2.14. Thirdly, the company of the godly puts courage into the distressed, Acts 28.15. When Paul saw the brothers, in his dangerous voyage, he thanked God, and took courage, Prov. 27.9, 17. O intment and perfume rejoice the heart, so doth the sweetness of a man's friend, by hearty counsel— Iron sharpeneth iron: so a man sharpeneth the countenance of his friend. Fourthly and lastly, prayer to God, as well by ourselves, as by others in our behalf. Thus the Apostles sought courage and boldness, when they were threatened by the rulers of the Jews, Acts 4.24, 29. and Paul, for this end, entreated the Ephesians to pray for him, Eph. 6.19. God's inward way of strengthening the heart is by the work of his spirit: for that is the comforter, John 14.16, 17. and the spirit of strength, Is. 11.2. of power, and of a sound mind, 2 Tim. 1.7. By the assurance of the abode of this spirit among them, the Lord encourageth zerobabel, Jehoshuah, and the people, Hag. 2.4, 5. Now these being some of God's special ways, whereby he strengtheneth the hearts of his children, we must stir up ourselves to wait for his work of mercy for the strengthening of our hearts when terror and fears take hold upon us. The second Use for instruction. Secondly, we must labour to be such, both in state of soul, and behaviour of life, as to whom God will vouchsafe the blessing of strength of heart in evil times. This requires (besides the duties here named, of waiting upon God, and encouraging our hearts in evil times) that before hand, in the days of peace. First, we beware of sin; and break off the course thereof by true repentance: for guilt of sin brings a trembling heart, and great astonishment, as Deut. 28.65, 66. even fear, where no fear is, Ps. 53.5. it makes the heart to fail, Luke 21.26. Secondly, that we are truly in covenant with God, not only receiving the seals thereof, for outward admittance and assurance, as Baptism, and the Lords supper, but humbly receiving, and obeying the word of the covenant, Christ's holy gospel: which when we do, the Lord will say, fear thou not, for I am with thee; he not dismayed, for I am thy God: I will strengthen thee, yea, I will help thee, yea, I will uphold thee, with the right hand of my righteousness, Is. 41.10. Thirdly, that by faith we rest and rely upon God's mercy in Christ Jesus. This is the ground of hope, whereby we wait on God, which hath the promise of being strengthened: as when it is said, that by faith some of weak were made strong, Heb. 11.34. as Abraham was strong in the faith, Rom. 4.20. This faith unites us unto ●od in Christ, Gal. 2.20. and God's promise is to strengthen such in the Lord, Zech. 10.12. Fourthly, that we be upright hearted towards God, for the Lord makes himself strong for such, 2 Chron. 16.9. This we may see by his promise, and dealing with David, who was upright before him, Psal. 18.23. and God's hand was established with him, his arm did strengthen him, Ps. 89.21. The fourth observation. The fourth and last point here to be noted is, the repetition of the first duty here prescribed. Wait, I say, on the Lord: that is, even after the Lord hath strengthened thine heart, yet wait still on God, and abide his leisure for thy full deliverance. The like repetition we may see in the same case, Jam. 5.7.8. Be patiented therefore, brethren, unto the coming of the Lord: behold, the husbandman waiteth for the precious fruit of the earth— Be ye also patiented, establish your hearts: for the coming of the Lord draweth near. The Reason. The reason of such repetitions is, to show the necessity of this duty, of waiting upon God in the time of afflictions: for tribulations are like to continue to the godly in this world, as Christ told his Disciples, John 16.33. in regard of the malice of the devil, and his instruments, who, being the seed of the Serpent, do bear continual enmity to the godly, which are the seed of the woman. The wicked ordinarily are many, and mighty, as David complaineth, Psal. 69.4. They, that hate me without a cause, are more than the hairs of mine head, they that would destroy me, being mine enemies wrongfully, are mighty. So as the godly had need, with the same prophet, to say and do, as Psal. 59.9. Because of his strength will I wait upon thee, for God is my defence. The use for instruction. This serves to justify a profitable ministerial practice, in the zealous pressing of needful duties, by often repetition. Many have itching ears, ever desirous to hear novelties: like the Athenians, who spent the time in nothing else, but to tell or hear some new thing, Acts 17.21. But wisdom is justified of her children. They, that mind to be Christ's Disciples, are desirous to hear needful things, again and again: as John 9.29. Wherefore would you hear it again and again? will ye also be, his Disciples? Acts 13.42. The Gentiles besought, that these words might be preached unto them the next Sabbath. For which purpose Paul saith, To Write to you the same things is not indeed grievous to me, but for you it is safe, Phil. 3.1. as his often practise of it plainly shows in the same chapter verse 18. Many walk of whom I have told you often, and now tell you weeping, that they are the enemies of the Cross of Christ, Gal. 1.8, 9 Though we, or an Angel from heaven, preach unto you any other gospel, then that which we have preached unto you, let him be accursed. As we said before, so say I now again, If any man preach any other gospel unto you, then that ye have received, let him be accursed. And our blessed Saviour, about material duties, took the same course, as we may see in his often repeated woes against the Scribes and Pharisees, Mat 23.13, 14, 15, 16. etc. and his pressing the duty of watching, on his Disciples, by this often repetition, Mark 13.33. Take ye heed: watch and pray. verse 35. watch ye therefore. 37. What I say unto you, I say unto all men, watch. The Use for admonition. Secondly, this repartition of the duty, showing the importance of it, must stir up our diligence, in the constant and conscionable use of such means, as God hath ordained for the attaining of this virtue. Which way and means is plainly prescribed, in the use of admonition, where this duty is handled, in the beginning of the verse. 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉. DAVID'S Hearts desire: OR AN EXPOSITION Of the 84. Psalm. By Mr. THOMAS PIERSON. Late Pastor of Brompton-Brian in the County of Hereford. LONDON, Printed for Philemon Stephens at the gilded Lion in Paul's Churchyard, 1647. AN EXPOSITION of the 84. Psalm. Psalm 84. To the chief Musician upon Gittith. A Psalm for the Sons of Korah. THis Psalm may not unfitly be called David's hearts desire: for though his name be not prefixed, as it is to sundry others, yet the matter of it being well weighed, doth most fitly accord to his troublesome estate under persecution, whereby he was debarred from safe access to the place of God's solemn and public service, and most fully express his hearts desire after the house of God, which was in him both frequent and unfeigned, Psal. 27.4. in regard of the blessings there to be enjoyed, Psal. 65.4. which is matter profitable for God's children: for that, which being denied will prove the hearts desire, should being enjoyed become the heart's delight, and that is the pure and holy public worship of God. In the handling of this Psalm we have, first the Dedication of it, in the title prefixed, than the Psalm itself. The Dedication. The Dedication was to the chief Musician, or Master of the Quire. For, 1 Chron. 16.4. David ordered a Quire to sing thanksgiving, and penned Psalms for that end, which he delivered to the Master of the Quire, vers. 7. Of their ordering, see 1 Chron. 25.1.7. Upon Gittith] Three Psalms hath this word Gittith in the title, viz. 8.81.84. the meaning whereof is difficult, being much controverted amongst interpreters. The Septuagint reads it 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉, pro ●orcularibus: which the a Euthymius August. in Psal. 8. ancients Allegorising expound of particular Churches, where Christ is the vine, believers are branches, and faith and other graces are grapes, which yield that wine, which cheereth God and man, judg. 9.13. Others following the 72. yet refer it to the time of vintage thus celebrated. The Chaldee Paraphrast b 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 takes it for a musical instrument, which David brought from Gath, where he remained in his exile from Saul with King Achish. Rabbi David Kimhi, takes it to note and signify, that this Psalm was penned by David in the foresaid Gath. Also a City of the Levites was called Gath-Rimmon, josh. 21.25. whereon Obed Edom the Levite is called the Gittite, 2 Sam. 6.10. and so by Gittith here may be meant, either such instruments as was used by Obed Edom's posterity the Gittite, or that these Psalms were made upon occasion of transporting the Ark from Kiriath-Iearim to jerusalem, namely the eight, when it was brought to the house of Obed Edom, the 81. upon the death of Vzza, the 84. when it was brought to Zion. It is most probable it was a musical Instrument. The less to be stood upon, because this music was typical, and in their time the instruments of God, 1 Chron. 16.42. but now, as john 4.21.23. Ye shall neither in this mountain, nor yet at Jerusalem worship the Father: but the true worshipper shall worship the father in spirit and in truth, singing and making melody in your heart to the Lord, Eph. 5.19. For the sons of Korah.] These sons of Korah were the posterity of that rebellious Levite, who with Dathan and Abiram rebelled against Moses and Aaron, Numb. 16. which Korah was consumed with fire, ver. 35. with 17. Howbeit there were of his sons that died not, Numb. 26.11. departing, as it seemeth, from their father's tent. as all were commanded, Numb. 16.24.26. and of these is numbered a family of the Korathites, Num. 26.58. of whom came Samuel the Prophet, and Heman his Nephew, 1 Chron. 6, 33. a great singer, chap. 25.4.5. In this Dedication note two things, first, King David's employment in troublesome times, 1. Observation. he composed and penned Psalms of special purpose for the public worship and service of God, 1 Chron. 16.7. The dedication of sundry Psalms to the chief Musician shows the same. The reason. The reason hereof was his holy zeal for gods glory, Ps. 69.9. and fervent desire thus to testify his thankfulness to God, that had highly advanced him, Psal. 78.71, 72. Therefore he argues the matter with his own heart, that he may do it effectually, Psal. 116.12. Here see that neither dignity nor distress should exempt men from the zealous pursuit of God's holy worship. Use 1 If either one or both would have afforded a good excuse, David needed not to have taken such pains about God's service, as to pen special Psalms. for the solemn and public use thereof. A good precedent for every man in his place, Use 2 especially for Magistrates and superiors, to further Gods worship to the uttermost of their power. Too many are of michal's mind, that it is too base a thing for David to be seen among the Levites, dancing before the Ark, especially clothed with a linen Ephod, 2 Sam, 6.20. But them that honour me, saith God, I will honour, and they that despise me shall be lightly esteemed, 1 Sam. 2.30. Was it not David's special honour that he was a type of Christ? And herein, among other things, did he prefigure him, that he was zealous for the house of God, as Psal. 69.9. with john 2.17. But alas, how few follow David and Christ herein? David give liberally toward the Temple, 1 Chron. 29.3, 4, 5. Christ whipped buyers and sellers out of the Temple, because he would not have his father's house made a den of thiefs: now many take liberally, and so bring thiefs and robbers into the Church; and of others we may say, as Mat. 23.4. They bind heavy burdens, and grievous to be born, but they themselves will not move them with one of their fingers. Secondly, 2. Observation. here note, that the sons, that is, the posterity of wicked and rebellious Korah, have an honourable place in God's sacred and solemn service: for to them sundry of David's Psalms are commended, as Psal. 42.44, 45, 46, etc. No doubt David saw them, The reason. being by place and birth Levites, to be faithful and diligent in their place, and thus renowns them to all posterity; that he composeth special Psalms for their ministry in the solemn service of God. Use 1 Here see the verifying of God's word, for the comfort of all godly children, that the son shall not bear the iniquity of the father, Ezek. 18.14.17.20. if he see his father's sins and turn from them. But Exod. 20.5. God saith he is a jealous God, 1. Objection. visiting the iniquities of the fathers upon the children. That is enquiring for the sin of the fathers among the children, Answer. and if there he find it, then pays he them home. Achans sons and daughters and stoned and burnt for the father's sacrilege, 2. Objection. Iosh. 7.24.25. and Dathans and abiram's little children are swallowed up, Numb. 16.27. For aught we know they might be of years of discretion, Answer. and privy to their father's stealth. When little ones die in the punishment of the sathers' sin, God lays not the punishment of the father's sin upon the children, but to make the father's sin more odious, doth then bring upon the children the fruit of their own original corruption, which is death determined upon all flesh, as appears, Gen. 2.17. with Rom. 5.12. As a creditor, that hath both the father and the son debtors unto him by bond, may upon the father's provocation lay the forfeiture upon both, being both in his danger. Secondly, Use 2 here is special encouragement to the children of wicked parents to become godly and faithful in their places. In some sense they are the sons of strangers, for Psal. 58.3. The wicked are estranged fromt he womb: yet if they leave their father's sins, and become faithful to the Lord, here is comfort for them in the honour of Korah's posterity. See Is. 56.3. Let not the son of the stranger, that hath joined himself to the Lord, speak saying, The Lord hath separated me from his people: for ver. 6.7. The sons of the stranger, that joined themselves to the Lord, to serve him, and to love the name of the Lord, Even them will I bring to my holy Mountain, and make them joyful in my house of prayer, etc. for 1 Sam. 2.30. Them that honour me, I will honour, saith the Lord. Verse. 1. Verse 1 How amiable are thy Tabernacles, O Lord of Hosts? THe matter of this Psalm is a most solemn and pathetical expressing of David's high esteem of the place of God's public worship, with his ardent and earnest desire to have freedom and liberty to enjoy the same, which a Musculus Piscator. some think, and that probably, he penned in the time of Absoloms' rebellion, when he fled for his life out of jerusalem, 2 Sam. 15.14. for he mentioneth appearing in Zion before the Lord, verse 7. which was after the ark of the covenant was brought thither, which was not in saul's life-time, but after 2 Sam. 7. about the 13. year of his reign. Or as b Mollerus others, in the troublesome times of his great wars, whereby he was detained from the public place of God's worship: for that Absoloms' rebellion was not so long. He gins with the high esteem he had of the place of God's public worship, which by way of admiration he doth acknowledge unto God to be most lovely and amiable; verse 1. In the handling whereof we have these two things: First, the description of the person, unto whom the acknowledgement is made: Secondly, the matter, that is acknowledged. The description of the person is the Lord of Hosts, 1. Observation. 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 so as the point is this, The true God is the Lord of hosts. The reason. So verse 3.8.12. Ps. 24.10. He is so called, because all creatures in Heaven and Earth are at the Lords command, as soldiers in an Army at the command of the General, ready pressed to do his will. Hence all creatures in heaven and earth are called the host of heaven and earth, Use 1 Gen. 2.1. This title shows the Lords power and sovereignty over all creatures, he may command and set their places and stations at his pleasure, as generals do their Soldiers in an Army. See 1 Kings 22.19, 20. And hence are those strange events in war, that the weaker do conquer, as Deut. 32.30. One chase a thousand, and two put ten thousand to flight. So 1 Sam. 14.6.13. jonathan and his armour-bearer smote a whole garrison of the Philistines. Use 2 For admonition it serves three ways. First, for fear and reverence towards God's Majesty: he is the Lord of hosts having all creatures at his beck, Ps. 50.1.4. The mighty God, even the Lord hath spoken, and called the earth, from the rising of the Sun, unto the going down thereof. He shall call to the heavens from above, and to the earth that he may judge his people, Jer. 5.22. Fear ye not me, saith the Lord? will ye not tremble at my presence? Mat. 10.28. Fear him which is able to destroy both soul and body in hell. Secondly, that we take heed of abusing any of God's creatures; for be they never so mean, God can make Armies of them to destroy the wicked. Consider his wonders in Egypt, of hail, of frogs, of flies, of louse, Exod. 8.9. etc. his dealing with Herod, Acts 12. Reason, as Isaiah 36.9. etc. How wilt thou turn away the face of one Captain of the meanest of my Master's servants? A terror to the wicked. Thirdly, That we make sure we fight under his banner: for he is the Lord of hosts, and hath his spiritual armies and weapons. See Psal. 110.3. Eph. 6.10. etc. and 2 Cor. 10.5. See Psal. 24.7. etc. Lift up your heads, O ye gates, and be ye lifted up, ye everlasting doors, and the King of glory shall come in: that is, the Ark. Then the Lord himself into men's hearts, 1 Cor. 3.16. Know ye not, that ye are the Temple of God, and that the spirit of God dwelleth in you? Rev. 3.20. Behold, I stand at the door and knock, if any man hear my voice and open the door, I will come in to him and sup with him, and he with me. Use 3 For consolation sundry ways: First, to those that fight the Lords battles, & stand in defence of his Church. See Psal. 46.7.11. As he is the Lord of hosts, so he hath made Jesus Christ the Captain of his host, josb. 5.14. No weapon that is form against thee shall prosper, If. 54.17. Secondly, to any child of God in his particular distress; for he hath all creatures at command to serve and save his children, and to destroy their enemies. See Exod. 14.28, 29. the waters of the red Sea are a wall unto the Israelites, but drown the Egyptians, Dan. 3. fire save the three servants of God, and kills them that cast them in. So do the Lions, Daniel, Dan. 6. dost thou want? the Ravens shall feed thee. 1 Kings 17.4.6. or Angels, Psal. 78.23. Art thou in the Sea? a Whale shall bring thee to land, jonah, 1.17. and 2.10. The matter acknowledged is the loveliness of God's Tabernacles, which surpassing David's ability to express, he propounds by way of admiration, implying that they were to him most lovely and amiable, far surpassing his ability to express. For our better understanding hereof we are to search out, as well the place, as the property, for which David doth admire it. The place is God's Tabernacles, or dwelling places: whereby he meaneth that special place of God's public and solemn worship, which God had chosen for himself among his people in David's time, promising there to be present with them, and to dwell among them, Exod. 25.8. Levit. 26.12. Qu. But why doth he use a word of the plural number, saying Tabernacles, whereas Moses erected but one for the Lord, neither did the Lord allow of any other, till the Temple was built by Solomon. Au. a junius Piscator. Some think he hath reference to the divers places, where God was worshipped at the time; for the Tabernacle was at Gibeon, and the Ark at Mount Meriah, 2 Chron. 1.3, 4. But it is more probable that he hath respect to the several parts and places of the Tabernacle, which were made distinct by God's appointment. The Court was for the people, as verse 2. the holy place was for the Priests, and the holy of holies was for the high Priest once every year, as Heb. 9.2.3.6, 7. In all of which God dwelled, though not inclusively as men do in their houses, for so the heavens of heaven cannot contain him, 1 Kings 8.27. But in regard of more special manifestation, testifying his favourable respect unto their worship and service, as 1 King. 9.9. The property ascribed to this place is lovely or amiable, 2 Observation. that is, such as draws the best affections of the heart unto it. Here then note two points: one taken for granted, the other purposely inteuded. The point taken for granted is, That God hath his Tabernacles or dwelling places, where he doth in special manner abide among his people: so as we may say, The Tabernacle of God is with men, and he will dwell with them, Rev. 21.3. Under the Law he had a material building, called the Tabernacle of the Congregation, erected by Moses at his appointment, Exod. 25.8. and 40.34.35. which place was movegble, and continued for God's worship, till God had given rest unto his people round about, and then he caused Solomon to build him a Temple, 1 Kings 6.1, 2. Under the Gospel he hath a spiritual building, 1 Pet. 2.5. Ye, as lively stones, are built up a spiritual house, whose house are we: speaking of all the faithful, who believe in God through Christ, Heb. 3.6. who are the Temple of the living God, in whom he dwells, 1 Cor. 3.16. whether we conceive them jointly altogether, Eph. 2.21. or divided into particular holy assemblies, Matth. 18.20. or personally considered, 1 Cor. 3.16, 17. and 6.19. The reason hereof is twofold: First, The 1. reason. the dearer evidence of his especial favour and respect unto them above all the people of the world: for the whole world is his, and the fullness thereof, Psal. 24.1. yet none can say, but the Church of God, who are his people by covenant, that God doth dwell among them. Secondly, for the better assuring of all the blessing of the Covenant to those that be his people. The 2. reason. For God in Christ is the true fountain of all good things: and his dwelling among them, in that manner which he did ranifest in his Tabernacle, gave plain evidence of his readiness to communicate his goodness unto them, according to all that he had promised in his Covenant. This will appear by a brief view of the several parts of God's tabernacle, considered with the special ends for which they were ordained. The whole Tabernacle was made according to the pattern shown in the mount: It contained three distinct places, the Court; the holy place, and the holy of holies, and in each of these, there were several ordinances, serving by their use and signification to testify God's readiness, who there dwelled among them, to communicate his goodness to his people there serving him. Take a view of some: In the Court (which signified the visible Church, wherein hypocrites may have a place for outward worship) was first the ministry of the word and prayer: Here the Priests and Levites taught the people, as it is said of Christ, Luke 17.47. he taught daily in the Temple; here the Scribes and Pharisees sat in Moses chair, Matthew 33.2. and here both Priests and people prayed, as Luke 1.10. for my house shall be called the house of prayer, Luke 19.46. Secondly, here was the altar of burnt-offering, a type of Christ: for the altar and the twelve pillars resembled God and the 12. tribes, making a covenant together with sacrifice, Exod. 24.4. This altar in the Court of the Tabernacle was overlayed with brass a strong metal, to signify that Christ God did sanctify his manhood to be an acceptable sacrifice, & strengthen him to do and suffer all things needful for our redemption and salvation: Thirdly, the laver for washing, a type of sanctification, Titus 3.5. Heb. 10.22. In the holy place were three memorable things: First, the altar of incense, shadowing out Christ's intercession in heaven; Secondly, the table of shewbread, signifying that standing table of the Word and Sacraments, wherein God keepeth plentiful provision to feast his elect in Christ: Every one had in his incense cup pure incense put upon it, signifying fullness of joy in Christ Jesus. Thirdly, the golden candlestick, a figure of the Church, Revel. 1.20. because it holdeth up the light of God's Word; The several branches resembled particular Churches; and the lights therein signified the words of the Prophets, or the holy Scriptures, 2 Pet. 2.19. The seven branches from one shaft, all of one matter, signified variety of gifts and graces, proceeding from one spirit, Zech. 4.2.6. In the most holy place, or holy of holies was first the ark, whose lidd was called the mercy seat, overlaid with pure gold, and within it the two tables of the covenant, all shadowing Christ, who is our covenant, Is. 49.8. and our propitiatory, Rom. 3.25. 1 john 2.2. Over the ark did God appear between the Cherubins, signifying God teaching through Christ, who is attended by the ministry of Angels. Secondly, here were the golden censers, to bring fire with incense to the mercy-seat, signifying that with th● incense of the spirit of Christ's sufferings must be mingled by Christ himself upon the altar with fire, before that our service can be accepted, Leu. 16.12. with Rev. 8.3.4. Thirdly, here was the ●ot of Mannah, which God gave them from heaven, signifying Christ crucified, the bread that came down from heaven, john 6.41. 1 Cor. 10.3. Also Aaron's rod that budded, testifying their rebellion, Numb. 16. yet being near to the mercy seat was pardoned in Christ: These two last, Heb. 9, 3, 4. are said to be within the ark; where * some refer the relative to the former antecedent, which needs not, jun. par. seeing that standing before it they were with it; for nothing was within but the two tables, 1 Kings 8.9. Besides these, that did severally belong to some of the holy places, there were some things common to all. As first, the anointing oil, wherewith every particular vessel and instrument was consecrate to his holy use, signifying the graces of the spirit, sanctifying us to God. 2. the cover for the whole tabernacle, signifying God's protection, by his special providence over his whole Church and every member thereof, as Is. 4.5, 6. upon all the glory shall be a defence, etc. Psal. 27 5. Thou wilt hid me in thy Tabernacle. In all these, and many other, he both manifested his presence among his people, and also his readiness to do them good by communicating spiritual blessings among them. If any say, these things proved his presence amongst the jews, but what are they to us? I answer, much. They were types and shadows of good things to come; but the body is Christ, Col. 2.17. who is come by a more perfect Tabernacle, Heb. 9.11. and him we have among us in the word of the Gospel, fully performing all that was prefigured in legal Ceremonies. Quest. Are our Churches and Chapels answerable to the jews Tabernacle and Temple for prerogative of God's presence? Answ. No difference of place in respect of holiness for God's service is taken away by Christ in the new Testament, john 4.21.23. 1 Tim. 2.8. But the Congregations of God's people, assembled for holy worship according to God's ordinance, have Christ present, as Mat. 18.20. They are God's house, Heb. 3.16. and God's temple, 1 Pet. 2.5. Ephes. 2.21. This serves for instruction, admonition and comfort. Use 1 For instruction two ways: First, how to judge rightly of difference of place in respect of holiness, namely, if it be God's habitation and dwelling place. Thus were the Temple, the Tabernacle, and people of the jews more holy than others under the law. Papists say consecrated places for holy worship be more holy than other places, Bellar. de cultu Sanct. lib. 3. cap. 4. But the truth is, our Churches and Chapels are as the jews Synagogues, whereof, Psal. 74.8. Of which we may say, as Mat. 23.16.17. Woe unto you blind guides, etc. or as Bernard. Habent sanctitatem, sed propter corpora vestra, etc. Churches are holy because of your bodies, your bodies because of your souls, your souls because of the Spirit of God. As it was said of the Israelites, non propter locum gentem, sed propter gentem locum elegit, Concil: Aquisgr. As Austin, Quid supplicaturus Deo locum sanctum requiris? Volens in Templo orare in te ora, & ita age semper ut Deo Templum sis: ibi enim Deus exaudit, ubi habitat. Aug. lib. sentent. And Origen. Hom. 5. in Levit. Locum sanctum in terris non requiro positum, sed in cord. Use 2 Secondly, see whence the Church of God in general, and every true member thereof in particular, have their stability, even from this that they are the Temple of God. God dwelleth in them, and he is stronger than he that is in the world, 1 john 4.4. Use 3 For admonition, here learn to take notice of Gods dwelling places, and to carry ourselves answerable to his goodness and bounty therein. His public dwelling places are the holy Assemblies of Ministers and people in holy worship. Towards which we must have David's affection towards the Tabernacle, Psal. 42.2, 3. and Psal. 63.1, 2. and show forth our desire to glorify God by provoking others to frequent the same, Is. 2.2, 3. Mic. 4.1, 2. But alas, here justly we may complain, as Lam. 1.4. The ways of Zion mourn; few frequent these assemblies, in comparison of those, that run thick and threefold to sinful and shameful assemblies, where Satan dwelleth, as he doth In places of Idolatry and impiety. For comfort, it makes greatly to all God's children, who are the true members of his Church; they have a double assurance that Christ dwelleth in them, their inward piety, and their outward profession. Hereon they may say, as jer. 20.11. The Lord is with me, as a mighty terrible one, therefore my persecutors shall stumble, and they shall not prevail, they shall be greatly ashamed, for they shall not prosper, their everlasting confusion shall never be forgotten, and with David Psal. 113.5, 6. Who is like unto the Lord our God, who dwelleth on high, who humbleth himself to behold the things that are in heaven and in the earth? Consider Luke 11.21, 22. and john 14.17, 18. The point purposely intended is, 3. Observation. that God's Tabernacles are most lovely and amiable, surpassing david's, ability to express, Psal. 268. Psal. 27.4. and Psalm 122.1. Reason 1 The Reason is, First, God's gracious presence, as he stands in covenant with his people; for so he shows himself in his Sanctuary, the place of his worship, and his presence is lovely, Psal. 63.2. To see thy power and glory, so as I have seen thee in thy Sanctuary, this liked Moses so well, that he had rather stay with it in the Wilderness, then go without it to Canaan, Exodus 33. ●5. Mat. 17.2, 3, 4. When Christ was transfigured in the Mount, in the sight of Peter, james and john, Peter liked the place so well, that he said, Master it is good to be here, and moves for liberty to build three Tabernacles. Reason 2 Secondly, there God doth lovingly admit communion and society with his people, speaking unto them in his word, as Psal. 50.5.7. Is. 40.1. and hearing them speak to him in prayer, Psal. 50.15. as Cant. 2.14. It is (as we may speak with reverence) the wooing place between Christ and his Church: here the contract is made in the covenant of grace, as 2 Cor. 11.2. here is the love of espousals, jer. 2.2. here God allows and speaks comfort, Hos. 2.14. Reason 3 Thirdly, here God doth show himself most gracious in mercy and bounty unto his Church. His gracious mercy is seen in removing evils from them: as First, blindness of mind, Is. 22.7. with 2 Cor. 3.14. secondly, hardness of heart, Ezek. 36.26. thirdly, transgression of life, Hos. 14.4. His gracious bounty is seen in spiritual and heavenly gifts: for where is regeneration wrought but in his Church? Psalm 87.4, 5. Man and man (that is, every man that is borne again) was borne in her: for Jerusalem is the mother of us all, Gal. 4.26. Now hereby by we are made the sons of God, heirs of heaven, 1 Pet. 1.3.4. Where are all the particular saving graces of the spirit begotten in the hearts of men, but in the Churchordinarily? Psal. 87.7. All my springs are in thee. The spirit is the fountain, and peculiar graces the streams that issue thence, see john 7.37.39. Here God begets grace in thy soul, and is it not a most lovely thing to have such near and sweet society with God? It was divine joy to the Virgin Mary, that the holy Ghost did overshadow her, and form the blessed body of Christ in her womb, as we may see by her song, Luke 1.46, 47. My soul doth magnify the Lord, and my spirit hath rejoiced in God my Saviour: O consider, that God begetting grace in thy heart in his Church, Christ is form in thee spiritually, Gal. 4.19. which should be more joyful unto thee (if more might be) than Christ's conception was to her: because she might have been saved without that honour, but thou canst not, unless Christ be form in thee; here thou beholdest and art changed into the same image, 2 Cor. 3.18. This serves for instruction, admonition and comfort. Use 1 For instruction: First, that our Christian assemblies for Evangelicall worship are lovely places; for what David said of the legal Tabernacle is most true of Evangelicall assemblies for the holy worship of God in Christ in the word, Sacraments, and prayer: For Hebr. 9.11. Christ is now come an high Priest of good things to come, by a greater and more perfect Tabernacle: And here he is present, Mat. 18.20. admitting his elect to holy society and fellowship with himself, also exercising most gracious mercy and bounty in removing evils, and bestowing heavenly blessings and graces upon his. Use 2 Secondly, see here a reason of David's strong affection towards the legal tabernacle, and proportionably of the affection of God's children toward Evangelicall worship, he was sick for sorrow when he was debarred from it, see Psal. 42.1, 2. and most joyful when he had freedom thereto, Psal. 122.1. The reason is the loveliness of the place, for the presence, favour, and grace of God, there to be enjoyed after a special manner. The world doth account God's children, for their zeal in following the preaching of the Word, brainsick persons, giddyheaded, and such like. But the truth is, these censurers (like sorry Physicians, 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 Job. 13.4.) mistake the place affected (as Festus did of Paul, Acts 26.24.) they are sick indeed, yet not brainsick, but heartsick, sick of love, as Cant. 5.8. 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 after Christ. Whereof they need not to be ashamed, for God the father loves them, and Christ also, Joh. 14.21. Now it is no● news that those that are in love should frequent the places, where they may meet with their beloved. Use. 3 For admonition it serves profitably two ways. First, to those that can see no loveliness in God's Tabernacles among us, can take no delight or pleasure in the assemblies of God's people for his holy worship. Consider thine estate, for certainly as yet thou hast not David's heart, and he was a man according to Gods own heart, Acts 13.22. Such are, first, recusant Papists, secondly, profane contemners, of both whom we may say, as Matth. 11 16, etc. Whereunto shall I liken this Generation, etc. These have no heart for God, that are weary of his worship. See Mal. 1.13. Amos 8.5. It is not the Maypole dance that will draw recusants. the dance about the golden Calf would draw them all, Exod. 32.6, 19 Jeroboans Calves at Dan and Bethel they like well, 1 Kings 12.28, 29. and to set their posts by the Lords, as Ezek. 43.8. But wisdom is justified of her children, Matth. 11.19. These men professing themselves to be wise become fools: see Rom. 1.22, 23, 24. Mark well, till thou hast an heart for God's worship thou hast no soul fit for heaven. How canst thou be a pillar in God's house, and never brought to the framing place? In the material Temple there were three places: so public assemblies are for regeneration and glory. For motives, think on Joh. 3.5. Except a man be born of water and of the spirit, he cannot enter into the kingdom of God. Use 4 Secondly, to God's children, are they lovely to thee? Let thine actions towards God's worship declare the truth of thine affections. Men of authority and wealth must apply both for the mgintenance and furtherance of Gods, worship, so did David, 1 Chron. 29.2, 3. I have prepared with all my might for the house of my God, etc. Because I have set my affection to the house of my God, etc. Ministers especially must show love unto and delight in the Lord's worship, by negligence they conceal the knowledge of God, see Mat. 23.13. Luke. 11.52. The show bread must be set upon the table in the Tabernacle every Sabbath new, Leu. 24.8. By profaneness they cause the Lords Tabernacle and service to be forsaken and loathed, 1 Sam. 2.17. people also must call one on another, Is. 2.2, 3. and all both Magistrates, Ministers and people must pray for the Lords power and providence in maintaining his pure worship. The next week being the time of ordination of Ministers, it is not unfit to take notice of it, to do that which Christ enjoined, Mat. 9.38. Pray ye therefore the Lords of the harvest, that he will send forth labourers into his harvest. Though Papists observe such times superstitiously, yet we may do as Gideon, who sacrificed to the Lord that which was prepared for Baal, judg. 6.26. Vers. 2. Verse 2 My soul longeth, yea, even fainteth for the courts of the Lord, my heart and my flesh cryeth out for the living God. IN the former verse David by way of admiration acknowledgeth unto the Lord the loveliness of his Tabernacles. In this verse he doth in his own person verify his former confession by discovering his own ardent and earnest affection, first to the place of God's worship, then to God himself, for whose sake he so affected the place. His fervent affection towards the place is in these words, My soul longeth, yea, even fainteth for the Courts of the Lord. The Courts of the Lord were two: one was the great Court, that place whither the people came, the other was for the Priests, 2 Chron. 4.9. For this David's soul longed and fainted; he had as great a desire after it, as a woman with child hath after the things she longeth for, and being deprived hereof his soul ●ainted, as women will do, when they miss of the things they long for: His vehement desire after God himself is in the latter branch, My heart and my flesh cryeth our for the living God. In the words note two points: First, David's earnest and ardent affection towards the places of God's public worship, 1. Observation. his soul longed and fainted after them, his affection towards this place was like the appetite of a woman with child, who is apt to desire some things inordinately, see Psal. 27.4. Ps. 42.1. Ps. 63.1. The reason hereof stands on a double ground: First, the sense of his own estate in soul for some spiritual wants: Reoson 1. and 2. His estate in soul was this, first, he had a true spiritual hunger and thirst after heavenly things, as Psal. 107.5. which things were only to be had in the Tabernacles of God: His case was like the prodigal child's, Luke 15.17. he was hungerstarved, and there was bread enough at his father's house, for the Tabernacles of God are Bedlam, the house of Bread, Matth. 2.6. Here Christ is borne, the true bread of life, John 6.48.50. It might well be called the house of bread, for anciently it was Ephath, or Ephratha a place of fruitfulness, Gen. 48.7. and at Bethlehem was an excellent Well, after which David longed, 2 Sam. 23.15. so in God's Tabernacles is the river of his pleasures, the fountain of life: Hither apply Ezek. 47.1. the waters of the Sanctuary, and Zech. 13.1. a fountain for uncleanness. Secondly, David was in love, which affection will grow to be strong strong as death, Cant. 8.6, 7. Now the party he loved was here, and here only to be enjoyed, for special spiritual society, 1 Kings 9.3. See Canticles 1.7, 8. Thirdly, David's soul was with child, he had spiritually conceived Chest: Now longing is ordinary to women, Plin. lib. 23. cap. 6. with child, its gravidarum malacia: and the thing he longed for was in the courts of the Lord. Use 1 This serves for instruction, admonition and comfort. For instruction, touching the good or bad estate of men's souls, for if our souls be in good estate, we must be affected towards Evangelicall worship, as david's was towards legal, for hunger and thirst, love and longing after heavenly things. In Evangelicall worship is our communion and fellowship with Christ and his benefits, and indeed in this world herein only and chief because of God's ordinances: If thou say with Naaman, Are not Abana and Parphar, rivers of Damascus, better than all the waters of Israel? 2 Kings 5.12. thou must keep thy leprosy of sin unless thou change thy mind, for all God's springs are here, Psal. 87.7. Now after trial it will be found true, that many neither hunger nor thirst, love nor long, but say, as Mal. 1.13. It is a weariness, and as Amos 8.5. when will the new Moon and Sabbath be gone, as job. 21.14. they say unto God, depart from us, and as the mixed multitude, Numb. 11.6. Our soul is dried away, there is nothing at all besides this Manna before our eyes. Use 2 For admonition, to labour to have our hearts affected towards Evangelicall worship, as david's was towards legal. The way is to inform ourselves of our natural misery in ourselves, for which there is no remedy but in the Lords Tabernacles his Bethesda, john 5.2, etc. where whosoever first after the troubling of the water stepped in, was made whole of whatsoever disease he had: Our misery is spiritual in blindness of mind, hardness of heart, etc. Now here only is the Lords eyesalve, Rev. 3.18, and the spirit, that takes away the stony heart, and gives an heart of flesh, Ezek. 36.26. Use 3 For comfort, it makes generally to those, that truly desire and delight in Evangelicall worship; if herein they deal sincerely, they cannot but be acceptable to God, and he will give testimony to them as he did to David, I have found David the son of jesse, a man after mine own heart, Acts 13.22. of them it may be said, as Mat. 13.16. Blessed are your eyes, for they see, and your ears, for they hear, and as Mat. 16.17. Blessed art thou Simon Bar-Iona, for flesh and blood hath not reveiled it unto thee, but my father which is in heaven. My heart and my flesh cryeth out for the living God.] The second sentence, declaring David's vehement desire after the true God, here called the living God: He names both heart and flesh to show the truth of his affection, as it was conceived in his soul, so it was expressed and manifest in his body, in voice and gesture, looking towards it and crying out for it: so the word is translated, Prov. 1.20. Wisdom cryeth without, she uttereth her voice in the streets, Lam. 2.19. Arise, cry out in the night, Psal. 17.6. I have called upon thee, Ps. 78.65. Like a mighty man that shouteth. Here note the description of God, and David's affection towards him. For the first, 2. Observation. The true God is the living God: So Psal. 42.2. jer. 10.10. and in other places: For the better understanding whereof we must consider, first in general what the life of God is, and then more particularly, what those special properties are, whereby God shows himself indeed to be a living God. For the first, Reason 1. the life of God is an essential property of the divine nature, whereby it is, and is conceived of us to be, in perpetual action, living and moving in it self and of itself. To give a reason hereof a priori, by way of causality, it is impossible; but a posteriori, or from the effect, we may argue thus: If God had not life in himself, he could not give life and being unto other things. But in him we live, we move, and have our being: yea, he giveth unto all life and breath and all things, Acts 17.23.25. Therefore he is a living God. For the second, the special properties, whereby God shows himself indeed to be a living God, are three, his wisdom, his power, and his will. His wisdom, whereby in and of himself he doth know both himself, and all things else, both universal and particular, that either have been, are, or shall be, yea that might have been or may be: His power, whereby he effectually doth whatsoever he will, and is able to do whatsoever he can will, both how, and when, and where he will: His will, whereby he doth, most freely and justly, by one eternal immutable act, will his own glory, as the end of all things, and all things else, as the means of that end: He that hath these properties, Reason 2. and exerciseth these effects of life, must needs be a living God, which consideration may serve for a second reason of the point. By way of use, it serves for instruction, admonition and comfort. Use 1 For instruction, it serves to distinguish between the true God and idols: That which lives not at all, or lives not of itself, cannot be God; this use the Prophet jeremiah makes of it, jer. 10.10. and the Apostle Barnabas and Paul, Acts 14.15. and 1 Thess. 1.9. Use 2 For admonition, to the end, we may have the like affection towards God as David had, we must imitate him in his esteem of God, and labour to have our hearts well settled in this persuasion, that the true God is indeed a living God. Otherwise, as he were not worth the crying after, so would it not be easy to induce us to it: For were he not a living God, how loud soever we should cry, he could not hear, and then we might conceive it as good to besilent, a deaf God and a dumb Religion may do well enough together. But (as the Psalmist intimates, Ps. 65.2. when he saith, Thou art the God that hearest prayer, unto thee shall all flesh come) hope of audience is that which oneneth the mouth of invocation: For how shall they call on him in whom they have not believed? Rom. 10.14. and how shall men believe in any but a living God? what good can a dead god do them? Use. 3 For comfort, they that are the servants of the true God, are the servants of the living God, and whilst God lives they need not fear to lack any thing that is good for them, they need not fear falling into any temptation, out of which they may not assuredly expect a comfortable issue, This use Darius seems to have made of this consideration, Dan. 6.20.26, 27. and God himself may be thought to aim at and intent the same, when to confirm the faith of his servants, in the assured certainty of his promises, he sweareth by his own life, as Is. 49.18. and teacheth his people so to swear, jer. 4.2. and when they commemorate his mercies unto them to make mention of his life, jer. 23.7, 8. as the Psalmist doth, Psal. 18.48. To this description of the true God, the Psalmist adds this expression of his affection towards him, my heart and my flesh cryeth out: as much as to say, I do not only earnestly desire to enjoy God's presence in his sacred ordinances, but likewise outwardly, in all the parts of my body, I give evidence of that earnest desire: 3. Obsorvation. The observation will be this. They, that have the same esteem of the true God that David had, will earnestly in their hearts desire, and diligently in their actions and behaviours, endeavour to express and give evidence of that desire: The like expression is used, Psal. 73.25, 26. whom have I in heaven but thee? and there is none upon earth that I desire besides thee: my flesh and my heart faileth: but God is the strength of my heart, and my portion for ever. Reason 1 The reason is: First, because they make account that in communion with, and fruition of the true God consists their happiness. By him they expect to be freed from all evil, and made partakers of all good things: as the Psalmist expresseth more at large in the four and five, the eleven and twelve verses. Reason 2 Secondly, because an earnest desire in the heart is as sap in the root, which in the branches will bud and break forth into leaves and fruit: As the ointment in the hand will not be hid, but bewrayeth itself, Prov. 27.16. So grace in the heart will discover itself in the words of the mouth, and the actions of the life: Out of the abundance of the heart the mouth speaketh, Mat. 12.34. and if the heart be inditing a good matter, the tongue will be as the pen of a ready writer, Psal. 45.1. I believed, saith the Plalmist, therefore have I spoken, Psal. 116.10. we also believe, saith the Apostle, and therefore speak, 2 Cor. 4.13. By way of use it serves for reproof and admonition. Use 1 First, for reproof of them, that pretend they believe the true God to be the living God, yet neither with their hearts nor with their flesh cry out for him, who if they have any desires at all to be made happy in fruition of him and communion with him, yet even those desires are so remiss and cold, so faint and feeble, that others can perceive no evidence, and may well make a question, whether they themselves be sensible of them. Perhaps they may say, as the Psalmist tells us many do, who will show us any good? Psal. 4.6. but with him to cry out for the living God, is a thing they think not of; such spiritual sluggards the world hath too many, whose souls desire and have nothing, Prov. 13.4. nay whose desires kill them, because their hands refuse to labour, Prov. 21.25. Use 2 For admonition unto all, that as ever they desire to assure themselves, or to testify to others, that they have the same esteem of the true God and of his sacred service, that David had, to believe him indeed to be the living God, and account his Tabernacles amiable, that they labour with him to stir up both their hearts and their flesh to cry out for him, that they earnestly desire the fruition of him, and communion with him, that they diligently endeavour by all good means to express and give evidence of that desire. To move them the rather hereunto let them consider, that God is so delighted with his servants importunities, and loves the loudness of their voice so well, that of purpose sometimes he takes upon him as it were to be a sleep or hard of hearing, and will not be seen to take notice of their desires, until they attain to such an height of fervency, that he cannot rest for them, as the phrase is by the Prophet Isaiah, Is. 62.6, 7. The effectual fervent prayer of a righteous man a vaileth much, Jam. 5.16. Fervency makes much to the efficacy of desires amongst men, much more with God; as our Saviour shows plainly in the Parable of the importunate widow and the unjust judge, Luke 18.1, etc. To weary men is but a small thing in comparison of wearying God, Is. 7.13. If we walk after the Lord, as Hos. 11.10. we are never so like to overtake him as when we have wearied him: A memorable example to this purpose we have in the woman of Canaan, Mat. 15.21. etc. who, as if she had meant to try masteries with our Saviour, wrestled first with his silence by her importunity, crying after him so, that his Disciples besought him to send her away, and then with his speech by her faith, making such advantage of his arguments against her, for her own behoof, that with reverence we may say she got the better of him, and went away with an ample commendation, and grant of her desire to the full. Verse 3. Verse 3 Yea, the sparrow hath found her in house, and the swallow a nest for herself, where she may lay her young, thine Altars, O Lord of hosts, my King and my God. HAving in the first verse by way of admiration acknowledged unto God the loveliness of his Tabernacle, the place of his holy worship, and in the second verified the same, by discovering his own ardent affection, first, to the place of God's holy worship, then to God himself for whose sake he so affected the place in his third he proceedeth in the former discovery of his hearts desire towards the place of God's worship, by debasing his present estate, as worse than the condition of the Sparrow and Swallow, the one whereof finds her an house, the other a 〈◊〉, where she may lay her young, but he wanted liberty of access to the Lords Altars, that is, to the Lords Tabernacle, where his altar was, the holy place of his solemn worship, which was to David's soul, as the house to the Sparrow, and the nest to the Swallow. This application he enfoldeth in an Aposiopasis, an interrupted exclamation unto God of his Altars, concealing some words, which should express his full meaning, from the passionate, affection of his soul, which kind of speaking is most frequent, and fit to manifest fervent desires. I am not ignorant, that the Chaldee paraphrase hath other names of birds, viz. the dove, and the turtle, 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 and 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉, and the Septuagint 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉, the Sparrow and the Turtle, whom the vulgar latin follows, but the proper signification of the words is as our English Bible hath them: Besides, interpreters differ in applying the latter part of the verse; some refer it by opposition to the former, as though the Lords Altars were the place, where these birds did build their nests: which yet some others, not without cause, do dislike; because, though in the Temple Sparrows and Swallows might build their nests, it being very spacious, yet it is not like they did build them in the Tabernacle, which was the place of God's worship, when David penned this Psalm: Now the application which I make, in a sacred Aposiopaesis, prevents that scruple, and yet prefers the condition of these birds before david's for outward liberty, which way soever we refer it. Though I conceive the true meaning of the prophet to be this, that the Sparrow and Swallow had liberty to build their nests, and breed their young, in houses which went belonging to others, whether near unto or far off from the Tabernacle it matters not, all houses were alike to them, yet in houses they desired to build, and were permitted. wherein these birds had their desire: but David was debarred from the Lords Tabernacle, where his Al●r was, which to his soul was as an house and nest to the Sparrow and Swallow, and whereto he had right and interest, having the Lord of hosts for his King and his God. In the words thus explained and taken, note these points. First, 1. Observation. that David prefers the outward condition of silly little birds as the Sparrow and Swallow before himself, to his sense and feeling their outward estate was better than his. They had liberty to enjoy the place of their desire, even other men's houses to rest and nestle in, whose birds they were not; Reason. but he was debarred from the Lords Sanctuary. the only resting and nestling place for his soul, though he had title thereto by special covenant, having the Lord of hosts for his King and his God. Use. 1 This serves for instruction admonition and comfort. For instruction thus, that God's special favour must not be measured by outward things, we must not judge them rejected from God's favour, whose outward estate is mean and miserable, for so shall we offend against the generation of God's children, Ps. 35.15. David was a man according to God's heart, own Acts 13.22. a pattern of piety to all succeeding Kings of Judah and Israel, as 1 Kings 3.14. to Solomon. and 1 Kings 11.38. to Jeroboam: yet for outward estate he was very miserable, 1 Sam. 26.20. hunted as a flea, or a partridge, Ps. 102.6, 7. as a Pelican, an owl, and a Sparrow. Yea, Christ himself, the son of God's love, Col. 1.13. had not whereon to lay his head. This his mean and miserable estate made the people in his time to judge rashly of him. See Isaiah 53.3. Use 2 For admonition, beware of rash judgement either against ourselves or others. Consider beside David and Christ before mentioned, the parable of Dives and Lazarus, Luk. 16. and the state of many, whom the world was not worthy of, Heb. 11.37, 38. which is a needful thing in these troublesome times of the Church of God: beware of rash judgement; consider that judgement must begin at the house of God, 1 Pet. 4.17. Use 3 For consolation, this makes greatly to the afflicted and panished. Consider David's case at this time, nay the case of Christ, who had not whereon to lay his head, Mat. 8.20. Now the servant is not above the Master: if it were so with the green tree, what may it be with the dry? Luke 23.31. In such case we must say, as Christ of his kingdom; so we of our comfort, It is not of this world, Joh. 18.36. In this case and state nothing doth befall us, but that which appertaineth to man, and God will give the issue, 1 Cor. 10.13. Consider the case of Christ's Apostles, who were near and dear unto him, yet 1 Cor. 4.11. Such as did both hunger and thirst, were naked, were buffeted, and had no certain dwelling place. Secondly, here see, 2. Observation. that to David's soul the Lords altars were as house and nest to little Birds: the place of God's worship was the place of his chief desire: Psalm. 27.4. Psal. 137.5, 6. For the good things, which were there to be enjoyed: Reason. which are fully set down in the next verse. Use 1 Uses; First, see he had good cause of this grievous complaint: birds will mourn in their kind, when they are driven from their nest. Use 2 Secondly, see a notable evidence of the state of man before God; to discover whether he be acceptable to God, as David was: for then undoubtedly his heart cleaveth to the place of God's worship, as david's did here, and vers. 10. Oh Lord of Hosts, my King, and my God.] These titles serve to amplify David's complaint: The first, Lord of Hosts, shows what God is in himself; and hath been handled in the first verse: The two later, my King, and my God, are titles of relation, showing what God was unto David, namely his King and his God, as he stood in covenant with him. In calling God his King, he doth not only acknowledge his absolute sovereignty, whereby he is King of all creatures, as Psal. 103.19. Dan. 4.32. but his special Regiment by his word and spirit, which he doth exercise in his Church on earth, which is his kingdom of grace, wherein David was a subject, being a member of his Church, and so speaks to God as to his King: So likewise calling the Lord his God, he means not only by creation and preservation in general, but also by special covenant, wherein God requiring faith and obedience of his creatures, doth undertake to afford unto them all the blessings of the covenant, as well pertaining to this life, as to the life to come: see Exod. 23.22. Deut. 30.15, 19 Here observe, 3. Observation. that David a King acknowledgeth God to be his King; as likewise he doth, Psal. 5.3. So that God is King of Kings, Dan. 2.47. Nabuchadnezzar confesseth it; Of a truth it is, that your God is a God of gods and a Lord of Kings. The reason is, Reason. because he hath the rule and command over Kings, as Kings have over their subjects. Use. 1 This serves for admonition. First to superiors, directing them to use equity, justice, and conscience, in all their deal with their inferiors, for they themselves have a superior in heaven. By this argument the Apostle persuades Masters to use moderation towards their servants, Eph. 6.9. And if this were thought upon, it would prevent negligence and injustice, the bane of superiority. Use. 2 Secondly, to inferiors, directing them to obey their superiors, not absolutely, but in the Lord. So in a family servants obey the steward, not against the will of the Lord when they know it. Hence, that of Shadrach, Meshach, and Abednego, Dan. 3.16, 17, 18. and that of the Apostles, Acts 4.19. and 5.29. Use 3 Thirdly to all, teaching us humility and reverence in every action of worship we perform to God. How do men carry themselves in petitioning unto their King? They put up their petitions on their knees. What then are we, that we should not bow to the King of Kings? Consider, Psal. 95.6. children ask blessing kneel to their bodily fathers: how much more should we to the father of spirit's? And reason to that purpose as the Apostle doth, for patiented suffering of correction, Hebr. 12.9. For howsoever kneeling be not of absolute necessity; yet humility in gesture is necessary. Vers. 4. Blessed are they that dwell in thine house; they will be still praising thee. Selah. IN these words, the Psalmist expresseth the state and behaviour of the true members of God's Church, who have the free and comfortable fruition of God's holy worship and service, their estate is happy, and their behaviour godly and comfortable: which doth notably justify the equity of David's complaint, who by trouble and persecution was debarred from this happy and comfortable estate, in which regard he prefers the condition of silly birds before himself, vers. 3. This verse doth naturally branch itself into two parts or propositions: whereof the first shows the happy estate; the second, the holy and comfortable behaviour of the true members of God's Church. For the first he saith, Blessed are they that dwell in thine House. God's house in David's time, was the place where the Lords Tabernacle was, as Psal. 26.8. unto which, till the Temple was built, God had appropriated his holy solemn worship, whereof see, 1 King. 9.3. But now in the new Testament, difference of place in respect of holiness is taken away, John 4.21. and the true Church of God is the house of God, 1 Tim. 3.15. that is, such companies and assemblies, as meet together in Christ's name, Mat. 18.20. that is, by warrant and authority from him, and according to his will revealed in his word; worship God in the right and reverend use of his holy Ordinances, the holy Word and Sacraments sanctified by prayer, 1 Pet. 2.5. To dwell in God's house, is to abide and continue a true member of God's Church, enjoying the comfort and liberty of God's holy worship and service, either in the place of the ministry, or of one of God's people: for though the Priests and the Levites made special abode there, 1 Sam. 3.2. and Psal. 134. yet others of the people, who did diligently frequent, and freely enjoy the liberty of God's worship, might be said to dwell therein, else David would not have used that phrase praying for himself, Ps. 27.4. which I say, because some Interpreters would limit the first branch to the Priests and Levites, Piscat. Junius. but the 15 Psalm doth enlarge the benefit to all the godly. The thing then to be observed in the first branch of the verse is this; 1. Observation. that the true Members of God's Church, who have the comfort and liberty of God's holy worship and service, are blessed and happy. See Psal, 65.4. Blessed is the man whom thou choosest, and causest to approach unto thee, that he may dwell in thy Courts. Hence it follows, verse 10. A day in thy Courts is better than a thousand. I had rather be a doorkeeper in the house of my God, then to dwell in the tents of wickedness. The reason hereof is, from the wonderful, rare, heavenly blessings, Reason. which are here certainly enjoyed, by the true Members of the Church, and no where else. Whereof the first and principal, from which all the rest do flow, is the fruition of communion and fellowship with the true God, one in essence, three in person; the Father, the Son, and the Holy Ghost: who is only in his Church to the true members thereof a God of grace and mercy: and therefore they that are out of the Church, are without God in the world, Eph. 2.12. Here the first person, is the father of mercies, and God of all consolation, 2 Cor. 1.3. the second person is a blessed Saviour and Redeemer, Isa. 9.6. unto us a child is born, unto us a Son is given, a Saviour, Luk. 2.10, 11. with Isa. 49.6, 8. the holy Ghost is the blessed sanctifier, and comforter, being the spirit of grace, Zech. 12.10. yet only in his Church, Joh. 14.17. Now this true God is in his Church, to all the true members thereof, not only a Master, fare excelling Solomon, of whom the Queen of Sheba testifies, that his servants were blessed, 1 King. 10.8. with Mat. 12.42. and such a Master as saith, where I am, thereshall also my servant be, Joh. 12.26. with Luk. 12.37, 43, 44. but a father, Matth. 23.9. Joh. 20.17. Yea, an husband, Isa. 54.5. Thy Maker is thine husband, and Isa. 62.4, 5. Thy land shall be married. As a young man marrieth a Virgin— as the Bridegroom rejoiceth over the bride, so shall thy God rejoice over thee, jer. 3.14. I am married unto you, Hos. 2.19, 20. I have betrothed thee unto me for ever, etc. Secondly, this true God in Christ gives to all the true members of his Church, freedom and deliverance from all the miseries of nature; that is, from the whole guilt and curse of sin in original corruption, and actual transgressions. See Luke 1.68.74. Gal. 3.13. Rom. 8.1. Acts 13.39. Thirdly, here is afforded the full fruition of all needful blessings, as Eph. 1.3. who blesseth us with all spiritual blessings in heavenly things in Christ. And not only so, but even with all needful temporal blessings, Matth. 6.32, 33. These blessings may be reduced to four heads: First, to direction in all the ways wherein they ought to walk, Psal. 32.8. I will instruct thee and teach thee in the way that thou shalt go, Psal. 73.24. Thou shalt guide me with thy counsel. If the good housewife order the ways of her household, Prov. 31.27. how much more God? Secondly, to provision both for soul and body: for Psal. 34.10. They that seek the Lord shall not want any good thing, for soul, John 6.33.35.55.63. 1 Cor. 10.16. Here is Christ the tree of life, and the well of life, whereon Psal. 87.7. All my springs are in thee, Rev. 22.1, 2. And heaven for an inheritance, Luke 12.32. 1 Pet. 1.3, 4. For temporal, see Is. 65.13. Psal. 37.3, 4. Thirdly, to protection and preservation by special providence, Psal. 25.5. and Psal. 91.1. employed and assured to all the faithful, Mat. 10.29, 30, 31. The King's servants in ordinary may not be arrested but upon warrant from the Lord Chamberlain: but God's servants have a greater privilege, God himself must grant the warrant, else they may not be meddled with, Job 1.10. John 19.11. Acts 18.10. Psal. 89.22. Fourthly, to remuneration, both here with honour of grace to be his friends, John 15.14, 15. 1 John 3.1. and attendance of Angels, Psal. 34.7. Psal. 91.11. and hereafter, Mat. 25.21.23. Luke 19.17, etc. Mat. 19.28, 29. Is it such a blessing to dwell in God's house? then it is a great curse to dwell out of it: Use. 1 for so they should be deprived of all the forenamed blessings: This made David to say, Woe is me that I sojourn in Meshech, that I dwell in the tents of Kedar, Psal. 120.5. and 1 Sam. 26.19. If they be the children of men, cursed be they before the Lord: for they have driven me out this day from abiding in the inheritance of the Lord, saying, Go, serve other Gods. The ancient resemblance of God's Church to Noah's Ark is true, and fit for this place. Use 2 Secondly, we must examine whether we be such as dwell in God's house, as true members of the Church: and such only are true believers in Christ, for no man cometh to the Father but by him, John. 14.6. Whereby will be excluded all Gentiles, who are without Christ, Ephesians 2.12. and Turks and Jews, who though they acknowledge the God that made the world, and brought Israel out of Egypt, yet not believing Christ Jesus the son of the Virgin Mary, to be the son of God and saviour of the world, they shall die in their sins, John 8.24. Luke 13.28. Yea, besides them Papists holding the Doctrine established in the Council of Trent, who do not only a Rhem. on Rom. 3.22. deride, but b Conc. Trid. Sess. 6. can. 10. accuse the Doctrine of justification by imputed righteousness, will be found Ismaelites, the sons of the bondwoman, such as must be put out of the house, Gal. 4.21.30. and such guests as want the wedding garment, which is Christ's righteousness imputed and received by faith; see 2 Cor. 5.20. Rev, 3.18. Our white raiment to cover our filthy nakedness of sin must be had of Christ: also by their Idolatry they hold not the head, Col. 2.18, 19 Also they, that profess the truth, and yet content themselves with a dead faith, are not dwellers in God's house; that is such as have a show of godliness, but want the power thereof, 2 Tim. 3.5. who profess they know God, but by their works deny him, Tit. 1.16. Of such St. James speaks, James 2.18.20. Show me thy faith without thy works, etc. He that must abide in the house for ever, must be a son, John 8.35. which we all are through faith in Christ, Gal. 3.26. and by regeneration, 1 John 5.1. for of such the Apostle saith, Thou art no more a servant, but a son, Gal. 4.7. Therefore whosoever would certainly know himself to be in God's house, and to continue therein must get true faith, and keep it, and show the truth of it by works of love, Gal. 5, 6. and of obedience to God's word, 1 Thess. 2.13. Use 3 As we desire the assurance of true happiness, we must approve ourselves dwellers in God's house, that is, such as continue and abide the true servants and children of God. Our holy calling to the faith of the Gospel gives us entrance and admittance into the family of God, 1 Cor. 1.2.9. Eph. 2.18. and 3.12. and our perseverance and continuance in the same faith is it that doth manifest our abode and dwelling in God's house, 1 John 2.19. Now this faith is one, Eph. 4.5. as God is one, and if it be true it worketh by love, Gal. 5.6. and is seen by obedience, wherein we must be constant, Phil. 2.12. Mat. 24.13. and herein we must aporove ourselves dwellers in God's house, having our ears boared, Ex. 21 6. Psal. 40.6. endeavouring as, 1 Tim. 1.19. to keep faith and a good conscience, and 2 Tim. 1.13. holding fast the wholesome word in faith and love: In great houses here on earth, we see great men make use of retainers, which are not servants in ordinary at bed and board, but have houses of their own, where for the most part they live, and look to their own business; only at good times, as they say, and on some special occasions, they come to their Lord and master, and wait upon him in his livery, and are welcome to him, and well accepted as his servants: but in the Church of God, which is the house of the living God, the Lord of heaven and earth, it is not so; all, whom he owneth and acknowledgeth for his servants, are servants in ordinary, they dwell in his house, Psal. 65.4. performing the service of prayer and thanksgiving, and the works of obedience every day: he hath no retainers acknowledged by him for his servants, I mean, such as take liberty to live as they list, and for the service of God, like retainer, think now and then, as on high days, and once on the Sabbath is well enough. Indeed such attendance will serve for a retainer, but God acknowledgeth none such for his servants, see Jer. 7.9, 10, 11. He knoweth, that is acknowledgeth, those that be his, John 10.14. but such as be workers of iniquity he knows them not, as Mat. 7.23. So we may say for idolaters, as Papists be, in the worship of Saints, and of their breaden God, they have another master than God, namely vain idols, 1 Thess. 1.9. Now none can serve two masters, Mat. 6.24. Time servers are in the same rank, which be, first such as make conscience of sin at Communion times, but afterward live as they list: also such as embrace and hold true Religion, only because the authority under which they live doth enjoin it, and if it should alter by the will of man, they would turn with it: Thirdly, Church Papists, who now and then come to our service and sermons, to answer the law, but in their hearts they are for Romish superstition, like the carnal Israelites, whose hearts turned back into Egypt. Of these we may say, as 1 Kings 18.21. How long halt ye between two opinions, etc. Use 4 A great comfort and encouragement to them that persevere in the faith, and go on in obedience: they are blessed, and shall certainly if they go on be glorified, see Matth. 24.13. Revel. 2.10. and 3.12. Every one that is such shall be made a pillar in God's house, and shall go no more out. Therefore in general let all be encouraged to follow the good servants that improve their master's takents, Matth. 25.21.23. and the Apostle Paul, 2 Tim. 4.7, 8. In special let Ministers, who are stewards and disposers of the mysteries of God, look to their behaviour, showing all good faithfulness. 1 Cor. 4.2. This fidelity is set down, Luke 12.42, 43, 44. with 1 Pet. 5.1, 2, 3, 4. Thus much for their happy estate: 2. Observation. their holy behaviour is answerable, they will be still praising thee, God's children and servants, who have the happiness to dwell in God's house, will be much and constant in praising God, see Psal. 135.1, 2. Praise the Lord, ye servants of the Lord, etc.— and verse 19 Bless the Lord, O house of Israel, bless the Lord, O house of Aaron, 20. Bless the Lord, o house of Levi, ye that fear the Lord, bless the Lord, Psal. 145.1, 2. I will extol thee, my God and my King: I will bless thy name for ever and ever. Every day will I bless thee, Ps. 126.1. Hallelujah: Praise the Lord, o my soul, 2. while I live I will praise the Lord. Reason 1 The reasons hereof are two: First, the sacred Ordinance of God and his holy Commandment, Psa. 50.15. 1 Thess. 5.18. This makes it pleasant and comely, Ps. 147.1. Reason 2 Secondly, the power of his grace given to his children and servants, which making them mindful of the Lord, of his word, and of his works and benefits, stirs them up to praise God: True grace is enforcing, as 2 Cor. 5.14. and hence it is with God's servants in the matter of praising God, as it was with the Apostles for preaching, Acts 4.20. and as Luke 19.40. If these should hold their peace the stones would immediately cry out. This by way of use serves, Use 1 First, to let us see that praising God is not a thing indifferent, but a necessary duty. Hence the want of it brings the wrath of God, as on Hezekiah, 2 Chron. 32.25. Use 2 Secondly, we may see by this that they have slender testimony that they be of God's house who fail of this duty. A usual thing for many to have no prayers nor praising God in their families; as also to go out of Church when singing Psalms begin: as though praise were no part of that service, the performance whereof appertains unto them who dwell in God's house, and would be blessed there. Thirdly, this should serve as a most forcible motive to endeavour this duty, which we shall the rather do, if we consider the motives in God, in his properties, his works, for his Church and against his enemies: also what our behaviour in heaven should be, whereto we should begin to inure ourselves here upon earth. Verse 5. Blessed is the man whose strength is in thee, the high ways are in their heart. 6. They going through the valley of Baca make it a well. 7. They go from strength to strength, every one of them appeareth before God in Zion. HEre the Prophet proceedeth in the commendation of the state of God's people, whom he doth expressly affirm to be blessed, and likewise plainly and particularly describeth them by their true and certain properties: which are of two sorts: First, they are such as are strong in the Lord. Secondly, they do sincerely and earnestly affect the holy worship of God; which property is here fully expressed by three things, first, their hearts are set upon the high ways that lead to the Lords Sanctuary, verse 5. Secondly, they do courageous and comfortably endure and break through all difficulties in the way, verse 6. They increase in number and strength in their journey, and all of them in troops appear before the Lord in Zion, verse 7. For the first: Blessed is the man whose strength is in thee] To be blessed is to be in an happy estate, wherein a man enjoyeth the true and chiefest good, which is the true God in his special favour, as Psal. 144.15. But who do so? Answ. First, the man whose strength is in the Lord, that is, who resteth not nor relieth upon himself, but on the Lord, and by him is made strong against enemies both corporal and spiritual, and also enabled for every good duty, which the Lord requireth at his hands. And thus understanding the words, the point is clear to be observed: That man is in a blessed and happy estate, whose strength is in the Lord; that is, who trusteth not to himself, or to any other person or thing; for his safety from evils and ability to do well, but only on the Lord his God, on whom he resteth, and resteth by true faith and confidence, see Proverbs 16.20. who so trusteth in the Lord is happy, and Jer. 17.7, 8. Blessed is the man that trusteth in the Lord, Psal. 125.1.146.5. Happy is he that hath the God of Jacob for his help. Reason 1 The reasons are: First, no man is or can be strong by his own power: This is true both in things pertaining to the body, Deut. 8.17, 18. and to the soul, John 15.5. Reason 2 Secondly, no enemy shall be able to hurt him that is strong in the Lord. This is true both for corporal and spiritual enemies: For corporal, see Psal. 89.21, 22. With whom mine hand shall be established, mine arm also shall strengthen him. The enemy shall not exact upon him, nor the son of wickedness afflict him, 23. I will beat down his foes before his face. Hence Psalm 3.6. I will not be afraid of ten thousands of people, that have set themselves against me round about, and Psal. 27.1, 2, 3. The Lord is my light and my salvation: whom shall I fear? etc. Jer. 20.11. Reason 3 Thirdly, no work nor duty, which God requires at his hand, shall be hard for him who is strong in the Lord, see 2 Cor. 3.5. and 12.10. Phil. 4.12, 13. This serves for instruction, admonition and comfort. For instruction: First, in the way to true happiness: it stands not in any outward thing, Use 1 as natural men think, but in the fruition of the true God, for he is the chiefest good, whomsoever enjoys can lack nothing that is good; for he is all in all to those that are his: Hence Psalm 33.12. Blessed is the nation whose God is the Lord, and the people whom he hath chosen for his own inheritance, Gen. 15.1. Fear not Abraham, I am thy shield, and thy exceeding great reward: and 17.1. I am the Almighty God, walk before me, and be perfect. Hence Exod, 33.15.19. If thy presence go not with me, carry us not up hence, etc. He communicates his goodness to those that enjoy him, as 2 Chron. 16.9. Psalm 28.8. Hence Jer. 9.23, 24. Let not the wise man glory in his wisdom, etc. Use. 2 Secondly, see here who be miserable and accursed, namely, all such as are not strong in the Lord, but in themselves, or something beside the Lord: See Jer. 17.5. Cursed be the man that trusteth in man, and maketh flesh his arm, whose heart departeth from the Lord: Now such are many as well for earthly as for heavenly things. For earthly all such as use unlawful means to procure earthly blessings, as lying, fraud, stealing, oppression, etc. Can these say as Ps. 44.3. thy right hand and thine arm, etc. Nay as 1 Kings 21.19. Hast thou killed and also taken possession, etc. And for heavenly, they that trust to their own righteousness, as Papists do, the Jews did, Rom. 10.3. Use 3 Thirdly, this should admonish us to be as careful to be strong in the Lord as we are desirous to be truly happy: for the man is blessed whose strength is in him. To this end we must give all diligence for three things: First, that we stand truly in covenant with God in Christ, which is by believing on him, so Psal. 125.1. Secondly, that we be upright hearted, dealing truly and sincerely with him in our profession, 2 Chron. 16.9. Thirdly, that we be constant in obedience. 2 Chron 15, 2. Psal. 81.13. Use. 4 Fourthly, this serves for comfort to the upright hearted trusting in God, and walking in obedience, see Psal. 91.1. Let such assure themselves the Lord will be their strength: see Psal. 68.28.35. Psal. 28.6, 7. They may say as Ps. 3.6. and 27.1, 2, 3. The Lord is my light and my salvation, whom shall I fear? The Lord is the strength of my life, of whom shall I be afraid? The high ways are in their heart] Hear the second property of those that are Gods true people is expressed, they do sincerely and truly affect the holy worship of God, as is manifest by their behaviour in three branches: First, the ways to God's house are in their heart, that is, they love and like, and in heart desire and delight in the ways that lead to God's house. They that be truly God's people, 2 Observation. have their hearts set upon the way and means of God's worship, see Psal. 122.1. Psalm 26.8. Because by those ways, Reason. they come to enjoy the presence of God, society and fellowship with him in whom they place all their happiness. Use 1 This serves first to let us see what we may think of those, that have no love nor liking to the ways of God's house, but think it is a weariness, as Mal. 1.13. that say of the Lords day, as Amos 8.5. when will it be gone? And of the word and worship of God, as Job 21.14. Depart from us: we desire not the knowledge of his ways. Certainly these are in a cursed estate, as Acts 13.10. as Elymas the Sorcerer was; see Acts 19.9. Use 2 Secondly, it is a matter of great comfort to those that desire and delight in the means wherein they may have society with God in Christ: Surely flesh and blood hath not revealed it unto them, Matth. 16.17. Let these consider, Luke 11.22. Use 3 Thirdly, it is a good caveat to labour with ourselves, that the ways to God's house may be in our hearts, that we may desire and delight in them, love and like them. Now as we have another Tabernacle and Sanctuary, which is Christ Jesus. Hebr. 8.2. so our ways are not material but spiritual, which we must love and mind: and that is the Evangelicall worship, by which we come to have society and fellowship with God: See Acts 24.14. and 19.9. This is called the Lords highway, Isa. 358. 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 and 11.16, and 49.11, and 40.3, and 19.23, and 62.10. Jer. 31.21. Vers. 6. They going through the valley of Baca make it a Well: even with blessings shall the rain cover. THe second evidence of God's people's sincere and earnest affection towards his holy worship; they do courageously and comfortably endure and break through all difficulties and troubles in the way. That we may conceive so much by the words, we must know that the word Baca signifieth a Mulberry tree, 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 2 Sam. 5.23, 24. which loves to grow in dry places that be sandy and barren: Now they whose hearts be set upon. Or, 1 Chron. 14.14, 15. 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 God's house and holy worship, when they go thitherward through a sandy, dry, barren valley, do make it a well, that is, repute and count it as a well: the word signifieth to put or set, as Gen. 3.15. Psal. 21.6, 12. Psal. 83.11, 13. For thus will they say with themselves, thinking upon the comfort of God's favour to whom they go, that it shall be to them as the rain of blessings, a plentiful and liberal rain upon the dry ground: Or, as Tremellius, and Junius, Wilcocks, etc. whom also the rain of blessing falleth much upon, that is, they sometime endure the trouble of the way, when abundance of rain falleth upon them. If we follow our own translation, the rain also filleth the pools, that is, where springs are not, the people dig, and make pits and places to receive rain water, and therewith refresh themselves in their way to Zion: though I most incline to the first of them. The 70 Interpreters, 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉. In the valley of tears, in the place which he hath set▪ 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉: for the Lawgiver shall give a blessing. The Chaldee Paraphrast, Peccatores autem transibunt in profundum gehennae planctum plangent, sicut fontem ponent illum: atqui benedictione amici●stur qui insudunt, us discant legem tuam. In the words note two points: First, 1 Observation. what manner of way some of, God's people had to go to the public solemn worship of God: secondly, how the godly esteemed of it; and cheer up themselves in it. For the way, it was the valley of Baca, that is, of Mulberry trees, and so dry, and barren, and sandy, which is very wearisome: some say the vale of misery, others vale of tears, of weeping: all import painful and troublesome way. The reason was the providence and ordinance of God▪ Reason. his providence in their situation by lot, for so Joshuah divided the land to God's people, Jos. 14.12. and his ordinance in appointing them to come to that place, which he should choose, Deut. 12.5. which was Jerusalem, Mount Zion. See then here, Use. that God in his providence may dispose so of the estate of his children, that it shall be troublesome and painful for them to go to the place of God's public and solemn worship: so it was to those that dwelled fare from Jerusalem, in the latter end of the days of David; and afterward. And so he dealt upon his sovereignty, to teach them, and all after them, that there is but one Christ, in whom we can come to the father, John 14.6. for partaking of whom, he may in his providence dispose that it may be fare more troublesome and painful for some than others, as it was among the Jews, for partaking of his special worship: which we must take notice of to acknowledge God's sovereignty over us and our estate, as John 21.22, with 18. as also Job. 21.23, 25. In the second place, 2 Observation. observe how the godly deal about the troubles of the way unto God's solemn worship, they put it for a well: now in those countries, wells were cheerful and refreshing places, Judges 1.15. So as the godly among the Jews, esteemed the troublesome and painful way to God's solemn worship, pleasant and cheerful. The reason was, Reason. the great desire they had unto the service of God, and the true delight they took therein: this made the wearisome way seem pleasing. They looked al● the comfort they should enjoy in the presence of God, and therewith refreshed themselves against the wearisomeness of the way: as Jacob was affected with his seven years' service for Rachel, Gen. 29.20. This serves for instruction, admonition, and comfort. Use 1 For instruction two ways: First, see here the power and strength of the grace of love to God, and to his holy worship: neither pains nor cost can stand before it: See Cant. 8.7. Many waters cannot quench love. For pains here we see it: and for cost in David, 2 Samuel 24.24. 1 Chron. 29.3, 4. Nay it breaks through worldly credit and esteem, which is a strong let, as John 12.42. Yet Luke 19.2, 3, 4. we see it had little force in Zaccheus, and in David, 2 Sam. 6.20, 21, 22. Use 2 Secondly, see here what to think of our self; and others, when ease, pleasure, and worldly profit or repute, will hinder from God's service: Can we say they are blessed? Sayest thou a Lion is in the way? Then art thou Solomon's simple one, whom ease slayeth, Prov. 1.32. and 13.4. and 20.4. So Prov. 24.10. If thou faint in the day of adversity, thy strongth is small. Consider Matth. 12.42. and 11.22, 23. Use 3 For admonition: labour to come to this ability of grace in the high esteem of God's worship. For which end know, that it is the ordinary way and means of society with God. Use 4 For comfort to those that have this affection: to them it may be said, as Matth. 13.16. Blessed are your eyes for they see, and your ears for they hear. Even with blessings shall the rain cover: Or, the rain of blessings shall even cover.] This translation I take to be most proper, and agreeable to the words and matter in hand. In these words the Prophet propounds the very thought and meditation of the godly going up to God's worship, whereby they do cheer up their hearts against the weariness of the dry and hot sandy way: They say thus within themselves in their greatest weariness, The rain of blessing shall even cover: thinking upon the grace and favour, which God showreth down upon his servants in his holy worship, which as comfortably and sweetly refresheth their souls in any weariness, as a plentiful rain doth the dry ground: For the better conceiving whereof we must know that it is usual with God in Scripture to resemble the sweet comfort of his grace and favour vouchsafed to the souls of his servants in his holy worship to the sweet refreshing that rain and showers give to the dry ground; see Deut. 32.2. My Doctrine shall drop as the rain, my speech shall distil as the dew, as the small rain upon the tender herb, and as the showers upon the grass, Psalm 72.6. He [that is, Christ in his doctrine, as the truth, and also Solomon, as the type, in his wise and righteous judgement] shall come down as rain upon the mown grass, & as showers the dispersed moisture of the earth, Hos. 6.3. He shall come to us as the rain, as the latter and former rain upon the earth. No marvel then if the godly do in such phrase and words express their thoughts and meditations upon God's grace and favour vouchsafed to his children in his holy worship, especially in the time of their bodily weariness through heat & drought in a sandy way. Now then thus taking the words of the Prophet, to express the thoughts of the godly in their wearisome way, to be set upon the comfort of God's grace and favour, wherewith in his holy worship, he plentifully refresheth their souls, as a plentiful rain doth the dry ground, in them we may plainly note and observe three things; two expressed, and the third necessarily employed: The two things here expressed are, first, their gracious thoughts and meditations in their wearisome way: secondly, the esteem and account they make of God's grace and favour: The thing employed or presupposed is the means and place wherein they make account to enjoy the same. For the first, 3. Observation. The godly Jews that dwelled far from Jerusalem, in their wearisome way to Zion, do set their hearts to think upon the sweet and plentiful refreshing of God's grace and favour, which shall be showered upon their souls in his holy worship: We are now, say they, parched and scorched with heat in this dry and barren wilderness, but when we come before the Lord, our souls shall be plentifully refreshed with the showering down of his grace, we shall be satisfied with the goodness of his house, even of his holy Temple, Psal. 65.4. This they do to strengthen and hearten themselves, Reason. to endure the toil and pains of their wearisome way, even as in nature Merchants do hearten themselves by the hope of gain, to endure the toil and terror of the troublesome Seas; and husbandmen, by the hope of harvest, do readily undertake the labour of seedtime. This serves for instruction, admonition, and comfort. For instruction two ways: First, it lets us see plainly the right way to sound comfort, Use 1 and so to true patience in any outward distress, or bodily misery (which is a great matter to God's children, who through manifold tribulations must enter into the Kingdom of heaven, Acts 14.22.) namely, to bring the heart to feel, and feed upon, God's spiritual and heavenly blessings and graces, which be contrary to our misery; as in worldly poverty and want, to set thy meditation upon the heavenly treasure, and riches of God's grace in Christ, Mat. 6.20. Col. 1.27. whereby the poorest in the world may by true faith be made rich to God, Jam. 2.5. for by it thou purchasest the field wherein the treasure is his, Mat. 13.44, 45. and buyest the pearl of price, and so art rich to God, Luke 12.21. So in imprisonment of body, by faith to meditate on our Christian liberty, and enlargement from spiritual bondage by Christ Jesus: In banishment and exile from our friends and country on earth, to meditate upon our heavenly home, and consider that our heavenly father is with us leading us, Ps. 107.4.7. In bondage to hard masters, to remember we are Christ's freemen, 1 Cor. 7.22. In danger, to remember God's presence and providence, Psal. 118.6, 7. In sickness, to meditate on the health of the soul, in the pardon of sin in Christ, as Mat. 9.2. In blindness, to meditate on the spiritual light, and sight of grace, which Christ gives, Luke 4.18. Yea, in death itself, either natural or violent, both which be the loss of life, to meditate upon our spiritual life in grace, and of eternal life hid with Christ in God, Col. 3.4. And so for any worldly want, or hurt, or loss, we may see there is a spiritual and heavenly supply, Mat. 19.29. Luke 18.29, 30. Thus we shall see God's servants have done in former times, Abraham, Isaac, and Jacob, Heb. 11.8, 9 by faith they so journed in the land of promise as in a strange country, looking for a City, whose builder and maker is God. Thus Job did in his losses consider God's providence and hand, Job 1.22. and in deepest distress meditates on the resurrection to life, Job 19.19, 20, 21, 25. Thus did David, Ps. 27.13. I had fainted unless I had believed to see the goodness of the Lord in the land of the living: And hereupon in distress he stirs up his soul to wait upon God, Psal. 42.11. Psal. 43.5. and prays to God, as Psal. 116.3, 4. The sorrows of death compassed me, the pains of bell gate hold upon me; Then called I upon the name of the Lord, yea he saith, Psal. 94.19. In the multitude of my thoughts within me, thy comforts delight my soul, and Ps. 23.4. Though I walk through the valley of the shadow of death, I will fear none evil, for thou art with me, thy rod and thy staff comfort me: Therefore see, Zech. 11.7. Thus did the godly under the persecution of Antiochus. Heb. 11.35. 2. Mac. 7.7. Thus did Paul, 2 Cor. 4.16, 17, 18. and chap. 5.1. yea, the son of God in our nature did thus, Heb. 12.2. Use 2 Secondly, this lets us see the true reason or ground of the different behaviour and carriage of God's children from natural men, in two things: First, in times of danger, wherein the righteous are bold as a Lion, but the wicked flee when none pursueth, Prov. 28.1. As we may see in David at Ziklag, 1 Sam. 30.6. and Nabal hearing of a danger past, 1 Sam. 25.37. Surely the godly have an heart endued with grace, which is as an hand to lay hold on God's mercy and providence, and so have hope even in death, whereas the wicked is driven away in his wickedness, Prov. 14.32. The wicked are men without hope, 1 Thess. 4.13. Now hope is the anchor of the soul, sure and steadfast, Heb. 6.19. Secondly, about God's worship and service they greatly differ. God's child takes great delight in pains about God's service, as here we see, and Psal. 122.1. and in cost also, as 1 Chron. 29.9. the people rejoiced at their great gifts, and David rejoiced with great joy, and 2 Sam. 24.24. yea, though it cost them their lives, Acts 20.24. and Phil. 2.17. But the wicked count it a weariness, Mal. 1.13. and with the Gaderens had rather want Christ and his gospel, than their hogs, Mat. 8.32.34. And no marvel, for they think it a vain thing to serve God, Mal. 3.14. Use 3 For admonition it serves two ways: First, with these religious Jews to give ourselves to meditate and think upon the true and sweet comfort, which the blessings of grace bestowed in God's holy worship will bring to our souls; for certainly herein is plentiful spiritual supply to all wants, as is employed, Luke 4.18. whereof if we were resolved, we would watch at the posts of wisdom, Prov. 8.34. and hang upon this ordinance, as the impotent persons did at the pool of Bethesda, John 5.3, 4. The want hereof causeth contempt of God's worship in some, Mal. 3.14. and formal usage in the most, as John 4.11. Acts 28.22. Use. 4 Secondly, labour for that estate in grace, whereby we have stay and comfort for our souls in times of distress: The way is to get and practise true faith in Christ; for thereby we shall live in want, Phil. 4.12, 13. in persecution, Heb. 10.38. yea resist the Devil, 1 Pet. 5.9. and quench all his fiery darts, Eph. 6.16. But know it works by love, Gal. 6.5. purging the heart, Act. 15.9. and reforming the ife, Act. 19.19. Use 5 For comfort, this practice of the godly shows plainly, that the child of God is never left of God in misery, without true ground of stay and comfort. God may hid his face and we may be troubled, Psal. 30.7. and 69.2, 3. but as Ps. 43.5. wait, for Heb. 13.5. he hath said. I will never leave thee, nor forsake thee; and consider, 2 Cor. 4.8, 9 We are troubled on every side, yet not distressed: we are perplexed, but not in despair: persecuted, but not forsaken: cast down, but not destroyed, verse 16. Though the outward man perish, yet the inward is renewed daily, while we look not at things that are seen, but at things which are not seen. The second thing to be noted here, 4. Observation. is the high esteem and account which the godly Jews did make of God's blessings of grace to be received in his holy worship; namely, that they are to their souls as the rain of blessings that covereth, that is, as a plentiful rain, which abundantly refresheth the dry and thirsty land. This may be seen in David's desire and acknowledgement answerable to the matter in hand, Psal. 63.1, 2. My soul thirsteth for thee, my flesh longeth for thee, in a dry and thirsty land, where no water is. To see thy power and thy glory, so as I have seen thee in thy Sanctuary. What benefit should David reap by this? ver. 5. My soul shall be satisfied as with marrow and fatness, for Christ in grace comes down into men's hearts as rain upon the mown grass, as showers that water the earth, Psal. 72.6. In his days shall the righteous flourish, verse 7. So Hos. 6.3. Reason 1 Now thus they express their esteem of God's grace, partly, because the remembrance hereof did notably serve to cheer up their souls in their dry, sandy, and wearisome way, as is said before. Reason 2 And principally, because they knew out of God's word, and by experience in themselves, having tasted formerly of God's good work of grace, that God's graces were to man's soul, that which plentiful seasonable rain is to the dry ground; which is evident by the state of the soul, as well wanting grace, as being endued therewith. In the want of grace, what is the soul but as dry barren ground without rain or water, Jer. 17.5, 6. He whose heart departeth from the Lord shall be like the heath in the desert, and shall not be seen when good cometh, but shall inhabit the parched places in the wilderness, in a salt land, and shall not abide 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 But the soul stored with grace is like a field which the Lord hath blessed with plentiful rains, viz. both fruitful in itself, and pleasing and profitable to the owner, see Ps. 72.6.16. When Christ comes down like showers, there shall be an handful of corn upon the top of the Mountains, the fruit thereof shall shake like Libanon, and they of the City shall flourish like grass of the earth, Ezek. 34.26. I will make them and the places round about my hill a blessing I will cause the shower to come down in his season, there shall he the showers of blessing, and the tree of the field shall yield her fruit, and the earth shall yield her increase. This serves for instruction, for admonition and comfort. Use. 1 For instruction two ways: First, see in this resemblance the absolute necessity of grace to the welfare of the soul; for so is the moisture of rain or water to the earth, that it may be fruitful, and so pleasant and profitable unto man, as we may see by the cursed vineyard, Is. 5.6. and by the Mountains of Gilboa, whereon Saul and Jonathan fell, 2 Sam. 1.21, which is a most material point for every man's heart to be resolved of. Use 2 Secondly, this resemblance doth plainly and sweetly illustrate this material and weighty point in Christian Religion, viz. that saving grace to the soul is a supernatural gift of God, neither is it in the power of man of himself to get saving grace; see John 3.27. A man can receive nothing except it be given him from heaven, as before, verse 3. Except a man be born from above he cannot see the Kingdom of God, with verse 7.8. Can the earth be fruitful without moisture? and can it of itself cause the clouds to drop down rain upon it? No such thing. Use 3 For admonition, it serves notably to move every one to set his heart to think seriously on this resemblance, as Deut. 32.46. with reference to verse 2. that so we may labour to bring them to be affected to Gods saving graces, as dry ground is toward rain and moisture, which we see doth chop and gape after moisture, and so in its kind cry to the clouds for showers. This was in David, Ps. 143.6. with 63.1. But alas this thirst is rare to be found. Worldly thirsts there are in many, the drunkard's thirst, Deut. 29.19. the worldlings thirst, Hab. 2.5. the Epicures thirst, whose belly is his God, Phil. 3.19. the ambitious man's thirst, Diotrephes, 3 John 9 and the malicious man's thirst, the bloodthirsty, Psal. 5.6. Thirst after these things doth keep away this thirst after grace, without which we shall never escape Dives thirst in hell, Luke 16.24. If we have a godly thirst, it will appear by diligence in frequenting the place and means of grace, Prov. 8.34. bruit beasts for want of water will break thorough hedges, and grace-thirsty souls will make their ways thorough all incumberances to come where they may have satisfaction; secondly, we will delight herein, as David did, Psal. 4.7. thirdly, we will receive satisfaction, and show it. Use 4 For comfort, it serves to encourage them that find themselves so affected to the blessings of grace as the Jews did here, viz. to esteem them as the rain of blessings, they may assure themselves that they likewise shall find the like fruit and effect of them, to be covered, that is, to be abundantly refreshed by them. The third point to be noted here is employed, 5. Observation. viz. the place and means wherein they assure themselves of these blessings, namely, in the holy worship of God, which he ordained in his Tabernacle, which made David to long and to thirst after them, verse 2. see Is. 2.3. Let us go up to the Mountain of the Lord, to the house of the God of Jacob, Psal. 65.4. Blessed is the man whom thou choosest, etc. The reason hereof is God's sacred ordinance, Reason. who hath here assured the blessing and life, for 1 Kings 9.3. his eyes and his heart are there perpetually, and so as elsewhere it is not to be had, Zech. 13.17, 18. Now the gospel preached is to us God's tabernacle, Rev. 21.3. as Acts 15.16. This serveth for instruction, and that two ways: Use. 1 First, see one main cause of the want of grace in men's souls, they do not love God's house, nor wait upon him in his ordinances, but count them a weariness. Mal. 1.13. with 3.14. and Job. 21.14. as John 5.40. Ye will not come unto me, that ye might have life, so Acts 13.46. Use 2 Secondly, see here the honour of God's house, and now of his holy worship above other ordinances, as Micah. 4.1, 2. Here is the well of life, and tree of life, Rev. 22.1, 2. all his springs are here, Psal. 87.7. Verse 7. They go from strength to strength: every one of them in Zion appeareth before God. THe third thing whereby the Prophet doth declare the sincere affection of the godly towards Gods holy worship is their alacrity and courage, which they like valiant soldiers in marching array towards the enemies do manifest in the way to Zion: For the better conceiving whereof we must know, that the word 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉, here translated strength, doth properly signify vigour, courage, alacrity, power, or spirit, as Exod. 18.21. Jethroes Magistrates must be 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 men of courage, and a woman complete and furnished for all good parts of a wife is 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 mulier strenua, a virtuous woman, a woman of all good parts for her place, Ruth. 3.11. Prov. 31.10. and therefore also the people of God by this word express their valour, as Psal. 60.12. Through God we shall do valiantly, Psal. 108.13. 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 And Ruth. 4.11. do thou worthily, Deut. 3.18. Moses calleth men of prowess and valour, 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 sons of prowess or power. And hence it is taken to signify an army wherein power is both required and showed, Exod. 14.4. and it signifies riches and wealth, because that makes men potent in the world, as Psal. 49.7.11. Prov. 10.15. and 18.11. and in all the book of Job: for compare Job 21.7. with 2 King. 15.20. and it will be plain. Now in this place I take it in the first and proper sense, for the alacrity vigour and prowess, which a man of spirit will show in that thing which he desires to effect. So the godly Jews desiring to come to Zion the place of God's worship, go from strength to strength, that is, they do not faint or leave off through weariness, or length of the way, but ever and anon renew their courage, and cheer up themselves, and so go from strength to strength. And the latter part of the verse shows what it is which puts life and courage into them, namely, their spiritual sight or vision of God in Zion, when there they appear before the ark of the covenant, the pledge of his presence, according to his ordinance, Deut. 16.16. as was said from Abraham's time, In the Mount will the Lord be seen, Gen. 22.14. To come then to the first part of this verse, 1 Observation. therein this is plain. The godly Jews in David's time, went cheerfully and courageously to the place of God's worship, and did increase in strength and courage, notwithstanding the weariness and length of the way, and so went from strength to strength. Psal. 42.4. I had gone with the multitude, I went with them to the house of God, with the voice of joy and praise, with a multitude that kept holiday. Psal. 122.1. I rejoiced in them that said unto me, Let us go into the house of the Lord. Look how courageous soldiers will stir up themselves, and hearten one another unto fight, so did the godly Jews stir up and cheer up themselves in the way to God's worship. The reason was their desire through grace to enjoy spiritual society with God, Reason. which was assured unto them in the holy worship of the Tabernacle and Temple, as 1 Kings 9.3. I have chosen this place, here will I dwell: mine eyes and mine heart shall be their continually. Hence Psal. 27.4. One thing have I desired, etc. This is the wooing place between Christ and his Church; and hence is his direction prescribed to her, enquiring where he did feed, and make his flock to rest? and her affection declared toward this place. Cant. 3.4. It was but a little that I passed from them, but I found him whom my soul loveth: I held him and would not let him go, until I had brought him into my mother's house, and into the chamber of her that conceived me. And the nearer they come to God, the more lively they are: from faith to faith, Rom. 1.17. with 13.11. This serves for instruction, reproof, admonition, and comfort. Use 1 For instruction, it lets us see: First, that there is a spirit of life in the faithful under the Gospel, to make them forward and courageous in their holy profession, and to cheer up themselves unto God's holy worship. We have herein some more encouragements than they had under the law, from the ministry of the spirit under which we live. See 2 Cor. 3. from 13, to 18. Though the same God, and the same Mediator Jesus Christ, to day, yesterday, and the same for ever, Hebr. 13.8, See 2 Cor. 4.13, 16, 18. 1 Cor. 9.24, 25, 26. 2 Tim. 4.7, 8. So that a Christian may say as Paul doth Acts 21.13. What do ye weeping, etc. Use 2 Secondly, the vigour and strength of the godly increaseth more and more in their way of God's worship, and in the course of a godly life. Prov. 4.18. The path of the just is as a shining light, that shineth more and more unto the perfect day. Psal. 92.13, 14. Such as be planted in the house of the Lord shall flourish in the Courts of our God, etc. Rev. 2.19. The last works of Thyatira are more than the first: add Ephes. 4.11, 12, 13, 14, 15. Use 3 Secondly, this is a just reproof of those that say they are Christians, and yet have no spirit, no courage, no life for religion, and for God's holy worship, but are dead and cold, every little thing doth daunt and hinder them, they have no courage for the truth, nor for God's glory. Is the Lords hand shortened? Is Laodicean lukewarmness a matter of no danger? Rev. 3.16. Certainly, they want the spirit of grace, for it's as fire that will break out, Jer. 20.9. like new wine that will vent, Job 32.18. See Prov. 6.17. Use 4 Thirdly, it must admonish us to show life and courage in holy worship, and in a godly life. Hebr. 12.22. They did it going to Mount Zion, we to the heavenly Jerusalem. Consider what wrestlers do, 1 Cor. 9.25, 26. Qu. How shall we get it? Answ. It is a fruit of the spirit, as 2 Tim. 1.7. in those that are redeemed, Tit. 2.14. Rev. 3.19. Use 5 Fourthly, a comfort to the children of God, against the reproach of the world, which will reproach and brand them with odious names, hot spirited, and mad, as they did our Saviour, Mark 3.21. and Festus, Paul, Acts 26.24. The God of Gods shall be seen in Zion.] This is the thing that puts life and vigour into God's servants, when their way to God's worship is long and painful unto them, God shall be seen in Zion, the place appointed by himself for his holy worship: or, as our translation hath it, Every one of them in Zion appeareth before God: both one in substance, for when God is seen in Zion, they that see him appear before him. The reason of the different manner of translation, is the divers acception of the word 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉, 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 which sometime is a preposition signifying ad, to, unto: otherwhile it is a noun, signifying strong, and so noteth the mighty God: the ordinary difference is, 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 Deus, is written with 〈◊〉 a long en, but 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 ad, a preposition, with a short e: and so most Hebrew Books with pricks have it here, which moved our new translatours to take it for a preposition: wherein many others godly and learned do join with them. Which yet others as learned stick not at, because they say that vowel is there short because of Maccaph, which joineth two words together, and usually doth abreviate the precedent vowel. And so the most ancient Greek and Latin translations take it, Sept. and Vulg. and divers learned modern Writers, as Pagnin, Calvin, Mollerus, and our old Church-Bibles. But sigh in sense and substance both come to one; I will herein follow the ancients, and so note in the words two things; first, that the true God is the God of Gods; secondly, that this true God shall be seen in Zion, the place where the Temple was built. For the first. The true God is the God of Gods, 2 Observation. Jos. 22.22. The God of gods the Lord, Psal. 50.1. and 136.2. The mighty God, 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 Dan. 11.36. The Lord of lords; and King of kings, Rev. 17.14. and 19.16. 1 Tim. 6.15. The reason of this title, 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 is his divine sovereignty over all those that do partake with him in his name, Reason. as Angels, and Magistrates: Angels, Psal. 97.7. with Heb. 1.6. and Psal. 8.6. with Hebr. 2.7. and Magistrates, Ps. 82.1. Exod. 22.8, 9, 28. Joh. 10.34, 35. And false Gods though unlawfully, for they are vanities, 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉. Now God's sovereignty over them is plain: for Angels, Hebr. 1.7. with Job 1.6. and for Magistrates, 1 Tim. 6.15. and for idols, Exod. 12.12. Dagon falls down before the Ark, hath his head and hands cut off, 1 Sam. 5.3, 4. This serves for instruction, admonition, and comfort. Use 1 For instruction, see the blessed estate of those that have the God of Gods for their God, as Psal. 33.12. Blessed is the nation whose God is the Lord? and Psal 144.15. For he hath power over Angels, and Kings, and Devil. Use 2 For admonition. First, to choose the God of Gods for our God: herein following Rahab, Josh. 2.9, 11. and Joshuah, chap. 24.15. and Naaman, 2 Kings 5.15, 17. Now our way is through Christ, John 14, 6. Mat. 11.27. Use 3 Secondly, to sanctify him in our hearts, and let him be our fear and dread, Isaiah 8.13. Remember the Angels before his glorious Majesty, cover their faces with their wings, Isaiah 6.2. Use 4 For comfort to those that stand rightly in covenant with God, they need not be dismayed for any terror, as 1 Pet. 3.6. as Psal. 23.1, 4. and Psal. 3.6.8. and Psal. 116.7, 8. and Psal. 118.6. as Dan. 3.16, 17. and hereon as Rom. 8.31. what shall we say to these things? If God be for us who can be against us? The second thing to be noted here is, 2 Observation. That in Zion, the holy hill, the seat of his Sanctuary, will God be seen. This was so well known, that from Abraham's naming of it Jehovah-jireh, when there he should have sacrificed his son, it became a Proverb and common saying, In the Mount will the Lord be seen; and so Musculus acknowledgeth, that all the late writers do translate it, though he himself do not very well like of it, saying, that if he durst he would think that those who put pricks to the Bible in Hebrew, did without need change the verb active 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 will see, into the passive 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 will be seen. But Mercerus a most learned and judicious man for the Hebrew text, judgeth it was done by divine providence, that posterity might know that there God would place his Sanctuary, and therein appear unto his people, and there also have Christ the Lord to be seen; and the 72. do translate it by the verb passive 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉. And for proof, see Psal. 87.2. The Lord loveth the gates of Zion, more than all the dwellings of Jacob. It's the Mountain of his holiness, beautiful for situation, the joy of the whole earth is Mount Zion, where God is known, Psal. 48.1, 2, 3. and Psal. 50.2. Out of Zion the perfection of beauty hath God shined. When Solomon had built his Temple here according to God's direction, than God said, I have chosen this place, here will I dwell, etc. 1 Kings 9.3. Quest. How was God seen in Zion? Answ. Not in essence; for so no man hath seen God at any time, John 1.18. But first, in his sacred ordinances, which were pledges of his presence, as the ark of the covenant, Numb. 10.35. 2 Chr. 6.41. Psal. 132.9. Arise, O Lord God, into thy resting place, etc. also the cloud sometime filling the house, Exod, 40.34. 2 Chron. 7.2. 1 Kings 8.10, 11. and the fire consuming the sacrifices, Leu. 9.24. 1 Kings 18.36, 38, 39 Secondly, and chief in his son incarnate, as Mal. 3.1. with Luke 2.26, 27, 28. For in Christ the father shows himself, as John 14.9, 10. This God was pleased to do; Reason 1. First, for the honour and advancement of his people Israel, as Deut. 3.7. what nation is so great, that hath God so nigh unto them? Secondly, to beautify his Sanctuary, as Hag. 2.7. I will fill this house with glory. Hence it is called high, 1 Kings 9.8. Thirdly, Reason 3. and chief, to stir up his people to desire and delight to come to his sanctuary, as Ps. 42.1, 2. Quest. What is this to us? This place belonged to the Jews. Ans. See Is. 2.2. Mic. 4.1. It was a type of the Church of Christ, as Heb. 12.22. which is therefore called the holy City, new Jerusalem, Rev. 21.3.10. and thereof its true, Mat. 28.19, 20. with 18.20. This serves for instruction, reprehension, admonition, and comfort. Use. 1 For instruction, it lets us see that though difference of place in respect of holiness of the places, be taken away in the new testament, as John 4 21.23. yet in respect of Gods facred ordinances there used, some places have an honour above others, at least for the time when those ordinances are in hand, as Mat. 18.20. And so M. Calvin acknowledgeth, that there is a beauty belonging to temples and Churches in the new Testament, which should draw the affections of the faithful unto them. Use 2 Secondly, a just reproof of wilful Recusants, and profane Protestants, that care not for the place of God's worship; they are far from David's mind, Psal. 26.8. with Psal. 42.1, 2. and Psal. 122.1. and verse 1, 2. of this Psalm, nay they are as those, Job. 21.14. that say unto God, depart from us. Use 3 Thirdly, this should stir up all, that have care of the true welfare of their souls, to love God's house, and God's worship, the house for the worship, as David did: Consider his comfort in death, Psal. 31.5. which will be contrary to the wicked, as Mat. 25.41. Use 3 Fourthly, for comfort to the godly; their love to God's house for grace is an entrance to his house of glory, as 2 Pet. 1.9, 10. Verse 8. O Lord God of hosts, hear my prayer, give ear, O God of Jacob. Selah. HEre he returns to pray for audience to his request for free and safe fruition of the place of God's worship; in which he shows the more earnestness by doubling his requests, and enforcing them by several titles given to God to whom he prays, which may strengthen his heart in his assurance to obtain his requests. The first title is, O Lord God of hosts, which he hath given to God twice before in this Psalm, viz. verse 1.3. yet here it is repeated with more emphasis by addition of the title God: 1. Observation. which shows that the godly in prayer do not faint but increase in zeal and fervency, till they obtain their requests, as Dan. 9.19. Reason 1 For they are enabled to this duty by the spirit, which helpeth their infirmities, being neither weary nor faint, Rom. 8.26. Reason 2 Also they know that God liketh importunity, Luke 18. 1.6.7. and fervency, James 5.16. Which should be a precedent and encouragement to us in prayer, Use. to show fervency and constancy therein. For the first description of God by these titles, O Lord of hosts, it hath been handled in the first verse, with the application thereof: The point is this, The true God is the Lord God of hosts, 2. Observation. etc. The matter he here prays for is audience, 3. Observation. hear my prayer, give ear: the doubling hath its emphasis, and shows his fervency and earnestness for audience: Mark then, The holy Prophet prayeth earnestly to have his prayers heard, see Psal. 5.1, 2. and Psal. 13.1, 2. This he doth, Reason. because to his seeming God did too long delay to satisfy his desire; for David longed and fainted like a woman with child, verse 2. whose case will hardly admit delay. Use. 1 This serves for instruction, and admonition. For instruction see this, that sometime God useth long delays in answering the prayers of his children, see Psal. 22.2. Psal. 77.7, 8, 9 Psal. 80.4. Quest. How can this be, seeing he saith, Ask and ye shall have? Mat. 7.7. Answ. First, the sins of God's children may hinder this blessing, as Psal. 66.18. John 9.31. Is. 59.2. as 2 Sam. 12.16, etc. Secondly, God may delay to answer for a time to kindle zeal in his children, as Mat. 15.22, 23, to 28. as our Saviour dealt with the father of the child that was possessed with a dumb and deaf spirit, Mark 9.18, 22, etc. Thirdly, to express their patience under the cross, as 2 Cor. 12.19. Fourthly, to teach them to rest contented with scuh supply as God ministereth, for he heareth and answereth not always in that particular men beg, but sometime in that which is more for God's glory, and as good for his children, as Heb. 5.7. Use 2 For admonition, every child of God must mark God's dealing herein with his dearest servants, that by God's delays they neither be dismayed in this duty, nor doubt of God's favour; for this was David's case, and Christ's: we should wisely consider the reasons of God's delay, and make use thereof. The latter title he gives to God is, O God of Jacob, which he propounds upon his second and more earnest request for audience. Mark then, 4. Observation. that when David would fain have audience with God in prayer, he calls him the God of Jacob. The reason of this title here is; First, in regard of the covenant which God made with Jacob and his posterity, Reason 1. who are often styled by the name of Jacob, as Psal. 59.13. God ruleth in Jacob; and Is. 43.1. But now saith the Lord that created thee, O Jacob, and he that form thee, O Israel; and 44.1. Hear now, O Jacob my servant, and Israel whom I have chosen, I am the Lord thy God the holy one of Israel, Is. 43.3. Fear not, O Jacob my servant, and thou Jesurun whom I have chosen, Is. 44.2. Now this is a great ground of assurance of audience, that the God to whom he prayed, was his God by covenant; for God saith of this people, O Jacob and Israel, thou art my servant, I have form thee, thou shalt not be forgotten of me, Is. 44.21. Secondly, and more especially, Reason 2. in regard of the special favour that God shown to Jacob when he changed his name to Israel, in suffering himself to be overcome by Jacob when he wrestled with him, Gen. 32.24, 26, 28. as a Prince, saith he, hast thou power. Hosea saith, chap. 12.3. By his strength he had power with God, verse 4. yea, he had power over the Angel (that is, Christ the Angel of the covenant) he wept and made supplication unto him; mark the means of his prevailing, prayers and tears. Now David remembers this, and calls him the God of Jacob, to encourage himself in prayer, and to get assurance of prevailing: For the God of Jacob is he that suffers himself to be prevailed with in prayer, and he is without shadow of turning, jam. 1.17. to day, yesterday, and the same for ever, Heb. 13.8. This serves for instruction, admonition, and comfort. Use 1 For instruction, see here a gracious practice of God's servants, both to mark and mention in their prayers, such dealing of God with their forefathers, as may encourage them in this duty, and strengthen their faith in assurance to prevail. It's here plain in David, when he calls God the God of Jacob: but more plain in Elisha. 2 Kings 2.14. when coming back to the waters of Jordan, with the mantle that fell from Elijah, wherewith Elijah had a little before made a way through the river on dry ground, verse 8. he doth the like thing that Elijah did, using these words, where is the God of Elijah: as if he should have said, sure he can do to me as he did to him. This thing moved the Church of God often to mention Gods gracious dealing with their forefathers, as Psal. 44.1, 2, 3, 4. Psal. 99.6, 7, 8. See Psal. 74.13, 14. and Isa. 51.9. Awake, awake, put on strength, O arm of the Lord: awake as in the ancient days: Art thou not he that hath cut Rahab? (that is, Egypt) and wounded the Dragon in the waters? (that is, Pharaoh) and verse 10. Art not thou he which hath dried up the sea, etc. Meaning, that he can do so still. So Jehoshaphat in his prayer, 2 Chron. 20.7. Use 2 For admonition, remember that whatsoever was written afore-time was written for our learning that we through patience and comfort of the Scriptures, might have hope, Rom. 15.4. We therefore must read the Scripture with observation, and thus encourage ourselves in prayer to prevail with God for his Church, and for ourselves. For comfort, in prayer remember the true God is the God of Jacob, he will be prevailed with by prayers and tears: but follow and imitate Jacob, leave not off, give not over till he answer, as Isa. 62.1, 2. Vers. 9 Behold, O God our shield: and look upon the face of thine anointed. IN the former verse, David did most earnestly beg of God audience to his prayer. In this verse, continuing the same duty of prayer, he begs of God (whom he calleth their shield) with like earnest affection (for he doubleth his request) the favour and kindness to be beheld and looked upon: moving the Lord thereto by the honourable state whereunto God had advanced him, in anointing him to be a King, so as he was the Lords anointed. In this Petition note three things: first, the title which he gives to God; secondly, the favour he crave of God: thirdly, the reason whereby he would move the Lord to to grant that favour. For the first, the title he gives to God is their shield, O God our shield. A shield we know is a part of armour for defence, serving to keep off and award the hurts and blows which an enemy might give: and so by fit resemblance shows what God becomes to those that be his, namely, a sure defence and saveguard from all hurtful▪ assaults of their enemies. Mark then in this title, 1. Observation. that God is a shield for his children, that is, their sure and safe protector and defender from the hurts of all their enemies, Psal. 3.3. Thou Lord art a shield for me, Psal. 18.2. The Lord is my rock, and my fortress, my deliverer, my God, my strength, in whom I will trust: my buckler, and the horn of my salvation. Psal. 33.20. He is o●● help and our shield, Psal. 59.11. Bring them down, O Lord our shield: and as it followeth in this Psalm, vers. 11. The Lord God is a Sun and shield. The reason hereof, Reason. is his own free grace and favour in Christ to those that be truly in Covenant with him, as Gen. 15.1. This serves for instruction; admonition, and comfort. Use 1 For instruction two ways: First, to let us plainly see the great happiness of the godly, that though they have many and mighty enemies, both corporal and spiritual, yet their God is an all-sufficient safe buckler, and shield of defence against them all, see Deut. 33.29. Happy art thou O Israel, who is like unto thee? O people saved by the Lord, the shield of thy help, Psal 144.15. Happy are the people that be so, yea happy is that people whose God is the Lord. Use 2 Secondly, this shows how Magistrates should show themselves toward the godly, when any wrong is offered unto them, namely as the Lord himself is, whose name they bear, Psal. 82.6. so they should become shields, that is, sure protectors and defenders of the godly, so Job was, job 29.11. when the ear heard me it blessed me, and when the eye saw me, it gave ear to me, 12. Because I delivered the poor that cried, and the fatherless, and him that had none to help him, 13. The blessing upon him that was ready to perish came upon me, and I caused the widow's heart to sing for joy, 14, 15, 16, 17, etc. Magistrates are called shields, Ps. 47.9. Hos. 4.18. and therefore should become protectors of the good, unless they will have their own names to rise up in judgement against them. Use 3 For admonition, it serves effectually to move every one to labour carefully for that estate, wherein they may truly have the Lord for their shield. Hereunto three things are necessary. First, that we stand rightly in covenant with God, having avouched him for our God, not only by receiving the seals of the covenant, in being baptised and coming to the Lords Table, which Hypocrites may do, but especially by reverend receiving the word of the covenant, and humbly submitting ourselves thereto, as God required, when he avouched Israel to be his people, Deut. 26.16, 17, 18. and they performed, when they sat down at his feet, every one receiving his word, Deut. 33.3. Secondly, we must see that our hearts be endued with true faith, whereby we trust in God unfeignedly, resting and relying upon his promise for all the blessings of the covenant. This grace entitles us to have God for our shield. Prov. 30.5. Every word of God is pure, he is a shield to those that trust in him. Psal. 18.30. The word of the Lord is tried, he is a buckler to those that trust in him. Psal. 28.7. The Lord is my strength and my shield, my heart trusted in him, and I am helped: also, Psal. 33.18, 19 20. Thirdly, we must walk uprightly before him, making conscience of all sin, and leading a godly life. This God required of Abraham, to whom he promised to become a shield, Gen. 17.1. with Gen. 15.1. and Solomon gives assurance hereof, Prov. 2.7. He is a buckler to them that walk uprightly, that is, to those that look in all things to please God, and lean neither to this sin nor that. And to move us hereunto, let us consider the evils of the times in the abundance of iniquity, which cry to heaven for most heavy judgements: let us think upon the troubles of other nations, and our own present danger sundry ways, especially from divisions both in Church and state. Now in times of trouble, nothing can be better for us, then to have the Lord for our shield, for than we need not fear, what can man do unto us? Psal. 118.6. Use 4 For comfort, this makes greatly to all that be in covenant with God, and testify the truth of their faith by upright walking before him: for God is their shield what need they fear. Consider Psal. 27.1, 2. The Lord is my light and my salvation, whom shall I fear, &c, Jer. 20.11. The Lord is with me like a mighty terrible one, therefore all mine enemies shall be confounded, but I shall not be confounded. This made David not to fear ten thousand of the people that should beset him round about, Psal. 3.6. nor walking through the shadow of death, Psal. 23.4. This made the three servants of the Lord not fear the hot fiery furnace, nor the fierceness of the King, Dan. 3.16, 17. etc. Now consider that God is without shadow of change. Jam. 1.17. and he was a shield to Abraham, David, Jeremy, and others; let us therefore labour to be like them, and we may with like confidence rest assured of God's protection, as the Lord promised, 1 Kings 9.4, 5. and as the godly do comfortably expect, Psal. 22.4, 5. The second thing to be noted here, is the favour which he begs and craves of God, namely, 2 Observation. that God would behold and look upon his face, that is, look upon him favourably, taking gracious notice of his estate and desire, Psal. 142.4. look upon my right hand and see, so the words are in the original as the marginal reading hath it, Psal. 119.132. Look upon me and be merciful unto me, Psal. 80.14. Look down from heaven and behold, so Is. 63.15. Look down from heaven and behold from the habitation of thy holiness, and of thy glory. Reason 1 The reasons hereof are two: First, because Gods looking upon his face was a comfortable sign of his favour and kindness, as Psal. 80.3.7.19. 'Cause thy face to shine and we shall be saved, Psal. 31.36. Make thy face to shine, save me for thy mercy's sake. This is more plain by the contrary Gods hiding of his face, which is in scripture a plain sign of God's anger and displeasure, Deutr. 31.17, 18. Then shall mine anger be kindled against them, and I will forsake them, and I will hid my face from them: and Psal. 13.1. How long wilt thou forget me, O Lord, for ever? How long wilt thou hid thy face from me? Reason 2 Secondly, David desired God to look upon his face, because conceived it might be a special means to move to mercy. For David no doubt, showed in his very countenance a godly sorrow for his restraint from God's sanctuary, as also an earnest desire of that favour, that he might safely frequent the place of God's worship, see Psal. 42.1, 2. for his earnest desire, and verse 3, 4.9. for his sorrow and mourning. This serves for instruction and for admonition. Use. 1 For instruction two ways: First, the form of words and phrase here used show a notable way to stir up and move compassion towards others, namely, to look upon and behold their miseries: for therefore no doubt doth David entreat the Lord to look upon his face, that the view of his mournful countenance might stir up compassion towards him, so Lam. 1.12. Is it nothing to you, all ye that pass by? Behold and see if there be any sorrow like my sorrow. Use 2 Secondly, see here that the favour of God is to the child of God a thing of high esteem, else the smallest sign thereof in a cheerful countenance and lovely look would not be so earnestly desired; indeed with natural men it is not so; they say unto God, depart from us, what can the Almighty do for us? Job 22.17. But with the godly it is otherwise, Psal. 30.5. In his favour is life, nay Psal. 63.3. His loving kindness is better than life, which made David to bid Zadock to bring back the ark of God unto his place, saying, If I have found favour in the eyes of the Lord, he will bring me again, and show me both it, and his habitation. But if he say, I have no delight in thee, behold, here I am, let him do to me, as seemeth him good, 2 Sam. 15.25, 26. Use 3 For admonition it serves three ways: First, to imitate David in our prayers, labouring in our very countenance to express truly the good affections of our hearts, by mournful looks in confession of sins, as Psal. 55.2. Attend unto me, and hear me, I mourn in my complaint and make a noise, and by cheerful countenance in thanksgiving; so serving the Lord with a cheerful and glad heart for his good blessing, as Deut. 28.47. Use 4 Secondly, to learn of David how to stir up our hearts to charitable compassion towards them that be in misery, namely, exercise our senses upon the objects of mercy. Hitherto belongs the charge, Is. 58.7. Hid not thyself from thine own flesh. That was the uncharitable practice of the Priest and Levite to turn away from the wounded man, Luke 10.31, 32, 33. Use 5 Thirdly, this must teach us with David to make high account of God's favour, esteeming it as our own life, as David did. And for the sure obtaining of it, labour to be found in Christ, in whom only it is to be had, John 14.6. with Ezek. 39.29. Neither will I hid my face any more from them. Also to beware of all sin, whereby it is certainly lost, as Deut. 31.17, 18. Ezek. 39.23, 24. And in particular, seeing the want of faith and obedience, the chief fruits of the word of the Kingdom, cause God to take it from us, Mat. 21.43. therefore in special manner we must give all diligence to make our calling and election sure, 2 Pet. 1.5, 6, etc. The third thing to be noted here is, the reason or argument employed in the title, which David gives to himself to move God to show favour unto him, namely, because he is the Lords anointed. It is most true, that the son of God the second person in Trinity was at this time, and from the beginning of the world in God's purpose and promise, the Lords anointed, as he is called the lamb slain, Rev. 13.8. whereon he is called the Messiah or anointed long before his incarnation, Dan. 9.24, 25. whose coming was expected by all the Jews, as John 4.25. And it may be David in this title had reference to his mediation, in whose alone merits and worthiness the godly in all ages have audience with God, as Dan. 9.17. 'Cause thy face to shine upon thy sanctuary for the Lords sake, that is, for the Lord Christ Jesus sake. And so from David, we must learn to beg all blessings of God for Christ's sake, as John 16.23, 24. with John 14.6. Yet withal we must know, that David styles himself Gods anointed, with special reference to that high favour and honour whereto God had advanced him. when he anointed him by Samuel, to be King over his people, as 1 Sam. 16.12. Psal. 89.20. whereby he made him not only a type, but an honourable progenitor of Christ, as that same Psalm implies, vers. 26, 27, 28, 29. And upon consideration of that great and extraordinary favour, he begs that which is less, even a gracious respect for freedom and liberty in Gods holy sanctuary, as the next verse, which propounds the reason of his earnest desire, doth plainly import. Mark then, 3 Observation. that because David was the Lords anointed, therefore he begs that grace and favour to enjoy with freedom, the Ordinances of God in his holy Sanctuary. To the same effect, he prays, Psal. 132.10. For thy servant David's sake, turn not away the face of thine anointed. Reason 1 The reason hereof is plain. First, because the very external unction was an high honour and a rare favour, as is implied, 1. Sam. 15.17. When thou wast small and little in thine own eyes, wast thou not made the head of the tribes of Israel, and the Lord anointed thee King over Israel? But being joined with the thing signified, even the inward graces of the spirit, as it was in David, 2 Samuel 23.1, 2. where he is said to be the man that was raised up on high, the anointed of the LORD, endued with the Spirit, thus it did entitle him to GOD'S special mercy, as Psalm 89.20, 28. GOD promised, saying, I have found David my servant, with my holy oil have I anointed him— My mercy will I keep for him for ever: and David acknowledgeth, Psalm 18.50. Great deliverances giveth he to his King: He showeth mercy to his anointed. Reason 2 Secondly, David propounds this motive to God, to bestow upon him this favour, because hereby he should be better enabled to walk worthy of the honour conferred upon him, in his anointing: as see Isaiah 2.3. here God teacheth his ways for their enabling to walk in his paths. This serves for instruction, and for admonition. Use 1 For instruction two ways. First, it lets us see a commendable property in the godly, to observe and mark Gods favours towards them, for their better encouragement to depend upon him, and to pray unto him for further blessings. See 2 Sam, 17.34, 37. Thy servant kept his father's sheep, etc. Psal. 56.13. Thou hast delivertd my soul from death: wilt thou not deliver my feet from falling? So did Samson in his great thirst, Judg. 15.18. This we should the rather mark, for our example in following the godly herein, both because God requires it for our good, Psal. 111.4. He hath made his wonderful works to be remembered: and verse 2. they are sought out of all them that pleasure therein. Michah 6.5. Remember now, O my people, what Balak King of Moab consulted, and what Balaam the son of Beor answered him, from Shittim unto Gi●gal, that ye might know the righteousness of the Lord. And also blames those that forget his works and dealing towards them, as Psal. 106.7. Our fathers understood not thy wonders in Egypt, they remembered not the multitude of thy mercies: but provoked him at the sea, verse 13. They soon forgot his works, they waited not for his counsel, verse 21. They forgot God their Saviour For this, good King Asa is blamed, 2 Chron. 16, 8. Were not the Ethiopians, etc. Use 2 Secondly, here behold a great prerogative and privilege of all the godly that be true believers, for they have ever in themselves, though not of themselves but from the Lord; a comfortable ground of encouragement to go to God in prayer for any needful blessing: which is, beside his command and promise, Psalm 50.5.15. the honour of holy unction, they are the Lords anointed one's, though not with material oil (the use whereof ended in Christ, as all legal types did, Col. 2.17. Heb. 10.6.) yet with the graces of the holy Ghost, which are spiritual oil, as 1 John 2.20.27. By which they are made Kings and Priests unto God, Rev. 1.6. an holy priesthood to offer up spiritual sacrifices acceptable to God by Jesus Christ; whereon they are called Christ's fellows, Psal. 45. yea Christ himself is not ashamed to call them brethren, Heb. 2.11. And so they are indeed by the grace of faith, as Gal. 3.26, ● John 5.1. Christ indeed hath the pre-eminence, for he is the natural son, as he is the second person in Trinity, the only begotten, John 1.14. and as incarnate, made man the son of God also, Mat. 3.17. by the grace of personal union. For admonition two ways to every one that would pray with comfort. Use 3 First, to make trial whether we be the Lords anointed spiritually, which is, by endowment with such graces of the spirit, as declare us to be made of Christ, Priests unto God, to offer up spiritual sacrifices, which are; First, ourselves in souls and bodies through faith in Christ, as Rom. 6.13. yield up yourselves unto God, Rom. 12.1. which is known by sanctification joined with profession of faith, as Rom. 15.16. Secondly, our prayers and praises, as Psal. 141.2. Let my prayer be set forth as incense, and Heb. 13.15. the sacrifice of praise, the fruit of the lips, or as Hos. 14.2. the calves of our lips. Use 4 Secondly, in the want of assurance of this honourable state to give all diligence in the saving and holy use of God's means to attain unto it, which requires, first, leaving the world, though not for habitation, yet for behaviour and condition; for the world receives not this anointing, John 14.17. whence Christ told his Disciples he had chosen them out of the world, John. 15.19. meaning by his holy calling, whereto Paul exhorteth the Romans, chap. 12.2. Fashion not yourselves, etc. The world's fashion to be left is sin, in general, 1 John 5.19. and in particular the lusts of the flesh, the lust of the eye, and pride of life, 1 John 2.16. Now this is by true repentance, whereon the spirit is promised, Prov. 1.23. with Acts 2.38. Secondly, wait for this gift of the spirit in the sacred ordinances of the word and prayer, the word Acts 10.44. Gal. 3.2. and prayer, Luke 11.13. do herein as the people did at Bethesda, John 5.3, 4. yet let us look to the affections of our hearts towards this anointing in the use of means; for we must do it with an holy desire, Is. 44.3. and ever join obedience with our endeavour, Acts 5.32. Verse 10. For a day in thy Courts, is better than a thousand. I had rather be a Doorkeeper in the house of my God, then to dwell in the tents of wickedness. THe Prophet having sundry ways expressed his zealous affection towards the house of God, first, by way of admiration, verse 1.2. By plain discovery of his affection, verse 2.3. By lamentation, verse 3.4. By instruction, touching the happiness of the Priests and Levites, verse 4.5. By humble and earnest supplication for audience and favour to enjoy the blessing he so much desired, verse 8, and 9 doth in this verse (to prevent the admiration of some, and the derision of others, who would account this holy longing to be but foolish doting) render a good reason of his earnest affection towards the Lord's Sanctuary, drawn from the surpassing benefit of time spent there above any other place in the world; for a day in thy Courts (saith he) is better than a thousand, any where else; speaking of the Sanctuary, as the spouse doth of Christ, Cant. 5.9, 10. to give a reason of her ardent affection toward him, she saith, He is the chiefest of ten thousand. And because the greater number might perhaps be otherwise affected, therefore he doth make instance in himself, because he best knew his own heart, and plainly professeth that his affection did more cleave to the Lords sanctuary then to any other place, saying, I had rather be a doorkeeper, etc. like as Joshuah had done before about the worship of the true God, Josh. 24.15. To begin with David's reason; it stands upon this ground. Man's heart for earnest desire and delight should be there set where most and best good is to be received; this is according to the Apostles council, 1 Cor. 12.31 Covet earnestly the best gifts, and 1 Thess. 5.2. Prove all things, hold that which is good. There 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 must needs sometimes be 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉: for we must not only choose good before evil, but of divers good things the best, as the very heathen have well prescribed. Now the Prophet David doth here assume. But a day in God's Courts is better than a thousand elsewhere. Tull: Off. lib. 1. And therefore do I desire it. In this, which the Prophet assumeth, this must be remembered for the meaning, that by God's courts here is not meant heaven the place of glory, but the place of his solemn worship here on earth even his sanctuary, which to David's religious heart was heaven upon earth. And so the point to be observed is this; That time bestowed in God's holy worship and service is better than a thousand times so much spent elsewhere. 1. Observation. This is here plainly affirmed, and to gain our more cheerful assent, mark the reasons following; Reason 1 First, here only is the certain perfect cure of all spiritual evils and maladies in the soul. A Postscript by the Publisher to the READERS. Christian Readers, HAving drawn forth this Exposition of the 84 Psalms, as fare as the perfect Copy of the Authors own hand-writing had carried it on, and having lost the hopes I had once of supplying what is wanting, on the three last Verses, out of his other papers, I had an intent to undertake that task myself: but upon further consideration, I have now resolved to let it alone, and leave it as I found it, rather than to fall under his censure, that said, Infoelix operis summa; and to owe them an answer, who should ask a reason of the dissimilitude in the words of the Poet, when he said; Amphora caepit Institui, currente rotâ cur urceus exit? For why should I strive, non passibus aequis, to follow him afar off, whom I can have no hope to overtake? Such a Master of this sacred Art (rightly dividing the word of truth) he was, that it would be presumption in me to imagine, that what was left unfinished by him, should be perfected by me. And for works of this nature, to be published in this sort, is not without example, amongst the writings either of ancient and modern Authors. Besides (if I be not mistaken) both the matter and expressions in these three Verses, either all or the most part, are such as you may find handled, either in the former Verses of this Psalm, or in the Expositions of those other three; which it is intended shall be published together with this, viz. 27, 85, 87. As, the former part of the tenth verse, A day in thy courts is better than a thousand, seems parallel to that of the fourth Verse; Blessed are they that dwell in thine house: the latter part of the same Verse, I had rather be a Doorkeeper in the house of my God, then to dwell in the Tents of wickedness, unto the fourth Verse of the 27 Psalms, One thing have I desired of the Lord, etc. So the former part of the 11 Verse, The Lord God is a Sun and a shield, doth not differ much more from that of the 9 Verse, Behold, O God our shield, and look upon the face of thine anointed, than a profession doth from a petition, and mercy acknowledged, from mercy desired: and the latter part of the same Verse, no good thing will he withhold from them that walk uprightly, what is it but the same with that of the 85 Psalms, Vers. 12, 13. The Lord shall give that which is good, etc. The like I might say of the rest, but that I suppose this to be sufficient, if not more than needed. Vale. THE Church's Exercise UNDER AFFLICTION. OR, AN EXPOSITION OF THE LXXXV Psalms. By Mr. THOMAS PIERSON, late rector of Brompton-Brian, in the County of Hereford. LONDON, Printed for Philemon Stephens, at the gilded Lion in Paul's Churchyard. 1647. To the Right Worshipful, my truly noble and thrice most honoured Patron Sir ROBERT WHITNEY Knight. IT is not unknown unto him, unto whose eyes all things are naked and opened, that a strong desire doth possess me (if it be not more proper to call it ambition) of offering to the present age, and leaving to posterity, some public evidence of that unfeigned thankfulness, which I humbly acknowledge to be due unto you, for your altogether undeserved as well as unexpected at the first, and now little less than twenty years continued, favour, expressed, amongst many other particulars, by three several presentations unto such Church-livings as were in your power to dispose of: and those, not only so freely, but also so friendly, not granted, but offered, that would the severest censurer of Simony that ever was choose of purpose a pattern, in that particular for patrons perpetually to practise by, the world could not afford him any one, that might more truly say than you can, nec prece, nec precio. And of all the relations wherein men stand to one another, in that between Ministers and their people, I think it is the greatest happiness, when we can tell ourselves truly, that it was not our own doing, but Gods by the means of others, without any solicitation of our own, that brought us together. This hath been my comfort in many trials of affliction, and will be I hope, my joy and my crown, when ever God shall see it good to turn his hand upon me, and next under him I shall ascribe it unto you. And having long ago put on almost an obstinate resolution never to send mine own name to the press (except it be, as now I do, to bring to light another man's labours) I am glad I have such a good opportunity, that whilst I am publishing some of his works, whose memory is not only precious with you, and others unto whom he was known, but also like to last as long as Orthodox Christian religion keeps footing in England, I may both honour one part with your name, and withal tell the world, what I hope you will believe, that I am Your Worship's most obliged Orator, in the strictest bonds of all observant duty unfeignedly devoted, CHRISTOPHER HARVEY. THE CHURCH'S EXERCISE UNDER AFFLICTION. OR, An EXPOSITION of the LXXXV Psalm. Psalm 85. To the chief Musician. A Psalm for the sons of Korah. VERS. 1. Lord thou hast been favourable to thy land; thou hast brought back the captivity of Jacob. I Have chosen to entreat of this Psalm, as containing fitting matter unto our times and occasions: wherein, as well the works of God's providence, as the godly government and authority under which we live, do call us to the consideration both of former mercies and favours▪ as also of present evils and further dangers: that renewing our thankfulness for blessings received, and humbling our souls to beg of God the removal of judgements, both present and imminent, we may with better assurance wait upon God, for the fruition of his blessings. The scope and general division of the whole Psalm. Answerable to all which, we have in this Psalm, as a pattern shown us in God's holy mountain: First, the Church's acknowledgement of God's favour and mercy, in the removal of former evils, verse 1.2, 3. Secondly, her humble and earnest prayer, for the perfecting of that mercy begun, by the removal of some heavy judgements, which were renewed upon them for their sins. verse 4.5, 6, 7. Thirdly, her godly behaviour, in waiting for mercy, in a gracious answer to her prayers, with the sure grounds thereof. verse 8. etc. The title of the Psalm explained. These are the general parts of this Psalm: which I will handle in order: But first a word or two of the title prefixed, which showeth the dedication thereof, To the chief Musician: and pointeth out the persons, that were specially to be employed in the singing thereof, namely, the sons of Korah. The dedication is to the chief Musician, or master of the Quire. For 1 Chron. 16.4. David ordered a Quire, to sing thanksgiving, and penned Psalms for that end, which he delivered to the master of the Quire, verse 7. Of their ordering. See 1 Chron. 25.1, 7. The parties, by whom it is to be used, are the sons of Korah. These sons of Korah were the posterity of that rebellious Levite, who with Dathan and Abiram rebelled against Moses and Aaron, Numb. 16. Which Korah was consumed with fire, verse 35. with 17. Howbeit there were of his sons that died not, Numb. 26.11. departing, as it seemeth, from their father's tent, as all were commanded, Numb. 16.24, 26. And of these is numbered a family of the Korathites, Numb. 26.58. of whom came Samuel the Prophet, and Heman his nephew, 1 Chron. 6.33. a great singer, 1 Chron. 25.4, 5. The first Observation. In this title observe two things. First, that God required joy and gladness in his service, which David prepared, 1 Chron. 23.5. and 25.1. and bids all his people to rejoice in their feasts, Deut. 16.11.14. which feasts did represent the life of Christians. And in Evangelicall worship he requires making melody to the Lord in their hearts, Ephes. 5.19. The Reason. The reason is great. For in God's service we have society with God, which is a just cause of exceeding joy. Herein God vouchsafeth evidence of special favour; and if we should take no delight therein, it argues fearful contempt: which God cannot endure without revenge, as Deut. 28.47.48. whereto add, Amos 8.5, 11. The Use. This should make us to stir up in our hearts, and to express in our behaviour this spiritual joy in God's service. To this end we have need of the spirit to sanctify us, which will make us to rejoice in God's word, as one that finds a great spoil. Psal. 119.162. and conceiving it to be the food of our souls, labour to hunger and thirst after it, and then with Job, shall we esteem it above our appointed food, Job 23.12. And, when we know God to be our God, and the fountain of blessings to us, we shall come before him with gladness in prayer. Psal. 100.2. and our mouth shall praise him with joyful lips. Psal. 63.5. The second Observation. Secondly, here note that the sons, that is, the posterity of wicked and rebellious Korah have an honourable place in God's sacred and solemn service, for to them sundry of David's Psalms are commended: as Psal. 42.44, 45, 46. etc. which is no small honour. The Reason. No doubt, David saw them, being by place and birth Levites, to be faithful and diligent in their place, and thus renowns them to all posterity, that he composeth special Psalms, for their ministry in the solemn service of God. The use for instruction. Here see the verifying of God's word, for the comfort of all godly children, that the son shall not bear the iniquity of the father, Ezek. 18.14, 17, 20. if he see his father's sins and turn from them. Obj. Exod. 20.5. Visiting the iniquities of the fathers upon the children. Answ. That is, enquiring for the sin of the fathers among the children, and, if he find it there, then pays he them home. Obj. achan's sons and daughters are stoned and burnt for the father's sacrilege, Josh. 7.24, 25. And Dathans and abiram's little children are swallowed up. Numb. 16.27. Answ. For aught we know, they might be of years of discretion, and privy to their father's stealth. When little ones die in the punishment of their father's sin, God lays not the punishment of the father's sin upon the children, but to make the father's sin more odious, doth then bring upon the children the fruit of their own original corruption: which is death determined upon all flesh: as Gen. 2.17. with Rom. 5 12. As a creditor, that hath both the father and the son debtors unto him, The Use for comfort. may, upon the father's provocation, lay the forfeiture upon both, being both in his danger. Secondly, here is special encouragement to the children of wicked parents, to become godly and faithful in their places. In some sense, they are the sons of strangers: for the wicked are estranged from the womb, Psal 58.3. Yet, if they leave their father's sins, and become faithful to the Lord, here is comfort for them in the honour of Korah's posterity. See If. 56.3. Let not the son of the stranger, that joineth himself to the Lord, say, the Lord hath utterly separated me from his people: for verse. 6, 7. the sons of strangers, that join themselves to the Lord, to serve him, and to love the name of the Lord, shall be brought unto his holy mountain, and made joyful in his house of prayer: for them that honour me, I will honour, saith the Lord. 1 Sam. 2.30. Thus much of the title: the Psalm itself followeth. Verse 1. Lord, thou hast been favourable to thy land: thou hast brought again the captivity of Jacob. The meaning of the words. IN this and the two next verses, are contained the Church's acknowledgement of God's great favour and mercy: here propounded, not only, to testify their thankfulness for the blessings they enjoyed, but also, to be a ground of encouragement unto their new requests, in the 4, 5, 6, and 7. verses. And so conceived, we may therein observe one thing in general, viz, The first Observation. That God's Church doth think upon and acknowledge the blessings they lie still in other things, under some heavy judgements. Compare the three first verses with the 4, and 5, which will well agree, either, to the times of Ezra and Nehemiah, when, notwithstanding their return from Babylon, the people were in great distress at Jerusalem: as Nehem. 1.3. or, to the more heavy times, when Antiochus Epiphanes did tyrannize over them, as the book of Maccabees shows more at large, 1 Marcab. 1.25, 36. etc. Like unto this is Psal. 44.1. etc. We have heard with our ears, O God, our fathers have told us, what works thou didst in their days, in the times of old, etc. Thou hast saved us from our enemies, and put them to shame that hated us, verse 7. But thou hast cast off, and put us to shame: and goest not forth with our armies. verse 9 The first Reason. The reason is two fold. First, to show themselves thankful for blessings received: for, so God is honoured, Psal. 50.23. Who so offereth praise glorifyeth me, which is very profitable, as Luke 17.17, 18, 19 The second Reason. Secondly, to lay a ground of assurance of deliverance in present evils: For, hereby their hearts are settled in assurance of God's power, and further in the love of his mercy, as appears by that of David, 1 Sam. 17.34. etc. The Lord, that delivered me out of the paw of the Lion, and out of the paw of the bear, he will deliver me out of the hand of this Philistine. This serves for instruction, and for admonition. For instruction, The use for instruction. see a difference between the wicked and the godly under crosses and afflictions. The godly, we see here, doth guide his affairs with discretion: as he looks with one eye on God's present judgements, so with the other he beholds precedent mercies. See Job 1.21. The Lord gave, and the Lord hath taken away; blessed be the name of the Lord: and Job 2.10. What? shall we receive good at the hand of God, and shall we not receive evil? But, the wicked are like Haman, all his honour is nothing, while Mordecai sits in the King's gate, Est. 5.13. The godly are like David, 1 Sam. 30.5, 6. who, when the people spoke of stoning him, encouraged himself in the Lord his God: but the wicked like Nabal in distress, whose heart died within him, and he became as a stone; 1 Sam. 25.37. or, like Saul, that, when God would not answer him, consulted with a witch, 2 Sam. 28.7. Seek me a woman, that hath a familiar spirit, that I may go to her and inquire. For admonition: The Use for admonition. labour to become followers of God's Church and people in this godly behaviour. We have just cause so to do in this land, every true member of God's Church, God's favour hath been great unto us, in preventing the designs of our enemies, and in withdrawing the heavy judgement of plague and pestilence from our brothers, and that, not once alone, but often; the remembrance of which mercies not present judgements should be able to deprive us of. Now particularly in the Church's acknowledgement of God's great favour and mercy to them, we have sundry things to note. First, the Prophet calls Judea, wherein the people of Israel dwelled. The second Observation. God's land, Thou hast been favourable to thy land. So Psal. 10.16. The Lord is King for ever and ever: the heathen are perished out of his land: that is, the Canaanites, and the rest of the nations, that once possessed it, are now destroyed. Jer. 2.7. Ye defiled my land, and made mine heritage an abomination. Ezek. 36.5. God is angry with all those heathen, that appoint his land into their possession: and verse 20. these are the people of the Lord, and are gone forth out of his land. and Ezek. 36.5. I will bring thee against my land, Hos. 9.3. They shall not dwell in the Lord's land, Joel 1.6. A Nation is come upon my land. The first Reason. The reason, or ground hereof, is threefold. First, God chose this land for his own people, wherein he promised to dwell among them. See Leu. 26.11. Psal. 47.4. Psal. 48.1, 2, 3. Psal. 76.1.2. Ezek. 20.6. Ezek. 37.26. The second Reason. Secondly, he became King over this land, Zechar. 14.9. Judah was his sanctuary, and Israel his dominion. Psalm 114.2. The third Reason. Thirdly, he undertook to be protector and blesser of this land, and that in an extraordinary manner, as Deut. 11.11, 12. The land, whither thou goest to possess it, is a land of hills, and valleys, etc. A land, which the Lord thy God careth for: the eyes of the Lord thy God are always upon it. Experience whereof may be seen by example, 1 Sam. 7.10, 11, 12. 2 Kings 19.32, 33. In these respects the land of Jury was, as it were, God's peculiar enclosure, hedged in from his commons, which was the whole earth. This serves for instruction, admonition and comfort. The use for instruction For instruction: it shows plainly, that some lands and people have a privilege above others, for sure title and interest unto the true God: namely, those, that do receive, believe and obey the word of the covenant, as did the Jews under the law, and all Christian nations under the gospel, It is true, that, by creation and common providence, all lands, and all people are the Lords: as Psal. 50.12. The world is mine, and the fullness thereof: yet, they only are his by bond of covenant, and so entitled to his special mercies, that truly receive, believe and obey his holy word, See Exod. 19.5, 6. Deut. 10.14, 15. Psal. 65.1. The first Use for admonition. For admonition, it serves two ways. First, to those, that as yet, are without, not called, nor brought into the bond of the covenant with God, that, if ever they desire true happiness for their souls, they labour to become rightly entitled to the true God, by special covenant through Christ Jesus: for happy are the people, that have the Lord for their God, Psal. 144.15. Now, for this end, they themselves must seek unto God's ministers, and say, as a man of Macedonia did unto Paul in a vision, come and help us, Acts 16.9. they must inquire of them, as the eunuch did of Philip, I pray thee, of whom speaketh the Prophet this, Acts 8.34. Nay; they must study in the word themselves, and search the Scriptures daily, by the example of the noble Bereans, Acts 17.11. And, above all, they must desire of God, that he will teach them to do that which is pleasing unto him: as Psal 143.10. The second Use for admonition. Secondly, to us in this land, who by our holy profession, do entitle ourselves to the true God, and say, as Psal. 48.14. This God is our God for ever: we must look unto it, that we do truly and sincerely receive, believe and obey the word of the covenant, and take heed of those things, which tend to separate between God and his people Amongst which, we are most in danger of these two: first, the idolatry of Popery. Secondly, profaneness in Christianity. Popery is a false faith, and profaneness in the profession of the true religion argues a dead faith. For Popery, it is at this day, amongst God's people, in comparison of true religion, as the worship of the golden calves, erected by Jeroboam at Dan and Bethel, was to the true worship, appointed by God himself at Jerusalem, 1 Kings 12.26, 28, 29. etc. For, Papists worship God in images, as they did: now, the danger thereof see, 2 Chron, 15.13. Israel without a true God: and 2 Chron. 25.7. The Lord is not with Israel. Therefore, if we desire the continuance of this privilege, to have our land to be God's land, we must set ourselves against Popery, lament and repent, that it hath any corner and closet by allowance among us, yea, we must, by prayer to God, seek the removalll of it. Consider, Psal. 81.8, 9 Hear, O my people, and I will testify unto thee: O Israel, if thou wilt hearken unto me. There shall no strange God be in thee, neither shalt thou worship any strange God. Then, for profaneness, among the professors of true religion, this argues a dead faith: for such deny the power of true Religion, 2 Tim. 3.5. Now, God's Kingdom is not in word, but in power, 1 Cor. 4.20. And this is a spreading evil amongst us, as God's judgements show. See Jer. 23.10. The land is full of adultery, and because of oaths the land mourns. Also, Hos. 4.1, 2, 3. The Lord hath a controversy with the land, etc. The same sins are rife amongst us, whereof we must take special regard against the day of humiliation. The Use for comfort. For comfort, this makes greatly to any land or people, that keep covenant with God, when they are oppressed with idolatrous enemies, or wicked men, as usually the true Church is: they must remember their interest in the true God, and in the time of danger, with Hezekiah, Is. 37.6, 29. humble themselves in earnest prayer, and with Jehosaphat, fast and pray, 2 Kings 20.3, 4, 12. and then, they shall receive a gracious answer, as he did. verse 14. and good success, as Abijah did, 2 Chron. 13.8, 10, 12. The third Observation. Secondly, note here, as taken for granted, That Jacob, that is, the Jews, who were the posterity of Jacob, had been taken captive. For, the Church's thankfulness, for their bringing back, is an acknowledgement of their carrying out. The truth hereof is manifest by plain and manifold relation in the holy story. See 2 Kings 24.10, 11. Dan. 1.1, 2. for the beginning of it, in part, in the reign of Jehojakim: and for the accomplishment thereof, see 2 Kings 25.2, 8, 11. Jer. 39.2, 3; etc. and Jer. 52.4. etc. The reason hereof was their grievous sins againd God. Lam, 1.8. Jerusalem hath grievously finned, therefore she is removed: according to Gods threatening, Levit. 26.14, 15, 25, 33. Deut. 28.15, 20. Jer. Wherefore hath the Lord pronounced all this great evil against us? verse 11. thou shalt say, because your fathers have forsaken me, verse 12. and ye have done worse than your fathers. verse 13. therefore will I cast you out of this land. This serves for instruction, admonition and comfort. The use for instruction. For instruction: see plainly, that Gods own people, for the sins committed among them, may lie under most heavy and grievous judgements, as here we see, they are led into captivity, among whom were Daniel, Shadrach, Meshuch and Abednego. Dan. 1. also, Mordecai and Esther. Est. 2.5, 6. yea, zerobabel and Jehoshuah. Yea see, Psal 44.9, 10. etc. to the 18. The first Use for admonition. For admonition two ways. First, to beware of rash judgement, either against ourselves or others, for the grievous calamities, that lie upon us and them: for, God saith, many are the afflictions of the righteous, Psal. 34 19 Whosoever will live godly must suffer persecution, 2 Tim. 3.12. Through manifold afflictions we must enter into the Kingdom of heaven, Acts 14.22. The second use for admonition. Secondly, hereby learn to know, to repen● of for the time past, and to beware of for the time to come, those sins that brought the captivity; which are these. In general, the transgressing of God's Commandments: as, Leu. 26.14, 15, 25. In particular. idolatry, 2 Chron. 7.19.20. Sabbath breaking. Nehem. 13.15, 16, 17. covetousness, Jer. 6.12, 13. Soothing teaching, Jer. 6.14. etc. The Use for comfort. For comfort, to the godly, in the times of their great affliction. Consider, that nothing befalls thee, which hath not light on God's dear children, whatever thine affliction be, whether inward in mind, or outward in body. See 1 Cor. 10.13. Consider the state of Job, Jeb 1. and 2. chapters; and of David, Psal. 77.2.4. My soar ran in the night, and ●easednot: my foul refused to be comforted. Thou holdest mine eyes waking, I am so troubled, that I cannot speak, yet, I cried unto God with my voice, even unto God with my voice, and he gave ear unto me verse 1. Consider also the restauration of Israel, in this text, and Zeph. 3.14. etc. Is. 12.1. etc. Is. 54.1. etc. Micah 4.6, 7. The fourth observation. The third particular thing to be here observed, is expressed: namely, that God brought back his people that had brought back his people, that had been led into caprivitie. This is plain, for the captivity of Babylon, in the first and second chapters of Ezra, where both time, and means, and persons that did return, are set down particularly, and at large. The first Reason. The reason hereof is twofold. First, and chief in God, who of mere grace and favour undertook this great work. and bound himself thereto by promise: See Jer. 27.22. They shall be carried to Babylon, and there shall they be, until the day that I visit them: then will I bring them up, and restore them to this place, Jer 29.10. After seventy years be accomplished at Babylon, I will visit you, and perform my good word towards you, in causing you to return to this place, 2 Chron. 36.22 Now in the first year of Cyrus' King of Persia (that the word of the Lord by the mouth of Jeremiah might be accomplished) the Lord stirred up the spirit of Cyrus, that he made a Proclamation thorough out all his Kingdom, and put it also in writing, saying, etc. The second Reason. Secondly, God herein had respect to the godly behaviour of his children, in true repentance, and earnest prayer, whereunto he did enable them by his grace, that so he might perform his good word unto them. For that was Solomon's request, at the dedication of the temple, 2 Chron. 6.36, 37, 38. assented unto, chapped. 7.1. by sign of fire consuming the sacrifice, and by voice, verse 12. I have heard thy prayer. And so we find, that Daniel did, Dan. 9 according as God had said the godly should do, Jer. 29.12. etc. Then shall you call upon me, and go, and pray unto me, and I will hearken unto you: and ye shall seek me, and find me; I will be found of you, and turn away your captivity. This serves for instruction, and for admonition. The first Use for instruction. For instruction two ways. First see, that God doth actually for his Church exceeding abundantly, above all that men can ask, or think, Eph. 3.20. with Psal. 126.1. When the Lord turned again the captivity of Zion, we were like them that dream. Such was Peter's deliverance, both to himself, and others of the Church, Acts 12.9.15, 16. The second Use for instruction. Secondly, here see a plain difference, between Gods dealing with his own people, and with the wicked, when he enters into judgement with them. His people, we see here, do return, but the wicked are cut off, and cast off for ever, Is. 27.7, 8. Hath he smitten him, as he smote those that smote him? etc. The first Use for admonition. For admonition, two ways. First, to the wicked, that they insult not over God's children in their affliction and misery: for God will one day restore comfort to his children, and judge the wicked. See Mich. 7.8. Rejoice not against me, O mine enemy: when I fall, I shall arise, when I sit in darkness, the Lord shall be a light unto me. And for judging the wicked, see Psal. 137.7, 8, 9 and Zeph. 2.8, 9 The second Use for admonition. Secondly, to the godly in affliction, that they be not dismayed with any terror, for peace and deliverance shall come. See, Psal. 23.4. Jam. 5.7, 11. Acts 2.24. Christ now is made both Lord and King, though once crucified, Acts 2.36. declared to be the son of God, with power, according to the spirit of holiness, by the resurrection from the dead. Rom. 1.4. Verse 2. Thou hast forgiven the iniquity of thy people: thou hast covered all their sin. Selah. The meaning of the words. HEre the Prophet proceeds, in the further acknowledgement of God's favour to his people: and doth instance in this great blessing, the remission and forgiveness of their sins, which were the cause of his judgements, that formerly sight upon them. In expressing whereof he useth variety of phrase, for the greater comfort of his people: intimating thus much, that whether their sins were small or great, yet God had pardoned them, and hide them out of his sight. In this confession note two things. The first employed, That Gods own people have their iniquities and their sins. The second expressed, that God forgives the iniquity of his people, and covers all their sins. For the first, Gods own people, that are his by covenant have their iniquities and their sins. The first Observation. 2 Chron. 6.36. If they sinne against thee (for there is no man that sinneth not.) Prov. 20.9. Who can say, I have made mine heart clean: I am pure from my sin? Eccles. 7.20. There is not a just man upon earth, that doth good, and sinneth not, Jam. 3.2. In many things we sinne all, 1 John 1.8. If we say, we have no sin, weé deceive ourselves, and the truth is not in us. Consider the best that have lived, Noah, Abraham, Job, Moses, David, Peter, etc. who, though they were most worthy men, yet were not pure and free from sin. The reason hereof is their original corruption, furthered by the malice of Satan, and the deceitfulness of the world. And touching this corruption, The Reason. which is in every man the seed of his sin, thus much we must know, that it is in God's people in a different manner and measure, according to their estate before God. For, among God's people, some are his by a general calling only, and outward profession, and in them corruption reigneth: for, the grace they have as yet is restraining only, which keepeth them from the servitude of some gross sins only. Others are his also by effectual calling, and inward sanctification, in whom, though corruption do not reign, and hold them captive under the bondage of sin, yet doth it remain in them, and allure and draw them, many a time to commit iniquity and sin. Thus much Paul confesseth, speaking of himself regenerate, Rom. 7. Now there he saith (to express the strength of his corruption remaining) what I hate, that do I: verse 15. Now then, it is no more I that do it, but sin that dwelleth in me: For, I know that in me, that is, in my flesh dwelleth no good thing. The good that I would I do not: but, the evil which I would not that do I: I see a law in my members warring against the law of my mind, etc. verse 17, 18, 19, 23. This serves for instruction, admonition and comfort. The first Use for instruction For instruction two ways. First, that original sin is not quite taken away by Baptism. True it is, they that rightly believe in the Lord Jesus, and are regenerate by the holy ghost, are both freed from the guilt of original sin, and have corruption though not quite removed, yet so weakened and lessened, that sin shall not reign in them: yet some part thereof remains, and thence proceed actual transgressions, as St. Paul confesseth, Rom. 7.21. The second Use for instruction Secondly, here see the error of the more ancient Heretics, as the Catharists, the Novatians and Donatists, who held a man might live in a state of purity and perfection in life. From whom the Papists do not much differ, who do not only hold the total removal of original corruption by Baptism, but also, that the child of God may keep God's Commandments. For proof whereof they arge, 1 John 2.4. and do inst ance in Zachary and Elizabeth, Luke 1.6. But they err, mistaking evangelical obedience there spoken of, as though it were legal. The first Use for admonition. For admonition two ways. First, to the wicked, that they beware of the common stumbling block, whereat many natural men do fall, that is, to mislike true religion, because of the faults and sins of those that be the professors of it. For, God's people have their iniquities, they have their sins. There is a woe to them that give that offence, yet thou shalt not be excused that takest it. For, we be to the world because of offences. Mat. 18.7. Secondly, The second Use for admonition. the godly have hence to consider their estate of subjection to commit iniquity and sin; that thereby they may be moved to daily repentance for their sins past, and to watchfulness against sins to come: For which end they must remember Christ's charge of pulling out the right eye. etc. Mat. 5.29, 30. and beware of the sins, which their constitution of body, and their calling, or state of life doth tempt them unto: for there especially is this right eye, that must be plucked out, and right hand that must be cut off. And against all sin we must labour daily to put on the whole armour of God, prescribed, Eph. 6.12, 14, 16. And also, ever labour to weaken corruption, and to renew and strengthen grace in our souls: for which end we must be much exercised and conversant in the word and prayer. For comfort, The use for comfort. it makes greatly to those, that be in Christ Jesus, and yet be troubled for their iniquities and for their sins. Quest. wherein then do they differ from natural men? Answ. In the servitude of sin, whereto natural men give themselves willingly, and with delight, if they may so do with safety from men's laws: but the child of God is grieved for them, and doth watch against them, and strive to leave them, and so walks not after the flesh, but after the spirit, whereby he is freed from condemnation, in Christ, though he be not quite cleared from his own corruption, Rom. 8.1. with Rom. 7.24, 25. The thing here expressed is, The second Observation. that God forgives the iniquity of his people, and covers all their sins. When God describes himself to Moses, he makes this a part of his name, one of his special properties, to forgive iniquity, transgression and sin. Ex. 34.7. The Lord is long suffering, and of great mercy, forgiving iniquity and transgression, Numb. 14.18. Who forgiveth all thine iniquity. Psal. 103.3. The Reason. The reason hereof is principally in God, even his mercy and truth, which go before his face. Psal. 89.14. Mercy moves him to pity those that be in misery as all are that stand guilty of sin: and therefore he is said to pardon iniquity and to pass by transgression, and not to retain his anger for ever, because he delighteth in mercy, Mich. 7.18. Also, his truth causeth him to perform covenant with those that be his people in Christ: which is to pardon their sins, for the merit of his death and passion, when they do repent and beg mercy and pardon, whereunto he doth enable them, and extite and stir them up, by his word and works: as Levit. 26.40, 41, 42. If they shall confess their iniquity, and the iniquity of their fathers, etc. If then their uncircumcised hearts be humbled, and they then accept of the punishment of their iniquity: Then will I remember my covenant, etc. Likewise, Jer. 32.39. etc. I will give them one heart, and one way, that they may fear me for ever, for the good of them and of their children after them, etc. So will I bring upon them all the good, that I have promised them. Quest. Why doth Moses say, he will not pardon your transgression, Exod. 23.21. and Joshua, He is a jealous God, and will not forgive your transgressions, nor your sins, Jos. 24.19: Answ. The circumstances of those places show the true meaning: namely, if men provoke him, and forsake him by idolatry, serving other Gods: and if they sinne presumptuously, despising the word: so Numb. 15.30, 31. The soul that doth aught presumptuously, the same reproacheth the Lord: and that soul shall be cut off from among his people. Because he hath despised the Word of the Lord, and hath broken his commandment, that soul shall utterly be cut off: his iniquity shall be upon him. This serves for instruction, admonition and comfort. The first Use for instruction. For instruction two ways. First, it shows the excellency of the true God, above all false Gods: as Mic. 7.18. who is a God like unto thee, that pardoneth iniquity and passeth by the transgression of the remnant of his heritage? Yea, and above all creatures: for, who can forgive sin, but God only? Mark 2.7. which will better appear, if we consider the way, which God makes for the satisfying of his justice, in this work of mercy: namely, he gives his son to become man, that so he may be righteousness and redemption to his people, 1 Cor. 1.30. and gives his gospel to reveal that mercy, 2 Tim. 1.10. And his holy spirit, to teach and sanctify the souls of his elect, and to furnish them with those graces, that may entitle them to God's mercy in Christ, Zech. 12.10. 2 Cor. 4.13. That the Ephesians might have the knowledge hereof, Paul bowed his knees to God, Eph. 3.14.18. The second Use for instruction. Secondly, see here a prerogative of God's people, above all others: For they, that stand rightly in covenant with God, are the proper subject of this great blessing, to have from God the pardon of their sins, wherein we know stands true happiness, Psal. 32.1, 2. and in that regard especially, though not only, are those people said to be blessed above others, that have the Lord for their God, Psal. 144.15. Psal. 33.12. The first use for admonition. For admonition two ways. First, to all natural men, that are yet strangers from the covenant of grace, as wanting true faith and true repentance, that they give all diligence to the blessing of forgiveness of sins from God. See Esther 8.17. Many of the people of the land became Jews upon the view of a temporal blessing. Rahab embraced the Jews religion, upon the notice of God's power and mercy in the delivery of Israel out of Egypt, &c Jos. 2.9. etc. And shall not we, upon evidence of greater power and mercy be induced to enter into covenant with God? Obj. But what is this to us? we are all in covenant with God already? Answ. As, He is not a Jew, that is one outwardly, etc. Rom 8.28, 29. so Rev. 2.1. thou hast a name, that thou livest, and art dead. Consider Simon Magus, Acts 8.13. 21, 22. though said to believe, and be baptised; yet in the gall of bitterness, and in the bond of iniquity. See Psal. 94.20. and 1 John 1.6. The second Use for instruction. Secondly, Gods own people must hereby learn to fear and love the true God. For fear, see Psal. 130.4. There is forgiveness with thee, that thou mayst be feared. And for love, Luke 7.47. Many sins are forgiven her, for she loved much. Now, true fear makes a man eschew evil, Job 1.1. Prov. 8.13. Prov. 14, 27. And true love moves to obedience in keeping God's word, as John 14.21, 23. 1 John 5.3. Yea, they must, with David, pray against presumptuous sins, Psal. 19.13. and give themselves daily to the exercises of faith and repentance, which entitle them truly to this blessing of forgiveness. The Use for comfort. For comfort, it makes greatly to God's children, that do repent and believe in God through Christ: for then this prerogative belongs unto them, wherein stands true happiness. Even, as David also imputeth righteousness, without works, saying, Blessed are they, whose iniquities are forgiven, and whose sins are covered, Rom. 4.6, 7. Son, be of good comfort, thy sins are forgiven thee. Verse 3. Thou hast taken away all thy wrath: thou hast turned thyself from the fierceness of thine anger, The Use for comfort. THe last effect of God's favour to his people, here acknowledged. For the understanding whereof, we must search out two things: First, whether wrath and fierce anger be in God properly, for they are often ascribed unto God in Scripture: Secondly, in what sense they are ascribed unto God. For the first, wrath and fierce anger are strong sudden passions and perturbations of the mind, caused by things offensive and displeasing. Now, to speak properly, they are not in God: as Isay 27.4. Fury is not in me. For the second: the Scripture speaking of God, by way of resemblance unto men, ascribeth these passions to God, for two causes. First, to acquaint us with the inward constant disposition of his nature against sin: namely, that he distasteth and disliketh the impurity and impiety thereof, as man doth the most hateful things. Secondly, to let us know the course of his actions in punishing sin: namely, that it shall be with that severity, which men use, when they are angry, Exod. 32.10. Let me alone, that my wrath may wax hot against them, and that I may consume them. The first Observation. Here then there are two things to be observed. The first is employed: That, in the sense before showed, God hath been wrath and fiercely angry with his own people. When God heard this, he was wrath, and greatly abhorred Israel: He was wrath with his inheritance, Psal. 78.59, 62. The wrath of the Lord was kindled against his people: insomuch, that he abhorred his own inheritance. Psal. 106.40. The Reason. The reason hereof is the sins of his people, which many times are many and grievous, such as the holy nature of God cannot but detest, and in divine justice severely punish. For sin is the provocation. 2 Kings 22.13. For great is the wrath of the Lord, which is kindled against us, because our fathers have not harkened unto the words of this book. Jerusalem hath grievously sinned: therefore she is removed, Lam. 1.8. And, we have transgressed, and rebelled, thou hast not pardoned. Thou hast covered with anger, and persecuted us, Lam. 3.42. etc. This serves for instruction, and for admonition. The first Use for instruction. For instruction two ways. First, here we may plainly see the contrariety of sin to the holy nature of God. It is such a thing as God cannot endure, no, not in those that be most near and dear unto him, even his own people. Nay, when his own son takes upon himself our sins, divine justice will not spare him: Gods heavy wrath makes him to sweat water and blood, and to cry out, my God, my God, why hast thou forsaken me, Mat. 27.46. The second Use for instruction. Secondly see, that God is a God of justice against sin, he will not wink at it, nor endure it, no, not in his own people: though that be a great privilege to be in covenant with God, yet, that procures not a dispensation to sin freely: much less will other outward things, as worldly wealth, and strength, and honour, and the like. The Use for admonition. For admonition, to all God's people, that they beware of all sin, and especially of those, that are said in Scripture to provoke the Lord to wrath, whereof I will name some of the chief. Special sins provoking God to 〈◊〉 As first, Atheism, Zeph. 1.12. I will search Jerusalem with candles, and punish the men that are settled on their lees, that say in their heart, the Lord will not do good, neither will he do evil. 2. Idolatry, Psal. 78.58, 59 They provoked him to anger with their high places: and moved him to jealousy with their graven images. When God heard this, he was wroth, and greatly abhorred Israel. 3. Witchcraft. See it in Manasseh, 2. Kings 21.2, 3, 6. He did that which was evil in the sight of the Lord, etc. He made his son pass thorough the fire, and observed times, and used enchantments, and dealt with familiar spirits, and wizards: he wrought much wickedness in the sight of the Lord, to provoke him to anger. With 2 Kings 23.26. His anger was kindled against Judah, because of all the provocations, that Manasseh had provoked him withal. 4. Opposing Christ in the gospel, not receiving it, Psal. 2.1, 2, 3, 4, 5. Why do the heathen rage, and the people imagine a vain thing? The Kings of the earth set themselves, and the rulers take counsel together, against the Lord, and against his anointed, saying, Let us break their bonds asunder, and cast away their cords from us. He that sitteth in the heavens shall laugh, the Lord shall have them in derision. Then shall he speak unto them in his wrath, and vex them in his sore displeasure, 1. Thessaly. 2.16. Forbidding us to speak to the Gentiles, that they might be saved, to fill up their sins always; for the wrath is comeupon them to the uttermost. Typified in the spies and people disliking the land of Canaan. Numb. 14.11.23. 5. False and flattering teaching. Jer. 5.30, 31. A wonderful and horrible thing is committed in the land. The Prophet's prophecy falsely, and the Priests bear rule by their means, and my people love to have it so: and what will ye do in the end thereof? So Ezek. 13. throughout. 6. lukewarmness, opposed to zeal, Rev. 3.16, 19 Because lukewarm, and neither cold, nor hot, I will spew thee out of my mouth. As many as I love I rebuke and chasten: be zealous therefore and repent. 7. Blessing a man's self in his sinful course, Deut. 29.19, 20. If it come to pass, when he heareth the words of this curse, that he bless himself in his heart, saying, I shall have peace, though I walk in the imagination of mine heart, to add drunkenness to thirst: The Lord will not spare him, but then the anger of the Lord, and his jealousy shall smoak against that man, etc. 8. Rebellion against God's Magistrates, and Ministers, Numb. 16.30. Then shall ye understand, that men have provoked the Lord. 9 Helping the wicked. 2 Chron. 19.2. Shouldest thou help the ungodly, and love them, that hate the Lord? Therefore is wrath upon thee from before the Lord. 10. Oppression of the poor. Zeph. 3.1, 3.8. Woe to her that is filthy and polluted, to the oppressing City. Her Princes within her are roaring Lions: her Judges are evening wolves. Therefore wait ye upon me, saith the Lord, until the day, that I rise up to the prey— to pour out upon them mine indignation, even all my fierce anger: for all the earth shall be devoured with the fire of my jealousy. 11. Adultery. Jer. 5.7, 8, 9 When I fed them to the full they committed adultery, etc. Shall I not visit for these things, saith the Lord? shall not my soul be avenged on such a nation as this? 12. Drunkenness, Isaiah 5.21, 24. Woe unto them that are mighty to drink wine, and men of strength, to mingle strong drink. Therefore is the anger of the Lord kindled against his people, etc. 13. Blasphemy against God, either in common swearing, or in more fearful perjury. See Jer. 23.10. Because of swearing the land mourneth, the pleasant places of the wilderness are dried up. And for perjury, it puts upon God the person of the devil, by calling him to be a witness of a lie, whereof the devil is the father, John 8.44. All these we must lay to heart, lament and repent for that which is past, and for the time to come beware of them, if we look to remove and prevent the wrath and fierce anger of the Lord. The second Observation. The second thing to be here observed is expressed: That, though God had been fiercely angry with his people, yet afterward he took away his wrath, and turned from the fierceness of his anger. So, Jer. 29.10, 11. After seventy years be accomplished at Babylon, I will visit you, and perform my good word toward you, etc. jer. 30.17, 18. I will restore health unto thee, and I will heal thee of thy wounds— I will bring again the captivity of jacob's tents, etc. The Reason. The reason hereof was not any merit or worthiness in them, but indeed Gods own mercy, and work of grace, bringing them by his judgements to be humbled, and by his grace to repent, to pray, and to rely upon him for deliverance. See Ezek. 36.32, 33. compared with verse 25. etc. to 31. according to the promise, Deut. 30.1, 2, 3, 4. This serves for instruction, admonition and comfort. The use for instruction. For instruction: it doth acquaint us with the gracious disposition and sweet mercy of God towards his children. His anger endureth but a moment. Psal. 30.5. He will not always chide, neither will he keep his anger for ever, Psalm 103.9. The Use for admonition. For admonition: consider what it is in us, that turns away God's anger, that so we may conscionably exercise ourselves therein. As first, true and unfeigned repentance, whereby we consider our own ways in our hearts, Special means to turn away God's anger. confess our sins with godly sorrow, and turn from the evil of them. Jer. 18.7, 8. At what instant I shall speak concerning a nation, and concerning a Kingdom, to pluck up and to pull down, and to destroy it. If that nation, against whom I have pronounced, turn from their evil, I will repent of the evil, that I thought to do unto them, Ezek. 18.30. Repent and turn yourselves from all you transgressions: so iniquity shall not be your ruin. Even Ahabs legal repentance turned away a temporal judgement for a time, 1 Kings 21.29. Secondly, earnest and effectual prayer for mercy and deliverance. Joel 1.14. and 2.16, 17. Gather the people, etc. Then will the Lord be jealous for his land, and pity his people. There it is commanded, and was notably practised by Moses. Deut. 9.25, 26. etc. Psal. 106.23. Thirdly, justice must be exercised in the punishment of sinners, that provoke God's wrath: as did Phinezas on Zimri and Cazbi, Psal. 106.29, 30. and Jonah, that troubled the ship, was cast into the sea, and so it was calm, Jonah 1.12, 15. The Use for comfort. For comfort to the godly in trouble and affliction: for peace shall come, Psal. 34.19. Many are the afflictions of the righteous, but the Lord delivereth them out of them all, Psal. 112.4. Unto the upright there ariseth light in darkness, Psal. 37.37. Mark the perfect man, and behold the upright: for the end of that man is peace. Verse 4. Turn us, O God of our salvation: and cause thine anger towards us to cease. The meaning of the words. IN this verse, and the three next, we have the second part of this Psalm, containing the Church's petitions and complaints about the great miseries, that yet lay heavy on them. The petitions are propounded in this fourth verse and the seventh; the complaints are inserted between them verse 5, 6. This fourth verse contains two requests: First, that God would turn them: Secondly, that he would cause his anger toward them to cease: Both which blessings they beg of the true God, whom they call the God of their salvation, that is, the God who saves and delivers them from the evils and miseries that lie upon them. Here then in this verse we have to note both, to whom they pray, and for what. They pray to God, whom they call the God of their salvation: and therein we have two things to be observed: First, what God is to his Church, namely, the God of their salvation. Secondly, what they do to God in that regard, namely, pray unto him for that blessing. The first observation. For the first, note. God is the God of salvation to his Church, Psal. 3.8. Salvation belongeth unto the Lord, Psal. 68.19, 20. Blessed be the Lord— the God of our salvation. He that is our God is the God of salvations. The word in the original is of the plural number, showing that all manner of salvation belongs to God, both of body and soul, 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 temporal and eternal, in this world and in the world to come. So Psal. 74.12. God is my King of old, working salvations in the midst of the earth. See admirable instance of temporal saving. Exod. 14.13. etc. of Israel at the red sea: and Dan. 3.17, 27, 28. of the three servants of God out of the fiery furnace: and undoubted assurance of eternal. Tit. 3.4, 5. Rev. 19.1. Mat. 1.21. Jesus shall save his people from their sins: and this is the great salvation, Heb. 2.3. The Reason. The reason hereof is God's power and mercy, which in him are infinite: as we may see, for power, Psal. 115.3. and 136 6. whatsoever the Lord pleased, that did he in heaven, and in earth: in the Seas, and in all deep places. And for his mercy, it is as large. Psal. 119.64. The earth, O Lord, is full of thy mercy, Psal. 145.9. His tender mercies are over all his works. Now, both these God doth put forth for those that be truly in covenant with him: as Exod. 33.19. I will make my goodness pass before thee, Psal. 89.17. Thou art the glory of their strength: and in thy favour our hom shall be exalted. Ob. 1. But sometimes God's people are not saved from temporal evils: as Psal. 79.1, 2. etc. O God, the heathen are come into thine inheritance— The dead bodies of thy servants have they given to be meat unto the fowls of the heaven, etc. Answ. Outward and bodily safety is but a temporal blessing, and thereof must be understood with exception of the cross: so as, when God will either correct them for their sins, or make trial of his graces in them, than they may want outward safety. But, though the outward man perish, yet the inward man is preserved and renewed day by day, 2 Cor. 4.16. nay their eternal glory is hereby increased. verse 17, As Revel. 7.9.14. an infinite number clothed with white robes and palms in their hands came out of great tribulation. Obj. 2. But, the Scripture acknowledgeth other saviours beside the true God, both for temporal and eternal salvation: as Judges 2.16. for temporal, and Obadiah, Psal. 21.1 Tim. 4.16. for eternal Answ. Understand them to be insirumentall saviours under God, not sole, or principal: as 1 Cor. 3.5, 9 And know that it pleaseth God sometime to ascribe the effect to the instrument, as Jam. 5.20. to teach us not to contemn the means, which is a fearful tempting of God, as Acts 13.46. and otherwhile to deny it to the means, as 1 Cor. 3.6. that we should not trust in it, Psal. 44.3, 6, 7. They got the land in possession with their own sword, neither did their own arm save them: but thy right hand, and thine arm, and the light of thy countenance— For I will not trust in my bow, neither shall my sword save me. But thou hast saved us from our enemies, and hast put them to shame●●●●●●hated us. The Use for instruction. This serves for instruction, admonition and comfort. For instruction: see the prerogative of God's Chu●●● and people, above all other states and conditions in the world: they, being by covenant the people of God, have him to be unto them the God of salvation. See Deut. 32.31. Their rock is not as our rock, even our enemies themselves being judges, Jer. 3.23. Truly, in vain is salvation hoped for from the hills, and from the multitude of mountains: truly, in the Lord our God is the salvation of Israel. The second Use for instruction. Secondly, see here the impiety of Popery, that sets up other Saviour's among them then the true God, both for temporal and spiritual safety. The first Use for admonition. For admonition two ways. First, to take heed of those sins, that deprive a people of this prerogative, to have the true God to be the God of their salvation. And those are especially two: First, Idolatry, when men either worship a false God, as the heathen did and do; or else worship the true God in a false manner, as did Jeroboam and his successors, 1 Kings 12.28. and as the Papists do at this day: for which sin see God forsaking, Judg. 3.8. compared with 10.13. ye have forsaken me, and served other Gods: wherefore I will deliver you no more. Secondly, Impiety, when men hold the truth in unright eousnesse. Rom. 1.18. have a form of godliness, but deny the power thereof, 2 Tim. 3.5. for the Kingdom of God is not in word, but in power, 1 Cor. 4.20. The second Use for admonition. Secondly, we must all labour to become such, as are truly entitled to God's power and mercy for salvation: that he, which is the God of salvation, may become our God: for assurance whereof we must look to these things. First, that we become the children of Abraham: for to such salvation comes. Luke 19.9. Now, such may be known by doing the works of Abraham, John 8.39. He is the father of the faithful, Rom. 4.11. who by faith, first, forsook his own people, and his father's house, Heb. 11.8, 9 compared with Gen. 12.1, 4. secondly, commanded his household to serve God. Gen. 18.19. thirdly, made intercession to God for the sparing of Sodom, no doubt for the elects sake, that he hoped had been therein, Gen. 18.23. etc. fourthly, by faith offered his own son, yea his only son Isaac, for an offering upon God's command, Gen. 21.1. etc. Heb. 11, 17. In all these we must labour to show ourselves to be the sons of Abraham. Consider all, and look especially at the mortification of corruption, the sins of our hearts and souls. See Rom. 8.12. Gal. 5.24. Col. 3.5. we should be ashamed to hear, that we love our sins better, than Abraham did his only son. Secondly, the true God is a saviour unto every one, that is a true member of Christ's body, Eph. 5.23. Now, true members are joined to their head, by the spirit, 1 Cor. 12.13. and by virtue thereof receive life and sense from Christ spiritually, as Rom. 8.11. Now such with Christ 1. leave the grace of sin, Rom. 6.17, 18, 2. they converse with the godly, Acts 10.40, 41. 3. they walk in the spirit, Gal. 5.25. 4. they talk and speak religiously, Col. 4.6. Prov. 31.26.5. they taste spiritual food with delight the Word and Sacraments. Thirdly, God will save those that trust in him. Psal. 17.7. Psal. 91.1. etc. they shall be as mount Zion, Psal. 125.1. Now they, that trust in the Lord, will not use unlawful means to help themselves out of misery, but will wait his leisure, as Isaiah 28.16. He that believeth shall not make haste. Fourthly, he, that would be delivered by God, must be upright hearted. Psal. 7.10. Now such lean not to sin, but, as Isaiah 38.3. can say to God with Hezekiah. Remember now, O Lord, I beseech thee, how I have walked before thee in truth and with a perfect heart, and have done that which is good in thy sight. The use for comfort. For comfort to God's children in trouble and misery: they have a saviour and deliverer: see Psal. 23.1, 4. and Dan. 3.17. The second Observation. The second point to be here observed is the practice of the Church towards God in their trouble, namely, they go to God in prayer for salvation and deliverance: See Psal. 79.9. Help us, O God of our salvation, for the glory of thy name, and deliver us, and purge away our sins for thy name's sake: and Psal. 80.1, 3. Give ear, O shepherd of Israel, thou that leadest Joseph as a flock, thou that dwellest between the Cherubins shine forth. Turn us again, O God: and cause thy face to shine, and we shall be saved. Psal. 118.5. I called upon the Lord in distress, etc. The reasons which induce them to do so are these. The first Reason. First, God's command, Psal. 50.15. Call upon me in the day of trouble. The second Reason. Secondly, God's property to hear and help, Psal 65.2. O thou that hearest prayer, unto thee shall all flesh come. Psal. 46.1. God is our aefuge and strength, a very present help in trouble: See this in the heathen Mariners, Jonah 1.14, 15. The third Reason. Thirdly, God stands bound by promise and covenant to hear and help his Church in distress: see 2 Chron. 7.14. If my people, which are called by my name, shall humble themselves, and pray, and seek my face, and turn from their wicked ways: then will I hear from heaven, and will forgive their sin, and will heal their land. Psal. 91.15. He shall call upon me, and I will answer him: I will be with him in trouble, I will deliver him, and honour him. The fourth Reason. Fourthly, observation of the success of this duty in others before them: as Psal. 32.3, 4, 5, 6. Psal. 1.3, 3, 4, 5. Psal. 99.6, 8, 9 and in their own persons, as Psal. 56.14. Thou hast delivered my soul from death, wilt not thou deliver my feet from falling? The use for instruction. First, this serves to discover a threefold impiety, as contrary to the practice of the Church, of Atheists, Witches, and Idolaters. 1. Atheists, in their hearts, say there is no God, and therefore make no conscience of this practice of the Church to call upon God: See Psal. 14.1, 4. The fool hath said in heart there is no God. They call not upon God, Psal. 10.4. God is not in all his thoughts, Job 21.15. What is the Almighty, that we should serve him? and what profit should we have, if we pray unto him? Job 22.17. which say unto God, depart from us, and what can the Almighty do for them? 2 Witches, wizards and conjurers, for a show and colour, may have the name of God in their mouths, but sure the affiance of their hearts is in the devil, with him they are in league and socieay: all their spells, charms, circles, and incantations are prayers, homage and service done to him. And like unto these, though not in so high degree, are all they, that seek unto them, and use their help, Isaiah 8.19. when they shall say unto you, seek unto those that have familiar spirits, and unto wizards, that peep and that mutter: should not a people seek unto their God? When Ahaziah King of Israel sent unto Baalzebub the god of Ekron, to inquire whether he should recover of his disease, the Lord by Elijah tells his messengers, Is it not because there is not a God in Israel, that ye go to inquire of Baalzebub the God of Ekron? 2 Kings 1.2, 3. Lastly, Idolaters say to Saints and Idols, here us, help us, pray for us: as 1 Kings 18.26. This we know is the common practice of Papists, to the Virgin Mary, and to all the Saints. But, herein they show themselves not to be God's people, but such, as have forsaken the fountain of living waters, and hewed them out broken cisterns, that can hold no water, Jer. 2.11, 12, 13. The Use for admonition. For admonition, that we observe and remember this practice of the Church of God, and conscionably endeavour to conform ourselves thereto, in the day of our trouble, to seek the Lord, remember God and complain: as Psal. 77.2, 3. to say with the godly man, whom have I in heaven but thee? Psal. 73.25. and with the Church Isaiah 63.16. Though Abraham be ignorant of us, and Israel acknowledge us not: thou O Lord, art our father, our redeemer, thy name is from everlasting, Psal. 20.7. Some trust in charets, and some in horses, but we will remember the name of the Lord, our God. Hos. 14.3. Ashur shall not save us, we will not ride upon horses, neither will we say any more to the work of our hands, ye are our gods: for in thee the fatherless find mercy. Consider the reasons of this duty, as before, and the success, as Psal. 20.8. They are brought down, and fallen: but we are risen, and stand upright. Psal. 118.5. etc. I called upon the Lord in distress, the Lord answered me, and set me in a large place, etc. Thus much of him to whom they pray, the things for which they pray are two. 1. That God would turn them. 2. That God would cause his anger toward them to cease. For the first, when they beseech God to turn them, they mean from the evils under which they lay, whether of sin or punishment, unto a comfortatble state: for so largely doth the use of the word extend: sometime therewith is begged conversion from sin, Jer. 31.18 19 Turn thou me, and I shall be turned— after that I was turned, I repent, etc. sometime restitution to comfortable outward state, which is turning from punishment: as Psal. 126.4. Turn again our captivity, O Lord. And though here the latter is specially aimed at, yet we may not exclude the former, because, without turning from sin, the ceasing of God's wrath would not be expected, Psal, 7.12 etc. If he turn not, he will whet his sword, etc. The third Observation. Mark then, God's people do beg of God the blessing of conversion from evils, under which they lay, whether of sin or punishment: see Lam. 5.21. Turn thou us unto thee, O Lord, and we shall be turned: renew our days as of old, Psal. 80.3, 7, 20. Turn thou us again, O Lord God of hosts: cause thy face to shine, and we shall be saved. The Reason. The reason is enfolded in the title, which here they give to God; namely, that he is the God of their salvation, both for soul and body. He restoreth the soul, Psal. 23.3. the same word is there used. 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 And he preserveth and delivereth the body and outward estate, Psal. 91.15 I will be with him in trouble, I will deliver him, Job 5.19. He shall deliver thee in six troubles, yea, in seven there shall no evil touch thee. He is almighty, and so all-sufficient, nothing is too hard for him, Jer. 32.27. and this power he puts forth for the good of his people. This serves for instruction, admonition and comfort. The use for instruction. For instruction, touching the author of true conversion to the soul. The practice of the Church shows her judgement herein: she prays to God to be turned from evils, whether spiritual, or corporal, and therefore no doubt acknowledged him to be the sole author thereof. It is true, in temporal evils, man by nature hath some ability, to discern and endeavour the way and means of his deliverance: but in spiritual evils, of corruption and sin, it is not so: for therein man naturally is dead, and so wants ability of himself to conceive and act the things that belong to the life of grace, see Acts 26.9. The wisdom and will of nature is to oppose the means of conversion: I verily thought with myself saith the Apostle, that I ought to do many things contrary to the name of Jesus of Nazareth. For to be carnally minded is death: because the carnal mind is enmity against God, Rom. 8.6, 7. Therefore hereof men do not become God's children, John 1.13. which will be plain, if we consider that the Scripture calls regeneration a new creation, 2 Cor. 5.17. and the first resurrection, Revel. 20.6. 1. Quest. Why then doth God bid men turn? as Ezek. 18.30. Repent and turn yourselves from all your transgressions. Ans. First, to show us our duty, not our ability, what we ought, not what we are able of ourselves to do. For John 15.5. Without me ye can do nothing. We are not sufficient of ourselves to think any thing, as of ourselves, 2 Cor 3, 5. No man can come to me, except the father, which hath sent me draw him, John 6.44. Believers are borne, not of blood, nor of the will of the flesh, nor of the will of man, but of God, John 1.13. Secondly, God in these commandments hath an aim at the outward actions, wherein he desires reformation, whereto naturally man hath some power, as we may see by Ahabs' humiliation, 1 Kings 21.27. Thirdly, God requiring of us the grace of conversion, means; we should endeavour ourselves in the outward means thereof; to get ability thereto of God. Though grace be God's gift, yet is the use of means in our power. 2. Quest. Are not such commands unjust, or vain? Ans. No: not unjust, because in Adam we were able to any thing; God should require of us. And vain they are not, because they are means of conversion in Gods elect, as to Lydia, Acts 16.14. whose heart the Lord opened, that she attended unto the things which were spoken of Paul. Deut. 32.46, 47. Set your hearts unto all the words which I testify amongst you— for it is not a vain thing for you, 2 Cor. 2.15, 16. For we are unto God a sweet savour of Christ, in them that are saved, and in them that perish. To the one we are the savour of death unto death, and to the other the savour of life unto life. And they leave the wicked without excuse, because they yield not such obedience, as nature enables them unto. Luke 10.10, 11. The Use for admonition. For admonition, this serves to move every one, under any evil or misery, corporal or spiritual, to become a follower of God's Church, in beseeching God to give deliverance from it. This Christ teacheth in the Lord's prayer, deliver us from evil, Mat. 6.13. Is any man afflicted? let him pray. Jam. 5.15. Herein we must continue and watch, Col. 4.2. yea, pray and not faint. Luke 18.1. Remember the many sharp repulses which Christ gave to the woman of Canaan. Mat. 15. in the 23. verse, he is silent: in the 24, he denies he was sent to such: in the 26, he likens her to a dog: but in the 28. there is this happy conclusion, O woman, great is thy faith: be it unto thee, even as thou wilt. Obj. But natural men cannot pray. Answ. Not so well as they ought, but let them do so well as they can: as did the Ninevites, Jonah 3.8. and get others to pray for them, as Simon Magus did, Acts 8.24. do, as the sick of the palsy did, Mar. 2.3. who got four men to bear him, being not able of himself to come to Christ. The Use for comfort. For comfort, this shows that God's Church hath no evil to befall them, from which they have not an all-sufficient deliverer, to whom they may go: as Dan. 3.17. And this door cannot be shut up against them: as 2 Cor. 4.8. We are troubled on every side, yet not distressed 〈◊〉 therefore remember and apply the precept, Phil. 4.6. Be careful for nothing: but in every thing, by prayer and supplication with thanksgiving, let your request be made known unto God. And cause thine anger towards us to cease. The second request of the Church, here made unto God, for the ceasing of his anger, that is, for the removal of his judgemets, which they conceive to come from his anger, provoked by their sins. This petition may be considered two ways. First, with reference to the confession, made in the former verse: secondly, by itself. In the former verse we have this confession, Thou hast taken away all thy wrath, and turned thyself from the fierceness of thine anger: yet here the Church entreats, that God would cause his anger toward them to cease. How do these things agree? well enough, if we refer the confession to the time of their return out of Babylon, caused by Cyrus, Ezra 1. Psal. 126.1, 3. and this supplication to some time of troubles, that befell them after their return, as under Cambyses, Artaxerxes, or Antiochus Epiphanes, in which times the adversaries did sore vex God's people. Now then in this reference see plainly. The fourth Observation. That God's Church and people, who have formerly felt his great favour and love, may afterward come to the sense and feeling of his bitter anger and displeasure. This thing is plain in this Psalm, by comparing the first verse with the fift and sixth; also, in the 29. and 30. chapters of the book of Job: and in David, Solomon, Asa, Jehosaphat, Hezekiah and many others, both for their own persons, and the people of God under their government. For David's person, see Psal 30.6, 7. I said in my prosperity, I shall never be moved— thou didst hid thy face, and I was troubled. And for the estate of God's people under him, Psal. 89.20, 28. compared with the 38. and 39 verses: in his time were war, famine and pestilence. For Solomon, his peace, power and plenty are at large set down, 1 Kings 10.27. etc. his troubles, chapped. 11.11. etc. For Asa, his power and peace, see 2 Chron. 14.6. his great conquest over the Ethiopians, verse 9 the joy of his people renewing covenant with God, chap. 15.15. but, chap. 16.8, 9 a great change. So for Jehosaphat, 2. Chron. 17.3. the Lord was with him: and ver. 5. he had riches and honour in great abundance: yet, chapter 19.2. wrath from the Lord was toward him: and chap 20. fearful war was made against him. So for Hezekiah; the Lord was with him, and he prospered whithersoever he went forth, 2 Kings 18.7. and, by restoring of religion, he brought great joy to God's people at Jerusalem, 2 Chron. 30.26. and dealing uprightly, he prospered, 2 Chron. 31.21. but, chap. 32. troubles come upon him by Senacherib: and yet, upon God's deliverance, he was magnified in the sight of all nations, verse 22, 23. but, verse 24. he is sick unto death: from which being extraordinarily delivered, he was lifted up with pride, and so wrath was toward him, verse 25. The first Reason. The reason hereof is twofold, First, and most usually, correction for sin, as we may see in the forenamed examples of David, Solomon, Asa, Jehosaphat and Hezekiah. So Psal. 89.31, 32. If they break my statutes, and keep not my commandments. Then will I visit their transgressions with the rod, and their iniquities with stripes. The second Reason. Secondly, God doth it sometime for the trial of grace: as is plain in Job, by Gods own confession, Job 2.3. Still he holdeth fast his integrity, although thou movest me against him, to destroy him without cause. This serves for instruction, admonition and comfort. The Use for instruction. For instruction: see here, that the Church of God, here on earth, is very fitly resembled to the moon, not only, for receiving all the light of knowledge and comfort she hath from Christ, but even because of change and alteration in estate. As the moon is sometimes in the wane and eclipse, and sometimes in the full, so is God's Church here on earth. Though outward prosperity, with the sense and feeling of God's favour, do most properly belong to God's Church and people; yet they are not so entailed upon them infallibly, but that many times, instead of prosperity, they have great misery. Christ is to his Church, for joy and comfort, the sun of righteousness; but yet, sometimes the light of his countenance doth not appear for many days. The first use for admonition. For admonition it serves two ways. First, in the days of peace and comfort to take heed of all sin, as being the true cause of eclipsing the light of God's favour: as we may see in general, Lam. 3.39. Wherefore doth a living man complain? a man for the punishment of his sins? verse 42. we have transgressed, and have rebelled, thou hast not pardoned. If we would know the causes of God's anger more particularly, in those special sins that stir up his wrath, see before in the third verse, the use of admonition upon the first observation. The second Use for admonition. Secondly, when God's favour is any way eclipsed towards his Church or any member of it, hence learn to inquire into the true cause thereof, which ordinarily is some sin, or sins: for the finding out whereof we must use God's law, as Joshuah did the lot to find out Achan with the execrable thing, Jos. 7.18. and the Mariners did to find out Jonah, Jonah 1.7. This concerns every one for the true peace of his own soul, that hereby they may be brought to repentance and reformation, and so shall God's favour be restored unto them. The use for comfort. For comfort, this makes greatly to those, that find and feel God's anger towards them, either in outward crosses, or in inward terrors. Herein consider, thy state is no worse than God's dearest children have been in, as Job, David, etc. do therefore, as they have done, repent of thy sins, pray for mercy, and wait by faith and patience, and peace shall come. The fift Observation. The Petition, considered in itself, sets before us this practice of God's Church and children. That, when they lie under any evil or misery, they pray for the removal of God's anger towards them. See Psal. 74.1. O God, why hast thou cast us off for ever? why doth thine anger smoke against the sheep of thy pasture? Psal. 79.1. etc. O God, the heathen are come into thine inheritance, thy holy temple have they defiled, they have laid Jerusalem on heaps, etc. Psal. 89.46. How long Lord, wilt thou hid thyself for ever? shall thy wrath burn like fire? So did David, Psal. 38.1. etc. O Lord, rebuke me not in thy wrath: neither chasten me in thy hot displeasure, etc. The reason. The reason is, because they know, that all affliction comes by divine dispensation, and ordinarily is the proper fruit of God's anger provoked by our sins: see Job. 5.6. Affliction cometh not forth of the dust, neither doth trouble spring out of the ground. It is a thing of Gods sending, Isaiah 45.7. I form the light, and create darkness, I make peace, and create evil. I the Lord do all these things. Amos 3.6. Is there evil in the City, and the Lord hath not done it? Mat. 10.29. A sparrow shall not fall on the ground without your father. The sword, the famine, the noisome beasts, and the pestilence are Gods four sore judgements, Ezek. 14.21. The first Use for instruction. This serves for instruction and for admonition. For instruction two ways. First, it lets us see the blindness of some, that in miseries never consider God's anger, but only look at second causes: hereof the prophet Isaiah doth complain, Isaiah. 26.11. Lord, when thy hand is lifted up, they will not see. This provokes to anger, and desire of private revenge, which is a brutish part: the dog bites at the stone, without regard to him that threw it. The second Use for instruction. Secondly see, what a desperate course they take, that under miseries use unlawful means to help themselves: as especially they do, that go to wizards and witches: they increase the wrath of God against themselves, as Saul did by this course, 1 Chron. 10.13, 14. See Isaiah 8.19. The first Use for admonition. For admonition three ways. First, in every misery we must do as God's Church here doth, lift up our thoughts to God's anger against us provoked by our sins. For ordinarily misery is a fruit of God's anger against our iniquity: and therefore, if we desire the removal of the evil, we must take a course for the appeasing of God's anger: which is only to be done through Christ his son, whom God hath set forth to be a propitiation for sin, Rom. 3.5. 1 John 2.2. The second Use for admonition. Secondly, as we desire to escape evils, we must beware of provoking the Lord to anger, 1 Cor. 10.22. Do we provoke the Lord to jealousy? are we stronger than he? Jer. 7.19. Do they provoke me to anger, saith the Lord? do they not provoke themselves, to the confusion of their own faces? The third Use for admonition. Thirdly, that under every misery, we follow the Church in prayer to God, for the appeasing of his anger. This will prevail, if it be joined with true humiliation. See 2 Chron. 6.36, 37. compared with chap. 7.13, 14. and consider how fare Ahab prevailed. 1 Kings 21.27, 29. Verse 5. Wilt thou be angry with us for ever? wilt thou draw out thine anger to all generations? 6. Wilt thou not revive us again, that thy people may rejoice in thee? The meaning of the words. THese words contain the Churches humble complaint unto God for two great evils: first, the long continuance of his anger toward them: secondly, the long delay of his favour from them. The long continuance of his anger is twice propounded, verse 5. to express their deeper sense thereof, & their more earnest desire to have it removed. The delay of his favour is lamented, in the sixth verse, and there amplified by the good effect of his renewing thereof, namely, their rejoicing in him. In their double complaint of his anger continued note two things. The first Observation. First, that God's anger may long continue towards his own children and people. This is the matter of their complaint in this place: and so, Psal. 74.1. O God, why hast thou cast us off for ever? why doth thine anger smoke against the sheep of thy pasture. Verse 10. O God, how long shall the adversacy reproach? shall the enemy blaspheme thy name for ever? Psalm 77.7, 8, 9 Will the Lord cast off for ever? and will he be favourable no more? Is his mercy clean gone for ever? doth his promise fail for evermore? Hath God forgotten to be gracious? hath he in anger shut up his tender mercies? Psal. 79.5. How long, Lord, wilt thou be angry for ever? shall thy jealousy burn like fire? Lament. 5.20, 22. Wherefore dost thou forget us for ever, and forsake us so long time. Thou hast utterly rejectedus: thou hast been very wroth against us. The first Reason. The reason hereof is twofold. First, the committing of sin, and omitting of repentance, either in general, as Isaiah 9.13. The people turneth not unto him that smiteth them: neither do they seek the Lord of hosts. ●4. Therefore the Lord will cut off from Israel head and tail, branch and rush in one day. 17. Every one is an hypocrite, and an evil doer, and every month speaketh folly: for all this his anger is not turned away, but his hand is stretched out still. 18. For wickedness burneth as the fire, etc. When men grow obstinate in sin, God becomes resolute in punishment: see Jer. 6.17.18, 19 The watchmen say, harken to the sound of the trumpet: the people answer, we will not hearken. Therefore hear, ye nations— behold, I will bring evil upon this people. 21. Fathers and sons together shall fall, etc. Jer. 7.13, 15, 16, 19 I speak unto you, rising up early and speaking, but ye heard not: and I called you, but you answered not. Therefore will I cast you out of my sight. Pray not thou for this people— for I will not hear thee. Do they provoke me to anger, saith the Lord? do they not provoke themselves to the confusion of their own faces? Or they repent not in sincerity, Is. 58, 2, 3, 6. Or repentance is not practised in particular, by the sinners themselves amongst God's people, though the godly there may repent and lament. See this plainly in the days of good King Josiah, who did greatly humble himself, 2 Kings 22. and most worthily endeavour the reformation of religion, the rooting out of idolatry and impiety: as 2 Kings 23. where his rare goodness is commended, from verse 2. to 25. and yet, verse 26. the Lords anger still continued. And the reason we may see, Zeph. 1. and Zeph. 3. where is showed, that in his days continued much impiety: and the like we may see, Ezek. 14.13, 14. When the land sinneth against me, by trespassing grievously, etc. Though these three ni●●, Noah, Daniel, and Job were in it, they sold deliver but their own souls by their own righteousness, The second Reason. The second reason is the continuing of scandal and reproach unto religion, amongst the wicked, by the grievous sins of God's children. Though they themselves may truly repent, yet their sins, causing the enemies of religion to blaspheme, may procure the continuance of God's anger in temporal judgements: as in David's case, 2 Sam. 12.10. etc. This serves for instruction, admonition and comfort. The first Use for instruction. For instruction two ways. First, it lets us see, what a fearful thing it is to live in impenitency, or to commit sins that are scandalous to religion, though we do repent, for both these ways we kindle God's anger, and who may stand when he is angry? for thereupon follows destruction. See Psal. 2.12. Psal. 76.7. The second Use for instruction. Secondly, he see who be the greatest enemies to the welfare of any estate, Church, Common wealth or family: namely, the wicked, who commit sin with greediness, and draw iniquity as it were with cart-ropes These are the persons, that bring plague, famine, war and other judgements. For affliction followeth sinners: where is lying, swearing, stealing, etc. where the Lord hath a controversy with the inhabitants, Hos. 4.1. etc. so Jer. 23.10. because of swearing the land mourneth, etc. and 1 Kings 18.18. Thou art he that troubles Israel. The first use for admonition. For admonition two ways. First, take notice of the causes, for which Gods anger is kindled, and doth continue, that we may avoid them: and when we have fear or feeling of his anger, then make sure we look back towards our sins committed, and see what repentance we have showed and reformation: and ever beware of hypocrisy and of scandalous sins. The second Use for admonition. Secondly, to beware of rash judgement, either against ourselves, or others, when God's anger doth long continue towards us, or them. Indeed this state causeth the godly to think themselves forsaken of God; as Is. 49.14. and to judge hardly of others, that be in that estate: as Job 4.7. but both without good ground. Therefore we must do, as Micha 7.8, 9, 10. Rejoice not against me, O mine enemy: when I fall, I shall arise, etc.— The Use for comfort. For comfort to them, that lie long under the heavy hand of God in any affliction, in soul, body, or outward estate, wherein they cannot but apprehend God's anger continued. They must consider, that herein nothing doth befall them, but what hath light on God's dear children, and therefore must neither murmur, nor despair. The second Observation. The second thing to be observed, is the behaviour of God's people, under the sense and feeling of Gods long continued anger, They return to him, that smote them, in humble complaint of his long continued anger toward them. See Psal. 44.9, 10, 17, 23. Psal. 74.1, 2. So in Job, Job 7.7, 8, 12. in David, Psal. 6.1. Psal. 38.1. Psal. 88.14. in Christ Jesus, in his agony, Mat. 26.38, 39 The first Reason. For first, they know that afflictions come; from God, Amos. 3.6. it comes not by change, Job 5.6. but by divine providence and dispensation, Mat. 10.29, 30. The second Reason. 2. They know God sends them afflictions, to make them seek unto him, Hos. 5.14, 15. Is. 26.6. as Absolom, by setting on fire Joabs' corn field, brought Joab to come to him, 2 Sam. 14.29. etc. The third Reason. 3. They know that, till God's anger be appeased, the strongest helps do fail, Job 9.13. The fourth Reason. 4. That, when they complain with godly sorrow, God is merciful, and will heart and help, Exod. 22.27. when he cryeth unto me, I will hear, for I am gracious, Psal. 22.24. He hath not despised, nor abhorred the affliction of the afflicted, neither hath he hid his face from him: but, when he cried unto him, he heard, Psal. 51.17. A contrite and a broken heart, O God, thou wilt not despise, Psal. 102.17. He will regard the prayer of the destitute, and not despise their prayer. This serves for instruction, admonition and comfort. The first Use for instruction. For instruction two ways. First, that all God's people do conceive the true God to be, not only a God of power, able to deliver, but a God of mercy and compassion, most willing to help and relieve those, that be in misery, Joel 2.13. The second Use for instruction. Secondly, see here the great impiety of those, that under the sense of God's anger, in any affliction, seek other help, then from God: as do seekers to witches and sorcerers, forbidden of God, Isaiah. 8.19. and Papists, that make intercession to Saints, for deliverance from sundry evils. They have fourteen helping Saints, by whose intercession and merit men may be delivered from all adversity: as St. George, St. Blaze, Erasmus, Panthaleon, Vitus, Christopher, Denis, etc. See Tilheman. Heshusius in erroribus pontificiorum, loco 28. de cultu & invocatione sanctorum. Wherein they deal like to Ahaziah, that sent to Baalzebub the God of Ekron. 2. Kings 1.1. etc. Add Isaiah 9.13, The people turneth not unto him that smiteth them, neither do they seek the Lord of hosts. The Use for admonition. For admonition, that we become followers of the Saints, and people of God, who in time of distress go to God, and make their complaints to him. See Jobs resolution in keeping close to God, Job 13.15. Though he slay me, yet will I trust in him. The use for comfort. For comfort to the godly, they may go unto God for mercy and help, when they feel God's anger towards them: as Psal. 77.1. etc. Judg. 10.10.15. Here it is true, though fire be in the bush, the bush consumeth not. Hence 2 Cor. 4.8. We are troubled on every side, yet not distressed: we are perplexed, yet not in despair. Verse 6. Wilt thou not receive us again, that thy people may rejoice in thee? The meaning of the words. THe second complaint of God's Church and people, for the long delay of his love and favour, which, testified by restoring them to comfortable state, they esteem and account as life itself; and therefore do complain of the want thereof, as of the state of death: for the change whereof they have recourse to God, saying, wilt not thou receive us again? moving him thereto by his good fruit and effect thereof, that thy people may rejoice in thee: as if they should have said, while we remain in misery, under the sense of thy displeasure, we are as dead men, and therefore do complain to thee, who by removing our miser●● and renewing thy favour, canst revive us; whereupon will follow this good effect, that we thy people shall rejoice in thee, which will be for thy glory. Here than we have to consider, as well the Church's complaint, as her reason, propounded to move God to give them relief from that misery, whereof they complain. The first observation. In their complaint note two things: the first employed, That the sense of God's displeasure, in a state of misery, is to God's people, as a state of death, Psal. 31.9 10, 11. David complains of his trouble and misery, and verse 12. saith, I am forgotten, as a dead man out of mind: I am like a broken vessel, Psal. 88.3, 4, 5. My soul is full of troubles: and my life draweth nigh unto the grave. I am counted with them, that go down into the pit: I am as a man that hath no strength. Free among the dead, like the slain, that lie in the grave, whom thou remember'st no more: and they are cut off from thine hand. The Reason. The reason hereof is, the high esteem, which Gods people have of his favour, when once they have felt the joy and comfort of it in their souls: as, Psal. 30.5. In his favour is life, Psal. 63.3. Thy loving kindness is better than life. For look, as the reasonable soul is a spirit of life from God, quickening the body, and giving unto it sense and motion, Gen. 2.7. so, God's favour, testified to the soul, by the spirit of grace, gives a lively cheerfulness to the heart of man, which makes him leap for joy, Psal. 32.11. Be glad in the Lord, and rejoice, ye righteous, and shout for joy all ye that are upright in heart: yea, even in affliction; as, Acts 5.41. they rejoice with joy unspeakable, and full of glory, 1 Pet. 1.8. This serves for instruction and admonition. The first Use for instruction. For instruction two ways. First, it gives light to the better understanding of some places of Scripture, which under the terms of life and resurrection, note out unto us the calling of the Jews, wherewithal God will vouchsafe unto them comfortable outward estate; as, Isaiah 26.19. Thy dead men shall live, etc. In assurance whereof, was showed to Ezekiel the vision of the dry bones, raised up to a great Army, Ezek. 37.1. etc. there plainly showed to belong to their restoring, by the union of the two sticks, to signify the union of Judah and Israel, verse 16. etc. This is their resurrection, from the dust of distress, Dan. 12.1. for, what shall their restoring be, saith St, Paul, but life from the dead. Rom. 11, 15. The second Use for instruction. Secondly, it lets us see a plain difference, between God's children, and natural men under affliction. The child of God lays more to heart God's displeasure towards him, testified by his affliction, than the affliction itself. As a toward child is more grieved, that his loving father is offended with him, than for the smart of his correction. This David shown in his flight from Absolom, when he bade Zadock the priest carry back the ark of God into the City, 2 Sam. 15.25, 26. If, saith he, I shall find favour in the eyes of the Lord, he will bring me again, and show me both it, and his habitation. But, if he thus say, I have no delight in thee, behold here I am, let him do to me, as seemeth good unto him. Secondly, they more desire the feeling of God's favour, than the removal of the affliction: as Psal. 51.8. after Nathan had told David, The Lord hath put away thy sin, thou shalt not die. 2 Sam. 12.13. yet, he prays the Lord to make him to hear joy and gladness: and, verse 12. to restore him to the joy of his salvation. Now, natural men in these cases deal otherwise: First, they look more at the outward misery, then at God's displeasure: as Is. 26.11. when thy hand is lifted up, they will not see, Psal. 10.5. Thy judgements are fare above out of his sight. Secondly, they more desire the removal of God's judgements, than the renewing of of his favour: and therefore are said, not to cry to the Lord with their hearts, when they howled upon their beds. They assemble themselves for corn and wine, and they rebel against me, Hos. 7.14. If they respected God's favour, above freedom from evils, and fruition of blessings, they would not for these things use unlawful means, which increase God's displeasure: as Saul did, 2 Sam. 28.7. The first Use for admonition. For admonition two ways. First, that in all afflictions, we endeavour to approve ourselves to be God's people, by laying to heart God's displeasure for our sins, above the smart of our affliction, and also desire the renewing of his favour, above the removal of any outward evil: or the fruition of any temporal blessing. The second Use for admonition. Secondly, that we beware of those things, which will eclipse his favour, and provoke his anger against us: for those are to the soul, as poison to the body. Oh, that we could esteem sin in every action, as the children of the Prophets did the wild vine in the pottage, run away, and cry, death is in the pot, 2 Kings 4.40. From the deadly plague, and noisome pestilence, we are careful to fly away betime, and fare enough off: and so should we do from the unprofitable works of darkness, which are death to the soul. The second Observation. Secondly here observe, both in the phrase, and matter therein expressed, That it seems strange to God's people, that he suffers them to lie long in affliction, under the sense of his displeasure, Psal. 13.1, 2. four times is the length of Gods delay complained of, and Psal. 77.7, 8. by way of admiration, will the Lord cast off for ever, etc. The first Reason. The reason is, in a double knowledge which they have of God. First, in his essential properties of mercy and compassion, Psal. 103.8. The Lord is merciful, and gracious: slow to anger, and plenteous in mercy: Psal. 86.15. Thou, O Lord, art a God full of compassion, and gracious: long suffering, and plenteous in mercy and truth. Psal. 145.9. His tender mercies are over all his works. The second Reason. Secondly, in his gracious and faithful promise made to his people, when they enter into covenant with him, Psal. 50.5.15. Gather my Saints together unto me: those that have made a covenant with me by sacrifice. Call upon me in the day of trouble, I will deliver thee, and thou shalt glorify me. Luke 18.7, 8. Shall not God avenge his own Elect, which cry day and night unto him, though he bear long with them? I tell you, that he will avenge them speedily. This serves for instruction, admonition, and comfort. The first Use for instruction. For instruction two ways. First, this their admiration doth presuppose their good, and commendable information in the knowledge of God, for his gracious disposition towards his children, and the truth of his promises, assured in covenant with them: else, they would never have thought it strange, it should be otherwise with them. And therefore, men should take heed, how they lay claim to be God's people, and yet be ignorant of his properties, and promises. 1 Cor. 15.34. Some have not the knowledge of God, I speak this to your shame. The second Use for instruction. Secondly, their admiration shows plainly, that there is a justice and wisdom in God; even in the course of his providence over the state and ways of men, which many times surpasseth the reach of God's children, to discern and find out, till it please God of himself, to reveal the reason and cause of his dealing: as Jer. 12.1, 2. Righteous art thou, O Lord, when I plead with thee: yet, let me talk with thee of thy judgements: wherefore doth the way of the wicked prosper? etc. Who can but admire, that the wicked Benjamites should twice prevail in fight against their brethren, that came for the execution of justice upon the sons of Belial, that had committed villainy with the Levites concubine, Judges 20.18, etc. The Use for admonition. For admonition, it serves very fitly to move us to godly behaviour under long affliction, that we carefully suppress in ourselves, all thoughts of hard or unjust dealing in God towards us therein, bringing ou● hearts to this resolution with Jeremy; that God is righteous, even then, when his dealing seems most strange unto us. Qu. How shall we be able so to do? Answ. By evincing our hearts of four things in God; justice, sovereignty, wisdom, and power. First, of justice, to do right to all, and wrong to none. This is so essential in God, that he may as soon cease to be God, as not to do right, Gen. 18.25. Psal. 145.17. Jer. 12.1. Job 34.10.23. And therefore, the godly under affliction must not be worse, than Pharaoh, who confesseth, Exod. 9.27. I have sinned. The Lord is righteous, I and my people are wicked. Secondly, we must lay to heart God; sovereignty; whereby he may do with his own what he will: he may exercise his under the cross, not only for correction for sin, but also for trial of grace, as he did Job, Job 2.3. We grant this liberty to men, over their goods and cattle, which are the gifts of God's providence unto them, and shall we deny it to the Lord over man, who hath absolute sovereignty over him, both by creation and providence? Thirdly, we must bethink ourselves of God's wisdom, which indeed is infinite, Psal. 147.5. and therefore may in himself perfectly discern, that that affliction which he continues upon his children, is most for his own glory, and best for their good, though they conceive the contrary; as children do under the rod, in the hand of their parents. Lastly, consider his Almighty power, he can bring light out of darkness, 2 Cor. 4.6. and so he useth to do to his children, Psal. 112.4. so as they shall confess it is good for them that they have been afflicted. Psal. 119.71. And indeed, whosoever considereth the end, which God brought unto Job, to David, and the rest, whom he exercised under great affliction, will confess no less. These things, well considered, will make us know our duty, and acknowledge, that repining against God's correction continued, is ever a fruit of corruption, which reigneth in natural men, and maketh them to blaspheme under God's judgements, Rev. 16.9. The Use for comfort. For comfort, it makes greatly to God's children under long affliction, to consider that such an estate may continue upon his own children and servants, by the rule of his justice, sovereignty, wisdom and power: and therefore, they need not to murmur or despair; when nothing befalls them, but that which hath befallen their betters in grace, as Job, David, etc. That thy people may rejoice in thee. The reason propounded by God's Church, to move the Lord to hasten their deliverance out of misery, and the removal of their afflictions: namely, because thereupon, they should be justly occasioned to rejoice in God, as plainly discerning this to be a fruit of his mercy, and loving providence over them. The third Observation. Here then note, that when God's people are delivered from affliction, they rejoice in God: as well, by receiving it, as from God's hand; as Psal. 126.3. The Lord hath done great things for us, whereof we are glad: as by giving all the honour and praise thereof to God alone, as Moses and Aaron did for their deliverance at the red sea: Exod. 15.1, etc. and as Deborah and Barak did, Judges 5.1, etc. David also, Psal. 118.1, etc. and Jehoshaphat and the people, 2 Chron. 20.26, 27. The Reason. The reason hereof is, that though means be used by God's people, yet they know, that the blessing is not in the means, but in the Lord, who doth prosper the same. Psalm 44.6, 7, 8. For I will not trust in my bow: neither shall my sword save me. But thou hast saved us from our enemies, and hast put them to shame that hated us. In God we boast all the day long, and praise thy name for ever. This serves for instruction, and for admonition. The Use for instruction. For instruction, it shows us a plain difference, between God's children, and natural men, in the fruition of temporal blessings; and so gives evidence of nature and grace in the days of peace: For mere nature looks at outward means, and at second causes: and so men either glory in themselves, as Dan. 4.30. or sacrifice to their nets, as Habak. 1.15, 16. But the godly, though they use means, yet they first look at God, and give the chief praise to him, and look to the means in the second place, as 1 Sam. 25.32. The use for admonition. For admonition, it serves effectually to move every child of God, to conform himself to this profession, and practise of the godly, even for every blessing, whether of deliverance from evil, or fruition of good, to rejoice in the Lord. This was David's ordinary practice: Psal. 34.1, 2, 4. This also we shall do, if we be careful of three things. First, to see God's hand of mercy in every thing, wherein we rejoice: as Psal. 118.15, 16, 23, 24. The voice of rejoicing and salvation is in the tabernacles of the righteous: the right hand of the Lord doth valiantly, etc. Secondly, to give him praise and thanks for every blessing: thus God is honoured, Psal. 50.23. therefore David stirreth up his soul hereunto, Psal. 103, 1, 2. Bless the Lord, O my soul, and all that is within me, bless his holy name. Bless the Lord, O my soul: and forget not all his benefits. The very blind heathen have done this, for the honour of their idols: as Judg. 16.23. Dan. 5.4. Shall not Gods people much more do it to the true God? Thirdly, to use the blessings, wherein we rejoice, to God's glory, stirring up ourselves thereby, to walk more obediently to God's commandments. Psal. 116.8, 9 Thou hast delivered my soul from death, mine eyes from tears, and my feet from falling: I will walk before the Lord in the land of the living. Verse 7. Show us thy mercy, O Lord, and grant us thy salvation. The meaning of the words. HEre the Church doth return again unto humble petition or supplication, and that for two things: First, that the Lord would show them his mercy: Secondly, give them his salvation. For the first, when they say, Show us thy mercy, O Lord, they do plainly imply, that his mercy or loving kindness was hid from them: and yet for all, that they do not leave the Lord in that estate, but humbly beg the sight and evidence of his mercy. So that in this first petition, we have to note two things: the miserable state of God's Church for a time, and the godly behaviour of the Church in that estate. The first Observation. For the first, the miserable estate of God's Church is this, for a time they are without the sense and feeling of God's mercy and kindness, else they would not desire to see it. Psal. 74.1, 9 O God, why hast thou cast us off for ever? We see not our signs, to wit, of thy mercy towards our help, Psal. 77.8, 9 Is his mercy clean gone for ever? Hath God forgotten to be gracious: Psal. 89.49. Lord where are thy former loving kindnesses? The first Reason. The reason hereof is. First, trial of grace, as in Job, Job 13.24. Wherefore hidest thou thy face, and holdest me for thine enemy. Vers. 20. Thou writest bitter things against me. The second Reason. Secondly, correction for sins, which stir up God's anger against his people, and so hid his mercy and kindness from them. Lam. 3.42, 43, 44. We have transgressed, and have rebelled, thou hast not pardoned. Thou hast covered with anger, and persecuted us: thou hast slain, thou hast not pitied: Thou hast covered thyself with a cloud, that our prayer should not pass through. This is acknowledged in salomon's prayer. 2 Chron. 6.36. If they sinne against thee (for there is no man which sinneth not) and thou be angry with them, etc. Psal. 106.39, 40. Thus were they defiled with their own works, and went a whoring with their own inventions. Therefore was the wrath of the Lord kindled against his people: insomuch, that he abhorred his own inheritance. This serves for instruction, and for admonition. The first Use for instruction. For instruction two ways. First, touching the true God: this state of the Church, wanting the sense of God's mercy, teacheth us to conceive and know, that though God be to his Church a God of mercy in Christ, and so delight therein, that his mercy is said to be above all his works, Psal. 145.9. and that he would be known to delight therein, Jer. 9.23. yet withal, that he is a God of severity and justice, not sparing his own people, when they sin against him. Thus he describes himself, Exod. 34.6, 7. Though be keep his mercy for thousands, yet he will by no means clear the guilty. How did he punish his own people the Jews? see Lam. 1.12. and his own dearest servants for sin? David, 2 Sam. 12.10. etc. Asa, and others? nay his own son, when he bore our sins? Which, well considered, will be the ground of God's fear in our hearts, Exod. 23.20, 21. I will send mine Angel, which shall keep thee in the way, etc. Beware of him, ohey his voice, provoke him not: for he will not pardon your transgressions: for my name is in him, Heb. 12.28, 29. Let us have grace, whereby we may serve God acceptably, with reverence and godly fear: For our God is a consuming fire. Jer. 5.22. Fear ye not me saith the Lord? will ye not tremble at my presence? Jer. 10.7. Who would not fear thee, O King of nations? for unto thee doth it appertain. The second Use for instruction. Secondly, touching God's people: see here that they may truly belong to God by covenant in Christ, and yet for a time be without the sense and feeling of his mercy & kindness: as Psal. 74.1, 19 O God, why hast thou cast us off for ever? why doth thine anger smoke against the sheep of thy pasture? Forget not the congregation of thy poor for ever, Psal. 77.8, 9 Is his mercy clean gone for ever? doth his promise fail for evermore? Hath God for gotten to be gracious? hath he in anger shut up his tender mercies? Ob. Where then is the truth of his promise, Isaiah 54.10. The Mountains shall departed, and the hills be removed, but my kindness shall not departed from thee, etc. Whereupon, Psal. 23.6. Mercy and kindness shall follow me, all the days of my life: for, Psal. 89.28. My mercy will I keep for him for ever, Psal. 126. twenty six times, in every verse once. For his mercy endureth for ever. Answ. We must put a difference, between God's mercy, and kindness conceived in himself, and vouchsafed to his children and people, and the expressing, and manifestation thereof. The former once begun is ever continued, towards those that be in Christ, John 13.1. Having loved his own which were in the world, he loved them unto the end. Rom. 11.29. For the gifts and calling of God are without repentance. But the manifestation thereof is many times restrained, for good causes: as either trial of grace, or correction for sin: which liberty we give to natural parents, towards their children, and therefore must take heed we deny it not to God. The first use for admonition. For admonition two ways. First, that we take heed of all those things, that cause the Lord to hid his favour from us; which indeed is all sin and only sin, that separates, Isaiah 59.2. even pride and haughtiness upon the fruition of his favour: as Psal. 30.6, 7. In my prosperity I said, I shall never be moved. Lord by thy favour thou hadst made my mountain to stand strong: thou didst hid thy face, and I was troubled. The second Use for admonition. Secondly, not to be dismayed, or to despair under the sense of God's displeasure; for it is the state of the godly sometimes to feel it. We must say with the Church, I will bear the wrath of the Lord, because I have sinned against him. Micah 7.9. we must humble ourselves, and wait for mercy: as Psal. 42.11. and then know, that his favour shall be renewed. They that wait upon the Lord shall renew their strength. We must learn to walk by faith, and not by sight, 2 Cor. 5.7. to live by faith, and not by sight. Hab. 2.4. for, Psal. 89.30. etc. If his thildrens forsake my law, and walk not in my judgements. If they break my statutes, and keep not my commandments: Then will I visit their transgression with the rod, and their iniquity with stripes. Nevertheless my loving kindness will I not utterly take from him, nor suffer my faithfulness to fail, etc. The second Observation. The second thing here to be noted, is the behaviour of God's people in this their miserable estate, here plainly expressed; when they want the sense and feeling of God's mercy and kindness, they leave not God, but go to him by humble and earnest prayer, for some evidence thereof, Psal. 77.2. In the day of my trouble I sought the Lord, Psal. 40.11, 12. Withhold not thou thy tender mercies from me, O Lord, let thy loving kindness and thy truth continually preserve me. For innumerable evils have compassed me about, etc. Psal. 42.7, 8, 9 All thy waves, and thy billows are gone over me. Yet the Lord will command his loving kindness in the day time, and in the night his song shall be with me, and my prayer unto the God of my life. I will say unto God, my rock, why hast thou forgotten me, etc. Psal. 44.17, 24. All this is come upon us, yet have we not forgotten thee— wherefore hidest thou thy face, and forgettest our affliction. The first Reason. The reason of this their behaviour is, partly, in their knowledge; but principally in their faith in God. For their knowledge, by God's word they are certainly assured, that mercy is essential in God, Psal. 62.12 Also unto thee, O Lord belongeth mercy. He is plenteous in mercy, Psal. 103.8. His mercy is great above the heavens, Psal. 108.4. The earth is full of his goodness, Psal. 33.5. His tender mercies are over all his works, Psal. 145.9. Also they know, he takes pleasure in those, that hope in his mercy, Psal. 147.11. Now, will they that know this do less to God, then Benhadad's servants did to the King of Israel? 1 Kings 20.31, 32. we have heard, that the Kings of the house of Israel are merciful Kings, etc. The second Reason. Secondly, they trust in God; and therefore have recourse unto him in misery, and under the sense of his anger, Psal. 13.3, 5. Consider and hear— I have trusted in thy mercy, Psal. 22.1, 4, 5. My God, my God, why hast thou forsaken me?— Our fathers trusted in thee: they trusted and thou didst deliver them. They cried unto thee, and were delivered: they trusted in thee, and were not confounded. This serves for instruction, and for admonition. The Use for instruction. For instruction, it lets us see a difference, both in judgement and practice, between the godly and the wicked: For judgement, even about prayer in affliction: the wicked ☜ think it unprofitable to pray, Job 21.15. Mal. 3.14. But the godly know it is otherwise, James 5.16. For practise, the wicked call not voon God, but only for show, Psal. 14.4. Hos. 7.14. But the godly are much in this duty, Psal. 5.3. My voice shalt thou hear in the morning, etc. Psal. 55.17. Evening, and morning, and at noon, will I pray, and cry aloud, Psal. 119.164. Seven times a day do I praise thee. Yea, herein they offer an holy violence unto God, as Jacob held the Angel, and would not let him go, till he blessed him, Gen. 32.24, 26. and Moses as it were, held God from destroying the Israelites, when they had made the golden calf, Exod. 32.10. etc. The Use for admonition. For admonition, that we endeavour to approve ourselves, to be God's people, and true members of his Church, by following them in this godly practice, even then, to press upon the Lord by our humble and earnest prayers, when he seemeth to oppress us with his judgements: when he hides his mercy from us, we must by our prayers sue, and seek to find mercy with him: as David did, 2 Sam. 24.14. Quest. how shall we be enabled hereunto? Answ. By doing two things. First, we must inform our hearts rightly, in the nature of God, for mercy and compassion, as is showed in the first reason: and in the gracious promises, made to his people, even when they are in misery. Secondly, fit ourselves to have good title to the same: which requires two things at our hands. 1. True and unfeigned repentance, whereby our sins be removed, and so a way made to his mercy, Jer. 18.7, 8. 2. The getting, and exercising of those graces of the spirit, which testify, we stand rightly in covenant with God. As 1. Faith in God, through Christ: rely upon him, for the pardon of sin, and saving of our souls, and we shall not distrust for lesser deliverances: as Psal. 56.13. Thou hast delivered my soul from death, wilt thou not deliver my feet from falling? 2. Fear God in heart, and show it by eschewing evil, and doing good in life, Psal. 25.12, 14. What man is he, that feareth the Lord? him shall he teach in the way that he shall choose. The secret of the Lord is with them that fear him: and he will show them his covenant, Psal. 103.11. For as the heaven is high above the earth: so great is his mercy toward them that fear him. 3. Exercise mercy toward our brothers, so shall we find the Lord merciful unto us, Psal. 18.25. With the merciful thou wilt show thyself merciful. For on the contrary, Jam. 2.13. He shall have judgement without mercy, that hath showed no mercy: and Psal. 109.12, 16. Let there be none to extend mercy unto him, etc. Because that he remembered not to show mercy, etc. 4. Be much in prayer to God, in the name of Christ, for whatsoever we lack, Phil. 4.6. See encouragements, Psal. 50.15. Call upon me in the day of trouble, I will deliver thee, and thou shalt glorify me: and Psal. 86.5. Thou Lord art good, and ready to forgive: and plenteous in mercy unto all them that call upon thee. And grant us thy salvation. The second benefit, which Gods Church and people here beg of God, as a fruit and evidence of his mercy and kindness; namely, to give them his salvation: that is, deliverance from that troubles of their enemies, and from all other evils that lay upon them: for that is the salvation here meant: as Exod. 14.13. Stand still and behold the salvation of the Lord, which he will work for you. The third Observation. In this petition note two things, 1. The place and order, in which this blessing is sought. 2. What kind of salvation they desire: namely, that which comes from God: grant us thy salvation. For the first, note, God's people seek God's salvation, after they have sought his mercy: first, they beg mercy at his hands, and then deliverance from evils: Psal. 40.11. Withhold not thou thy tender mercies from me, O Lord: let thy loving kindness, and thy truth, continually preserve me. Psal. 6.2. Have mercy upon me, O Lord, for I am weak: O Lord, heal me, for my bones are vexed. First mercy, then healing. Psal. 30.10. Have mercy upon me, O Lord, be thou my helper. The first Reason. The reason hereof is twofold. First, their partaking of God's mercy, was necessary for the removal of the cause of their misery, which ordinarily is sin: that brings death, and all evils that before-runners thereof, Rom. 5.12. Now there is no way to have sin removed, but through God's mercy in Christ: as David shows, Psal. 51.1, 2, 14. The second Reason. Secondly, mercy and kindness in God is properly the moving cause of his saving us, both temporally in this world, and eternally in the world to come: for preservation, which is temporal salvation, see Psal. 6.4. David being sick and weak, prays thus, O save me for thy mercy's sake: and so, when he was in danger of his life by enemies, he makes the same prayer, O save me for thy mercy's sake: Psal. 31.16. Psal. 44.3. Their own arm did not save them: but thy right hand, and thine arm, and the light of thy countenance; because thou hadst a favour unto them. This the people say of Gods dealing with their forefathers, bringing them out of Egypt into Canaan: and thereupon being in misery, they fly to the same ground of help, verse 26. Arise for our help, redeem us for thy mercy's sake: so David, as a type of Christ in his passion, prays; Help me, O Lord my God: O save me, according to thy mercy. And for salvation eternal, it is wholly founded on God's mercy in Christ, Tit. 3.5. Not by works of righteousness which we have done, but according to his mercy he saved us, etc. Psal. 141.4. Lord be merciful unto me, heal my soul, for I have sinned against thee. This serves for instruction, for admonition, and for comfort. The first Use for instruction. For instruction two ways. First, they that have no good title to God's mercy, can have no good assurance of God's salvation, either temporal or eternal. A point very considerable of wicked men, that hate instruction, as Psal. 50.17. and encourage themselves in a wicked course, as Deut. 29.19, 20. blessing themselves in their hearts, saying, we shall have pence, etc. such the Lord will not spare— see Prov. 1.25, 26. Hereupon, Psal. 119.155. salvation is fare from the wicked. It is true, wicked men flatter themselves in their own eyes with this, O, God is merciful. But who so is wise will consider, whose word shall stand, Gods or theirs: as, Jer. 44.28. The second Use for instruction. Secondly, see here, the true Church, seeking God's salvation, pleads mercy, not merit: and so did Paul profess, and teach, 1 Cor. 4.4. Phil. 3.9. Tit. 3.5. So Psal. 115.1. Isa. 64.6. The first Use for admonition. For admonition two ways. First, to all that look for God's salvation, temporal or eternal, to make sure they stand rightly entitled to God's favour and mercy: for salvation follows mercy. Now God's mercy is only had in and thorough faith in Christ Jesus: whom God hath set forth to be a propitiation, through faith in his blood, etc. Rom. 3.25. The second Use for admonition. Secondly, in the use of lawful means for preservation, to renew our title to God's mercy. The want hereof hinders many times the fruition of God's blessing: as in Asa, 2 Chron. 16.12. In his disease he sought not to the Lord, but to the Physicians, and so died. But the practice of it by Hezekiah, procured the reversing of the sentence of death. Isaiah 38.2, etc. The Use for comfort. For comfort, to those that are truly entitled to mercy, and yet lie under affliction: they may assure themselves of a better deliverance: as, Heb. 11.35. God's mercy shall be magnified in them, whether by life or death. Phil. 1.20. If deliverance be good, they shall have it: if they want deliverance, their affliction shall be sanctified unto them. The fourth Observation. The second thing to be noted in this last petition is, what kind of salvation, or deliverance the people of God do desire, when they are in misery; namely, that which comes from God. God's people in misery desire the deliverance, which is of Gods sending, Psal. 60.11. Give us help from trouble: for vain is the help of man. Psal. 20.7. Some trust in charets, and some in horses; but we will remember the name of the Lord our God, verse 9 Save Lord, Psal. 106.47. Save us O Lord our God. The first Reason. First they know, that salvation belongs unto him, Psalm 3.8. He is the God of salvation, Psal. 68.20. with him is plenteous redemption, Psal. 130.7. The second Reason. Secondly they know, that without him the strongest helps do fail: as Job 9.13. If God will not withdraw his anger, the proud helpers do stoop under him: and Isaiah 30.1, etc. Woe to the rebellious children, etc.— They were all ashamed of a people, that could not profit them, nor be an help, etc.— The third Reason. Thirdly, they know, that deliverance is easy unto him, when distress and danger is most grievous, Jer. 32.27. there is nothing too hard for him. He can save with many or with few, 1 Sam. 14.6. with weak means, Judges 7.20. without means, Isaiah 63.5. by his bare command, Psal. 44.4. as Mat. 8.3. I will: be thou clean. Yea, by destroying means, as Israel through the red sea, Exod. 14.26, etc. and the three servants of God in the fire, Dan. 3.25, 27. The fourth Reason. Fourthly, they know, that God stands bound by promise in the covenant, which he makes with his people, to deliver them out of misery and distress, when they humble themselves and pray: See Psal. 50.5, 15. 2 Chron. 7.14. This serves to discover their impiety, which use unlawful means, to help themselves from under miseries and afflictions; as the help and direction of witches and wizards, like to Saul, 1 Sam. 28.7. and to Ahaziah, 2 Kings 1, 2, 3. forbidden, Leu. 20.6. Isaiah 8.19. Also theft, oppression bribery, perjury, lying, etc. This is not the practice of God's people: help and deliverance; by such means as these, is not of God, but of the devil: and such persons should think of Christ's speech to the Jews, John 8.44. You are of your father the devil: for the lusts of your father you will do. The Use for admonition. Secondly, to admonish us in all miseries to imitate God's people, in seeking only that help and deliverance, which comes from God. Consider herein the practice of the godly, that would not receive deliverance by unlawful means. Heb. 11.35. alluding to 2 Machab. 6.23, 30. Verse 8. I will hear what God the Lord will speak: for he will speak peace to his people, and to his Saints: but let them not turn again to folly. The meaning of the words. IN this verse, and those which follow, to the end of the Psalm, is contained the third and last part thereof, showing the Churches godly behaviour, after she had made her complaint and prayer, in promising to wait upon God, for a gracious answer: whereof she lays down sufficient ground. First, in general in this verse; than more particularly in the rest of the Psalm. Her behaviour is in these words. I will hear, what God the Lord will speak: meaning by way of answer to my complaint and prayer. Wherein we have to note two things. 1. How she styleth God in this place. 2. What duty she undertaketh towards him. The first Observation. 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 For the first, the titles here given to God by the Church are two, God, the Lord: the first notes out his power, the second his performance of what he hath promised: as Exod. 6.3. I appeared unto Abraham, Isaac, and Jacob, by the name of God almighty; but by my name Jehovah was I not known unto them, verse 6. wherefore, say unto them, I am the Lord, I will bring you out. And this is used by the Church and godly elsewhere: as Psal. 118.27. God is the Lord, who hath given us light. The Reason. The reason of this practice of the Church is, to strengthen herself to the better performance of the duty she undertakes, which is to wait for God's answer to her prayers: whereto she shall be the better encouraged, and enabled by considering; that God is Jehovah, one that not only hath being of himself, but gives being to his promises. Now being God, he is able, and being Jehovah, he is faithful: as, Heb. 10.23. He is faithful that promised, 1 Thes. 5.24. He will also do it. And for his promise, see Psal. 50.15. The first use for admonition. This should teach us to labour to understand the holy titles, whereby God is styled in Scripture, that so we may the better make a right use of them both to terrify us from sin, and to encourage us in faith and obedience. As for terror, to consider, that he is called an everlasting burning, and devouring fire, Is. 33.14. For encouragement in difficult cases, to consider, that he is the maker of heaven and earth, great in counsel, mighty in work, Jer. 32.17.19. for mercy, the good God. 2 Chron. 30.18. for encouragement in prayer, Our father, which art in heaven, Mat. 6.9. which lays a ground, both of confidence, in that he is our father, and of fear, and humility, in that he is in heaven. The second Use for admonition. Secondly, is God the Lord? then those that call him so must fear him in regard of his power, Jer. 5.25. Mat. 10.28. obey him as their Lord. Luke 6.46. and rest upon him by faith; because he makes good his gracious promises, 2 Cor. 1.20. The second Observation. The duty, which the Church here undertakes to perform to God is this, she will patiently attend for God's gracious answer, to her complaint and prayer. So doth Job, Job 14. All the days of my appointed time will I wait, till my change come, Psal. 40.1. I waited patiently for the Lord, Psal. 130.5, 6. I wait for the Lord, my soul doth wait. The Reason. The reason hereof is, from the work of God's spirit in his children, enabling them by faith. 1. To reverence his command, enjoining them so to do, Psal. 27.14. Wait on the Lord, be of good courage. 2. To rely upon his promise to hear and help, 2 Chron. 7.14. wherein they know he will not fail: because he is a God of power, able to do whatsoever he will, Psal. 115.3. and of mercy, exceeding abundant, above all that we can ask or think, Ephes. 3.20. This serves for instruction, and for admonition. The use for instruction. For instruction, it acquaints us with a plain difference, between the godly, who are believers, and the wicked, who are unbelievers: the godly do not only pray to ●od, but wait also for an answer when they have made their prayer: as Psal. 42.5, 11. Isaiah 28.16. But the wicked, either pray not, as, Psal. 14.4. or if they do pray, yet they will not wait: as 2 Kings 6.33. What should I wait upon the Lord any longer? They deal with their prayers, as the Oftrich doth with her eggs, which she leaveth in the earth, etc. Job 39.14, etc. because God hath deprived them of vunderstanding, as punishment of their contempt of the means of grace, else they would not account the exercise of prayer unprofitable: as, Job 21.15 Mal. 3.4. The use for admonition. For admonition, that we endeavour to approve ourselves to be God's people, by waiting upon God for a gracious answer to our prayers. This we should do every day, according to the practice of the Church in this place: whereunto if we did indeed set ourselves, we would make conscience of all sin, that we might keep ourselves in the love of God, without which we cannot comfortably expect a gracious answer from him to our prayers. Now to enable us to wait and listen for a gracious answer, when we have prayed, we must be well exercised in godly consideration and practice. The consideration needful hereto is three fold First, of Gods promise made to those that pray unto him: for it is presumption to wait for that, which God hath not promised to give: True expectation is a fruit of faith, which ever looks at God's word of promise. Secondly, of God's power and mercy: for as his power will assure us, that he is able, so his mercy will show, that he is most ready and willing to grant our requests. Thirdly, we must consider his manner of answer: it is threefold. Sometime, by giving that particular blessing we ask: as 1 Sam. 1.27. For this child I prayed, and the Lord hath given me my Petition, which I asked of him. Sometime, by giving some other thing answerable to the blessing: as, 2 Cor. 12.9. My grace is sufficient for thee. And sometimes by giving patience and strength to bear the evils which we would have removed; as, Heb. 5.7. The godly practice hereto needful, is threefold. First, to stir up our hearts to lay hold on God's promises by faith: as, Psal. 43.5. And herein we must show godly judgement, in labouring to trust perfectly for spiritual blessings, simply needful to salvation: as, 2 Tim. 1.12. I am not ashamed, for I know whom I have believed, etc. But for spiritual blessings less necessary, as also for all temporal blessings, to submit our wills to Gods will. Secondly, we must hold on in the way of obedience. Psal. 37.34. Wait on the Lord, and keep his way, and he shall exalt thee to inherit the land. Thirdly, continue in prayer. Col. 4.2. Keep not silence; give the Lord no rest. Isaiah 62.6, 7. For he will speak peace to his people, and to his Saints. The reason or ground, whereby the Church doth encourage herself, to the former godly practice, drawn from God's gracious dealing with his people, in giving comfortable answer to their prayers: for peace in Scripture doth oftentimes note out all manner of welfare: as, Exod. 18.7. Psal. 122.6. Psal. 35.27. In this reason we have two things to note. First, the honourable title whereby God's people here be styled; namely, that they are his Saints. Secondly, the special favour which God will show unto them, in answer to their prayers: he will speak peace unto them. The third Observation. For the first, they are his Saints, even gracious Saints, such as he doth prosecute with special grace and favour: as we speak, the Lords favourites: Psal. 30.4. Sing unto the Lord, O ye Saints of his. Psal. 31.23. O love the Lord ye his Saints; for the Lord preserveth the faithful. I salm 37.28. He forsaketh not his Saints. The Reason. The reason and ground of this happy and honourable estate is in God alone. 1 Cor. 4.7. For who maketh thee to differ from another? And what hast thou, that thou didst not receive? First, in God the father electing and choosing them to be holy. Eph. 1.4. According as he hath chosen us in him, before the foundation of the word, that we should be holy, and without blame before him in love. Secondly, in God the Son, redeeming them from sin, washing and cleansing them with the washing of water, by the word, that he might present them to himself without spot, or wrinkle, or any such thing, but that they might be holy and without blemish. Eph. 5.25, 26, 27. Thirdly, in the work of the Holy ghost, applying the merit and power of Christ's death unto them, for the abolishing of corruption, and the renewing of the graces of his holy image. 1 Pet. 1.22. Ye have purified yourselves, in cheying the truth, through the spirit. Fourthly, in a work of all three persons vouchsafing unto them an effectual calling. 1 Con. 1.2. Called to be Saints. This serves for instruction, admonition and comfort. The first Use for instruction. For instruction, First, it lets us plain y see, that God hath his Saints in this world, such as from election through redemption and sanctification are holy and pure in his sight. Numb. 23.21. He hath not beheld iniquity in Jacob. It is not as Papists say, that there are none but in heaven: for here they have their beginning, and now are truly, though not perfectly holy. The second Use for instruction. Secondly, here see how fare the prephane do deceive themselves, when they lay claim to be God's people. Psal. 94.20. Shall the throne of iniquity have fellowship with thee? which frameth mischief by a Law? 2 Cor. 6.14. etc. What fellowship hath righteousness with unrigh cousnesse, etc. 1 Job. 1.6. If we say that we have fellowship with him, and walk in darkness, welye, and do not the truth. The first Use for admonition. For admonition. First, that if we lay claim to be God's people, we labour after holiness. Heb. 12.14. Fellow peace with all men, and holiness, without which no man shall see the Lord: and see how fur forth, in all manner of conversation, 1 Pet. 1.15. For this cause we must ●●ercise ourselves in the word and prayer, the Lords ordinances sanctified to his elect for the beginning of holiness, and increase thereof in their souls. The second Use for admonition. Secondly, that we learn to delight in the godly, Psul. 16.2, 3. My goodness extendeth not unto thee, but to the Saints that are in the earth, and to the excellent in whom is all my delight, Psal. 119.63. I am a companion of all them that fear thee: and of them that keep thy precepts: as the Lord doth, Psal. 147.11. The Lord taketh pleasure in them that fear him: in those that hope in his mercy. The use for comfort. For comfort, it makes greatly against the contempt of the world, 1 Sam. 2.9. He will keep the feet of his Saints, and the wicked shall be silent in darkness, Deut 33.2, 3. Cant. 2.14. Psal. 149.9. The fourth Observation. For the second, God will speak peace to his people: he will give a comfortable, and gracious answer, to their complaints and prayers: Psal. 29.11. The Lord will bless his people with peace, Psal. 12.5. For the oppression of the poor, for the sighing of the needy, I will up, saith the Lord, and set him at liberty, Psal. 50.15. Call upon me in the day of trouble, I will deliver thee, Isaiah 26.12. Lord thou wilt ordain peace for us, Isaiah 40.1, 2. Comfort ye, comfort ye my people, saith your God: speak ye comfortably to Jerusalem. Thus he answered daniel's prayer, Dan. 9.20, 21, 23. The first Reason. The reason hereof is twofold. First, his covenant of grace, made with his people in Christ, through whom it becomes the covenant of peace, is. 54.10. for Christ is the Prince of peace, Is. 9.6. yea, our peace, Eph. 2.14. in whom we have peace, John 16.33. The second Reason. Secondly, because his Saints be endued with those graces and virtues, which give them title to true peace: as faith in God, Rom. 5.1. and love to God's law, Psal. 119.165. and obedience to his commandments, Is. 48.18. This serves for instruction, admonition, and comfort. The first Use for instruction. For instruction two ways. First, it shows the sweet fruit and benefit of true piety, in the profession of God's holy religion. It is not, as wicked men think, a vain thing to serve God: Job 21.15. Mal. 3.14. but undoubtedly, there is fruit for the righteous, Psal. 58.11. Godliness is great gain, 1 Tim. 6.6. It is profitable unto all things, having promise of the life that now is, and of that which is to come, 1 Tim. 4.8. This will more plainly appear, if we consider the extent of this peace, which God promiseth to his people. It is not only, 1. The peace of God, that is, God's favour and love, which passeth all understanding Eph. 3.19. which Christ giveth to those that be godly, John 14.27. but, 2. Peace of conscience, Rom. 5.1. which is a continual feast, Prov. 15.15. and gives boldness with God in prayer, 1 John 3.21. and, 3. Peace with the good Angels in heaven, Psal. 34.7. and 9.10. Heb. 1.14. 4. Peace with God's Church, Acts 4.32. yea, 5. Peace with all earthly creatures, for their comfortable use and service, Job 5.23. Hos. 2.18. even, 6. With wicked men, as Joseph had in Potiphars house and Pharoahs' Court, Gen. 39.2. etc. and 41.37. etc. and Daniel in the King's Courts of Babel and Persia, Dan. 2. and 5. and 6. and 7. With hurtful creatures, when it makes for God's glory, in the good of his Church: as we may seeby the three children in the fire, Dan. 3. by Daniel in the Lion's den, Dan. 6. by Jonah in the Whale's belly, Jonah 2. and by Paul among the Barbarians, when he shook of the viper, Acts 28.2. etc. And are not all these great blessings and privileges? The second Use for instruction. Secondly, this teacheth Magistrates and Ministers, how they ought to carry themselves in their places, for they are both in the place of God sent and set in by him: as Rom. 13.1, 4.2 Cor. 5.20. and Magistrates bear the name of God. Psal. 82.1, 6. John 10.34, 35. Therefore they must be followers of God, speak peace to the godly, deal kindly with those that walk uprightly. Magistrates mus: look at God: job 8.20. He forsaketh not the upright, nor taketh the wicked by the band: either to show kindness, or to yield support. And Ministers, as ambassadors, must deliver the will of their King and master, and as stewards must give to every one his due portion, Luke 12.42. which, if it were done, would encourage the good and daunt the wicked. But alas, the contrary practice of both mars all, in all estates. Magistrates stretch out the hand to scorners and drunkards, Hos. 7.5. and beat the good, Ezek. 34.3 etc. And ministers, some by ill teaching, but more by bad living, do strengthen the hands of the wicked, Jer. 23.14. and make sad the hearts of those, whom God hath not made sad. The use for admonition. For admonition, it serves effectually to all that are desirous God should speak peace unto them, to be careful to become truly his Saints and people: for to them God will speak peace, and to none else indeed: as Isaiah 48.22. There is no peace, saith my God, to the wicked. Now, they that would approve themselves to be God's people and Saints, must do three things. First, by true repentance break off the course of their sins, and turn from every evil way: for else God will not own themfor his people, Psal. 50.16, 17. They, that live in sin, walk in darkness, and so cannot have fellowship with him, 1 John 1.6. 2 Cor. 6.14. Secondly, by true faith in Christ rest and rely upon God's mercy, for pardon of sin and salvation: for he, that cometh unto God, and hath fellowship with him, must believe, Heb. 11.6. therefore Christ bidding his Disciples to believe on him, as they believe on God, John 14.1. doth encourage them thereto by this, that he is the way, the truth, and the life, by whom alone they must have access to the father. verse 6. In whom we have boldness, and access with confidence, by the faith of him, Eph. 3.12. Thirdly, walk in new obedience, to testify the truth of their repentance and faith: for faith worketh by love, Gal. 5.6. And this is the love of God, that we keep his commadements, 1 John 5.3. The Use for comfort. For comfort, it maketh greatly to God's people and children, in any misery or trouble, that doth befall them: for God will speak peace unto them: peace shall come, Isa. 57.2. though for a time they be in heaviness, through manifold temptations, yet believing in Christ, they rejoice with joy unspeakable, 1. Pet. 1.6, 8. God will give them beauty for ashes, the oil of joy for mourning, etc. Isa. 61.3. Only they must wait in the way of obedience, Psal. 42.5.11. Isa. 40.31. They that wait on the Lord shall renew their strength. The fifth Observation. But let them not turn again to folly. A needful caveat, or item for God's people, touching their behaviour, whereby they wait for peace from God, they must not turn again to folly. By folly he meaneth their sins, which formerly had brought misery upon them, thereto he would not have them turn again. In this caveat there are two things to be observed. First, the title given to sin. Secondly, the behaviour required of God's people toward it. For the first, sin is here called folly or foolishness by the Holy ghost: so also, Prov. 22.15. Foolishness is bound in the heart of a child; that is, corruption sticks fast to the heart and soul by nature, even in childhood. Psal. 38.5. My wounds stink, and are corrupt, because of my foolishness: that is, because of my sinfulness. Psal. 107.17. Fools, because of their transgression, and because of their iniquities, are afflicted. Prov 26.11. As a dog returneth to his vomit, so a fool returneth to his folly: that is, a wicked man returneth to his sin. The first Reason. In reason this is plain. For first, in every sin there is a rejecting of the word of God, which is divine wisdom. Jer. 8.9. Nay, a forsaking God himself, and cleaving to the devil, which is extreme madness. The second Reason. Secondly, every sin gives a deadly would to the soul, being indeed the sting of death, 1 Cor. 15.56. See Rom. 5. 1●. and 6.23. Now who but fools or madmen, will hurt themselves? I very man that is wise, will be wise for himself, Prov. 9.12. The 3 Reason. Thirdly, every sin must be undone by repentance, or else the the doing of it will destroy the sinner: Psal. 7.12.13. If he turn not, he will what his sword: he hath bend his bow, and made it ready: he hath also prepared for him the instruments of death. The wicked shall be turned into hell. Psal. 9.17. The Use for instruction. This shows first, that the world is full of fools: for sin abounds every where, the whole world lieth in wickedness. 1. Joh. 5.19. Which well considered, may stay our hearts from doubting of God's providence; because of the general disorders, that be in the world: see Psal. 75.3, 4. The earth, and all the Inhabitants thereof are dissolved— Isaith unto the foolish, deal not so foolishly, etc. The Use for admonition. Secondly, as we desire to escape the brand of folly, so we must be careful to shun the practice of sin and impiety: for sin is folly, and they that commit it deal foolishly: as 2 Sam. 24.10. The rather because of the devils dealing with these fools, they are in his hands, and he deals with them, as many times great men in the world do with naturals, make a prey of their estate, and sport themselves with their folly: so the devil makes a prey of their souls, and sports himself with their sins, which be their folly: Even as the Philistims deal with Samson, Judg. 16.15. who turned him to grind in their prison house, and brought him forth as a laughing stock, to make them merry. Men may be wise for the world, and yet such scols for the devil. Luke 12.20. The sixth Observation. The second point, here purposely intended, is this. They, that look for peace and welfare from God, must not turn again to sin. Jer. 18.9, 10. When God speaks concerning nation to build or plant it, if they do evil, and obey not his voice, then will he repent of the good he intended for them Dent. 29.19, 20. When wicked men bless themselves in their hearts, with a persuasion of peace and welfare, and resolve to go on in sin, God will not spare, but cause all his wrath and jealousy to smoke against them, till they be destroyed. His charge unto his people, whom he brought out of Egypt, that they should not reture thither any more. Deut. 17.16. teacheth us that he cannot endure men's turning back to the servitude of sin, which was sigured by Egyptian bondage: and, as God punished the Jews, that would needs return thither, with sword, famine, and pestilence till they were destroyed, Jer. 42.10, 16, 17. so, he will not spare any, that turn back to the service of Satan, in the works of sin. The first Reason. The reasons hereof are four: First, sin being the deadly disease of the soul, as Rom. 5.12. and 6.23. turning back thereto must needs be a spiritual relapse, and so more dangerous, then corporal, by how much spiritual death is worse than corporal. Hereupon Salomm saith, He, that being often reproved, hardeneth his neck, shall suddenly be destroyed, and that without remedy, Prov. 29.1. The second Reason. Secondly, returning unto sin is not only foolishness, but indeed most base and brutish behaviour, and therefore is resembled by the Holy Ghost to the dogs returning to the vomit, and the sows wallowing again in the mire, after she hath been washed, 2 Cor. 2.21, 22. Prov. 26.11. The third Reason. Thirdly, sin provokes the Lord to anger, Jer. 5.16, 17, 18, 19 and so takes away peace between God and us, Psal. 38.3. for it makes us wicked, and there is no peace to the wicked, Is. 48.22. It shall not go well with the wicked, Eccles. 8.13. A man cannot harden himself against God and prosper, Job 9.4. What peace saith Jehu whilst the whoredoms of Jezabel remain yet in great number, 2 Kings 9.22. The fourth Reason. Fourthly, as sin brings us into bondage, 2 Tim. 2.26. so returuing unto it doth renew and strengthen this spiritual bondage, under the dominion of Satan: as Mat. 12. 43, 44, 45. When the unclean spirit is gone out of a man, and returneth again, he taketh with him seven other spirits, more wicked than himself, and they enter in, and dwell there, and the last state of that man is worse, than the first. And therefore St. Peter speaking of such, saith, better for them, never to have known the way of righteousness, then to turn from the holy Commandment, given unto them, 2 Pet. 2.21. This serves for instruction, and for admonition. The first Use for instruction. For instruction. First, here see the fearful measure of man's corruption, in blindness of mind, and hardness of heart, that notwithstanding this divine charge, upon such weighty grounds, of fearful evils accompanying relapse unto sin, yet wicked men do judge it, both pleasing and profitable so to do. In the committing of it, sin is sweet unto them. Job 20.12. Hereby they have their wealth, Acts 19.15. and hereupon grow desperate in sin: as Jer. 44.16, 17. This they would not do, if they did see, or fear the evil of sin. The second Use for instruction. Secondly, this lets us see the main and general cause of war abroad, and of the fear thereof, and of other evils at home in our own land: surely, either they and we have not turned from our evil ways, or upon some outward show thereof, have made revolt and relapse thereinto again. This we should consider, to stir up our hearts, to sound conversion from our sins, and to constant resolution against relapse thereinto. The use for admonition. For admonition, every child of God must yield obedience to this holy charge, and beware of turning back to sin; and, to arm their souls against relapse, lay to heart the four former grounds or reasons. It is no small matter to transgress any commandment of God, Psal. 50.16, 17. God disavoweth such, from laying claim to covenant with him, and will cast them away, as he did Saul, 1 Sam. 15.23. yea destroy them, Prov. 13.13. Add also this consideration, that God's favour is better than life, Psal. 63.3. and shall we lose it for the pleasure of sin? Then are we not like Moses, who chose rather, to suffer affliction, with God's people, then to enjoy the pleasure of sin for a season, Heb. 11.25. nor like Paul, who had rather die, then lose his rejoicing, in the furtherance of the gospel, by abstaining from a thing lawful, which was outward maintenance for preaching, 1 Cor. 9.19. what then could have drawn him, to disgrace the gospel, by returning unto sin? If we well consider of these things, we shall say with Joseph, Gen. 39.9. How can we do this great wickedness, and sin against God. Verse 9 Surely his salvation is nigh them that fear him: that glory may dwell in our land? The meaning of the words. IN this verse, and the rest to the end of this Psalm, are propounded the special branches of that peace and welfare, which God vouchsafeth to his people and Saints, not returning unto folly. The first of these is salvation, here undoubtedly assured to be nigh to those, that fear God, and also amplified by the end, for which God gives it to his people, viz. that glory may dwell amongst them. By salvatition, the blessing prayed for in the seventh verse, is here meant deliverance and freedom, from all those evils and miseries, that any way lay upon them: which blessing is here undoubtedly assured, to those that fear God. So as in the first part of the verse this point is plain. The first Observation. God's salvation is undoubtedly nigh to those that fear him. God will certainly vouchsafe, to such as truly fear him, both temporal deliverance, and preservation from evils, and spiritual and eternal salvation in heaven, Prov. 19.23. The fear of the Lord tendeth to life, and he, that hath it, shall abide satisfied: he shall not be visited with evil, Psal. 25.12, 13. His soul shall dwell at ease, Psal. 33.18, 19 The eye of the Lord is upon them that fear him, to deliver their soul from death, and to keep them alive in famine, Psal. 31.19, 20. How great is thy goodness, which thou hast laid up for them that fear thee? Thou shalt hid them, in the secret of thy presence, from the pride of man. etc. The first Reason. The reason hereof is plain. First, the true fear of God is a fruit of his holy spirit: Isaiah 11.2. which unites us unto Christ, 1 Cor. 6.17. and entitles us unto covenant with him, in the nearest bond of mystical union, 1 Cor. 12.13. The secret of the Lord is with them that fear him, he will show them his covenant, Psal. 25.14. Now they, that are truly in covenant with God, have true title to all the blessinsg thereof, even to preservation on earth, and salvation in heaven: for there is no want to them, that fear him. Psa. 34.9. The second Reason. Secondly, the true fear of God moves a man to eschew evil, Job 1.1. Prov. 14.27. and to cleave unto God in holy obedience, Jer. 32.40. Now to such belong the salvation of the Lord, Acts 13.26. Whosoever amongst you feareth God, unto you is the word of this salvation sent. This serves for instruction, admonition, and comfort. The Use for instruction. For instruction, it shows the miserable condition of those that want the fear of God: for salvation must needs be far from them. For they, that want the fear of God are wicked, Psal. 36.1. and salvation is far from them. Psal. 119.155. Howsoever it be true in the world, that they, who work wickedness, are set up; yet it is not so with God: he puts a difference between those that fear him, and those that fear him not. Eccles. 8.12, 13. As he did between the Egyptians and the Israelites. Exod. 8.22, 23. The first Use for admonition. For admonition it serves two ways. First, to search and try, whether we be such, as truly fear God, that so we may know God's salvation belongs unto us. The infallible marks hereof are three. First, a constant care and endeavour to shun all sin. Prov. 3. 〈◊〉. Fear the Lord, and departed from evil. Prov. 8.13. The fear of the Lord is to hate evil. Prov. 14.27. The fear of the Lord is a fountain of life, to departed from the snares of death. This is plain by the contrary, Gen. 20.12. where the fear of God is wanting, there is no conscience of sin, Psal. 36.1. Secondly, true delight in God's commandments, testified by obedience thereto, Psa. 112.1. Thirdly, to be plentiful in all well-doing, according to our places, Job 1.1, 8. Prov. 14.2. The second Use for admonition. Secondly, every one that wants the fear of God, and desires his salvation, must labour to get it: for, though it be a fruit of the spirit, Isaiah 11.2. yet there is means to be used, for the obtaining of it which is required at our hands, and that is consideration and prayer. The consideration is twofold: First and principally of God himself: Secondly of ourselves. Our consideration of God respecteth his properties and his works. His special properties to be considered for this and are six. First, his infinite greatness, which doth evince his presence. See Psal. 145.3. Great is the Lord, etc. 1 Kings 8.27. Jer. 23.24. Now God's presence is fearful. Gen. 28.16, 17. Secondly, his infinite wisdom, whereby he knoweth all things, even the most hidden thoughts. Psal. 147.5. His understanding is infinite: and Psal. 139.2, 3. Thou understandest my thoughts a fare off, etc. Hebr. 4.13. All things are naked and opened unto the eyes of him with whom we have to do. Thirdly, his infinite purity and holiness, which cannot admit fellowship with the least sin. 1 John 1.5. God is light, and in him is no darkness at all: And 2 Cor. 6.14. What communion hath light with darkness? Fourthly, his power and justice; both which make him a consuming fire against sin. Heb. 12.28, 29. with Mat. 10.28. Fiftly, his mercy in pardon and forgiveness. Psal. 130.4. There is forgiveness with thee, that thou mayst be feared. Whereon Noah being moved with fear, prepared an Ark, etc. Heb. 11.7. Sixtly, his works of power and wisdom and justice: as, Psal. 89.7. God is greatly to be feared in the assembly of the Saints, etc. Psal. 139.13, 14. specially the day of judgement. Eccles. 12.13, 14. Fear God— for God will bring every work into judgement. Acts 24.25. As he reasoned of righteousness, temperance and judgement to come, Felix trembled. Our consideration of ourselves is of our own frailty and vanity: being but dust and ashes. Gen. 18.27. For all flesh is grass, and all the goodliness thereof as the flower of of the field. Is. 40.6. And every man, at his best estate, is altogether vanity, Psal. 39.5. With consideration we must join prayer: for that sanctifies all God's ordinances, 1 Tim. 4, 5. 1 Cor. 3.6. and obtaineth the spirit, Luke 11.13. which worketh God's fear, Isa. 11.2. The Use for comfort. For comfort, it makes greatly to those that serve God truly: for, when they are in any distress or misery, they must think upon the privilege of this grace, and that will minister comfort unto them, to know, that God's salvation is near unto them. That glory may dwell in our land.] The end, for which God sends his salvation to his people, that do fear him, namely, that glory may dwell in their land. By glory, he meaneth an happy and honourable estate, both of Church and Commonwealth, in freedom from evils, and fruition of blessings, both spiritual and corporal. By dwelling in their land is noted, the long continuance of the same blessings amongst them. The second Observation. Here then note: That God would have the very land of his people, that truly fear him, to abide and continue in a glorious estate. God's salvation doth therefore come unto them, that they may be renowned for glorious estate, in abundance of blessings continued among them. Deut. 5.29. Oh, that there were such an heart in my people, that they would fear me always, that it might go well with them, and with their children for ever. Psal. 81.13, etc. Oh, that my people had harkened unto me, & Israel had walked in my ways, etc. The like is, Isa. 48.18. and Psal. 72.7. The fifth Reason. The reasons hereof are two: First, such as fear God are his by covenant. Mal. 3.17, They shall be mine, saith the Lord: even his sons and daughters. 2 Cor. 6.16. Now, a natural father desires the honour, and advancement of his natural children, much more than will God do it: Luk. 11.13. The second Reason. Secondly, God taketh pleasure in those that fear him. Psal. 147.11. He loveth their prosperity, and delighteth to make them glorious and renowned above others: as, Psal. 35.27. and Ps. 149.4. He will beautify the meek with salvation. Psal. 44.1, 2, 3. Because thou hadst a favour unto them. Ps. 84.11. He is a sun and a shield, he gives grace and glory. Qu. How comes it to pass, that God's people, fearing God, are yet sometimes in great contempt and reproach: as, Psal. 44.10, etc. 1 Cor. 4.9, etc. Answ. This may be, either for trial of grace, as in Job: or for correction for sins committed by them, or by the wicked that live among them: as Psal. 44.10, 11. or else, to give way to the wicked, in spite to them, to fulfil their sins, for speedier judgement: as, 1 Thes. 2.16. For these reasons, the outward glory of God's children may be eclipsed; but yet, even then are they glorious with God through grace: as, Isa. 49.5. and one day shall it be made manifest, as is promised, Isa. 61.3. This serves for instruction, admonition, and comfort. The first Use for instruction. For instruction two ways. First, it shows again the great benefit of true piety, as is noted before on Vers. 7. God's salvation shall make them glorious, that truly fear God. Take a view of the heads and branches of their renown: whereof the first and chiefest is, the fruition of the true God himself in Christ, who is the great glory of those that truly fear him. He is the glory of their strength, Psal. 89.17. the glory of his people, Luke 2.32. He is the King of glory: even coming into their hearts, and dwelling in them, and with them: Psal. 24.7, etc. compared with, John 14.23. Thou, O Lord, art a shield for me: my glory, and the lifter up of mine head, Psal. 3.3. The second branch of their renown and glory, that truly fear God, is the fruition of Gods saving ordinances, of true religion, and holy worship, vouchsafed to those that fear God, as a means to bring them to grace and glory. This was the prerogative of the Jews under the law: Psal. 147.19, 20. Rom. 3.1, 2. The presence of the Ark was to them a great glory: as 1 Sam. 4.21, 22. and so is the Gospel unto us. 2 Thess. 2.13, 14. Thirdly, glory doth here comprehend the good blessings of God's providence, appertaining to outward estate: which, being enjoyed, make men renowned and glorious in this world, as victory, peace, plenty, and the like: whereof see fully, Deut. 28.1. etc. to 15. All which, attending those that fear the Lord, show plainly the great worth of their piety. Which, well observed, will arm us against the error and reproach of carnal men, that account it a vain thing to be godly, Job 21.15. Mal. 3.14. and will make us say and think with Paul, that godliness is profitable to all things, 1 Tim. 6.6. having the promises of a double life, 1 Tim. 4.8. The second Use for instruction. Secondly, see here, who be the true friends to the peace and prosperity of any place, as Kingdom, Town, or Family; namely, such as fear God: for they bring glory to the place of their abode. God in Christ is with them: to them belong the holy ordinances of grace and glory, and also all comfortable blessings of God's providence, respecting temporal welfare: as before is showed. Hence God said to Abraham, the father of the faithful, Thou shalt be a blessing, Gen. 12.2. which also belongs to his godly posterity. Lot was so to Sodom, Gen. 19.22. Jacob to Laban, Gen. 30.27. Joseph to Potiphars house, Gen. 39.2, 3. and to the land of Egypt, Gen. 41.38. etc. Not so the wicked: they trouble the state and place where they live: as Achan, Jos. 7.25. and Ahab, 1 Kings 18.18. They consult shame to their own houses, Hab. 2.10. as Elies wicked sons did bring ruin on their father's house, 1 Sam. 2.30. etc. and 3.13, 14. The sinner, being an hundred years old, shall be accursed. Isaiah 65.20. and leave his name for a curse, verse 15. The first Use for admonition. For admonition two ways. First, to every one, to beware of those things, that move God to take away glory from a land: and these are especially three. First, Idolatry: see Ezek. 9 there is their horrible idolatry, and chap. 10.4. the Lord gins to departed. Secondly, impiety and profaneness in the Priests and Ministers of God, 1 Sam. 2.17. compared with chap. 4.21, 22. Thirdly, Barrenness in the people, when they profit not by the word of God, Mat. 21.43. The second Use for admonition. Secondly, to examine ourselves throughly, whether we have the true fear of God before our eyes. The way of trial is showed before, in the first admonition on the first point of this verse. The Use for comfort. For comfort, it makes greatly to those, that have the true fear of God in their hearts: they are surely entitled to glory. Though they may want it in this world: as 1 Cor. 4.9, 13. yet, in the world to come, they shall have it, 2 Tim. 4.8. Mat. 19.28, 29. Luke 16.25. Verse 10. Mercy and truth are met together: righteousness and peace have kissed each other. The meaning of the words. In this verse, those & that follow to the end of this Psalm, the Prophet doth particularly make instance in sundrygarcious blessings, which God vouchsafeth to those that fear him, as beams of that glory, which he will have to dwell amongst them, when he sends them his salvation. These blessings he still propounds by couples, whereof this verse containeth two, mercy and truth, righteousness and peace: which being here assured, without any special limitation, from God, or man alone, I think we may safely take them, in that latitude of sense, which may comprehend mercy and truth, righteousness and peace, both divine and humane: that is, as they are vouchsafed from God to men, and also as they are exercised between man and man: the rather because, where either way these be wanting, glory doth not dwell there. Their meeting together, and kissing each other, are borrowed terms, serving to express, more significantly, the sweet and comfortable continuance of these gracious blessings, amongst that people, whom God will make glorious by his salvation. The first Observation. Now then, understanding the words in this large sense, we have to note in them these particulars. First, that with whomsoever true glory makes abode, unto them both God's mercy, and God's truth, are undoubtedly vouchsafed. God's mercy is his gracious and favourable acceptance of them for his people, and his kind dealing with them, being received into covenant: and God's truth is his faithful performance of those gracious promises, which he hath made unto them. These do meet together with all those, that God makes glorious in estate: as, Psal. 89.1, 2, 24, 28, 33. I will sing of the mercies of the Lord for ever: with my mouth will I make known thy faithfulness to all generations, etc. The Reason. The reason is plain: for this mercy and truth from God to men, is the ground of their happiness and glorious estate: till God, of mere mercy and kindness, receive him into covenant, and then in faithfulness perform his gracious promises unto them, they lie dead in sin, and in spiritual bondage under Satan the Prince of darkness, being without Christ, without hope, without God in the world: see Eph. 4.17, 18. and 2.1, 12. But when God, out of his rich mercy, receiveth men into his love and favour, giving them an holy calling, whereby they are brought into covenant with him, then are they brought from darkness unto light, from the power of Satan unto God. Acts 26.18. than they enter into the happy and honourable estate of sons and daughters unto God, which is no small glory, 2 Cor. 6.17, 18. This serves for instruction, admonition, and comfort. The first Use for instruction. For instruction, this leads us plainly and rightly to see, where true glory dwells, whether we speak of Kingdom, City, Town, Family, or person; namely, where God's mercy, and God's truth in the covenant of grace do certainly meet. Happy is that people, that is in such a case: yea happy is that perple, whose God is the Lord. Psal. 144.15. for there mercy and truth from heaven are met: see Exod. 19.5, 6. with Psal. 65.4. Exod. 33.16. Of this mind was Paul. Acts 26.29. when he wished Agrippa a King to be like him in Christianity. This also is Christ's judgement. Revel. 2.9. with 3.17. But most plainly, Jer. 34.8, 9 with Is. 62.7. Jerusalem hereby is for a name and praise, etc. The second Use for instruction. Secondly, here see the common error of the world, in judging of glory and renown by outward things; as large dominions, great wealeh, pomp and pleasures: but, unless with these God's mercy and truth do also meet, we may well say of them all, This their glory is their shame. Phil. 3.19. For in shame and confusion will they all end, without saving grace: as we may see in Babel, the glory of Kingdoms, Is. 13.19. etc. Jer. 51.6, 7. and in Dives, the picture or pattern of worldly wealthy Epicures. The Use for admonition. For admonition, it serves effectually both to people in general, in Towns and Kingdoms, and to persons in particular in every family: that, if they desire true glory, should dwell among them, they make sure, that God's mercy and truth do meet together with them, and in them. Now this mercy and truth is revealed in the word of the gospel, and indeed in the preaching of the gospel is offered unto all that hear it, Tit. 2.11. They therefore that receive, believe, and obey the gospel, have God's mercy and truth to meet among them, and in them: and if their fa●th do work by love, Gal. 5.6. and their love be showed by keeping Gods commandments, 1 John 5.3. than they need not doubt of their glorious estate in God's esteem. It is true, the world derides this course and counsel, and think it a vain thing, Mal. 3.14, 15. they call the proud happy, etc. but wisdom is justified of her children, Mat. 11.19. and they that make trial shall find the comfort and assurance of it. The Use for comfort. For comfort, it makes greatly to the godly, in whose hearts mercy and truth are met together, against the contempt and reproach of the world: for it is as the householders kind welcome, against the barking of his dogs. Let us therefore be of Paul's mind, 1 Cor. 4.3. With me it is a very small thing, that I should be judged of you, or of man's judgement: and we shall feel his comfort, Rom. 8.18. I reckon, that the sufferings of this present time, are not worthy to be compared with the glory, that shall be revealed in us: and 2 Cor. 4.17. Our light affliction, which is but for a moment, worketh for us a fare more exceeding, and eternal weight of glory: and of david's, 2 Sam 6.21, 22. It was before the Lord, etc.— and I will yet be more vile than thus, etc.— The second observation. Secondly, here note also, that where a state or people, or particular person, be truly glorious before God, there mercy and truth, between man and man, must be duly and conscionably practised: They that are beautified with God's grace and favour, and other blessings of the covenant, must answer God's goodness with the exercise of mercy and faithfulness towards their brethren: 2 Cor. 4.1. As we have received mercy of the Lord, we faint not; meaning, we labour faithfully, to bring others to the participation of the same mercy. See it notably practised by David, Psal. 51.1, 13. Have mercy upon me, O God— and then will I teach transgressors thy ways, etc. As, Psal. 101.1. I will sing of mercy and judgement: Psal. 26.3. Thy loving kindness is before me, and I have walked in thy truth. The first Reason. The reason hereof is plain: First, God's graces, and blessings towards his children, are in a marvellous manner operative in them, causing them to do the like towards their brethren: see Exod. 34.29. when Moses had conversed with the God of glories in the Mount, he received glory into his countenance; which made his face to shine before the people: and so, we all behold the glory of the Lord in Christ, with open face, and are transformed into the same image, from glory to glory: 2 Cor. 3.18. his love in Christ, constraineth us to love men's souls, and to seek their conversion: see, 2 Cor. 5.14, &c, Gal. 1.15, 16, 17. Psal. 16.2, 3. The second Reason, Secondly, the want of mercy and truth towards our brethren, declares us to be destitute of true grace, and liable to God's displeasure: Hos. 4.1, 2. God hath a controversy with the inhabitants of the land, because there is no truth nor mercy, etc. This serves for instruction, admonition, and comfort. The Use for instruction. For instruction, it shows plainly, that men's behaviour and carriage towards their brethren, will discover and manifest their state and condition before God. A constant course in the exercise of mercy and truth toward men, by those, that live in the Church, and profess the truth, shows plainly, that God in Christ hath extended mercy and truth towards them: and so for other graces. As we have received mercy, we faint not: 2 Cor. 4.1. Meaning, in faithful dispensation of the truth, to bring others to the participation of the same mercy: for the love of Christ constraineth us: 2 Cor. 5.14. See 1 John 3.14. Hence are those exhortations to love and mercy: Matth. 5.44, 45. Luke 6.36. Eph. 5.1. The use for admonition. For admonition, that we give ourselves to the exercise of mercy and truth toward our brethren, ●f we desire assurance of God's mercy and truth to our own souls: else we discredit Gods works of grace, whereof we make profession, if no fruit thereof appear towards our brethren. Those, in whom the devil works by suggestion, and temptation unto evil, are very forward and bold to draw others unto evil: and shall not the power of God's spirit in grace, be as mighty in the godly, to move them to well doing? See how Paul laboured for the glory of God in the conversion of others, when he had once tasted of god's mercy and grace in his own. 1 Cor. 15.10. Acts 20.24. 2 Cor. 11.28, 29. Phil. 2.17. The Use for comfort. For comfort, it makes greatly to those, that give themselves to the exercise of mercy and truth towards their brethren: for they shall find mercy with God, and the truth of his promises shall be made good unto them: see Jam. 2.13. Mercy rejoiceth against judgement. Righteousness and peace have kissed each other. The second couple of heavenly blessings, most assuredly vouchsafed in Christ's kingdom, to all that truly fear God: which, as the former, being generally propounded, without any limitation to God, or man alone; I take so largely, as to comprehend, both God's righteousness and peace, vouchsafed unto men, and the righteousness and peace, which men are to exercise and prosecute one towards another: because indeed, if either of these be wanting, the glory of God's salvation is not yet come: Now, their kissing one another is, a metaphorical phrase taken from lovers, and friends meeting together, who use to greet one another with a kiss of love, here serving very fitly to set out the sweet accord and comfort of grace, amongst God's people. Here than we have to note two things, touching the state of God's people in Christ's kingdom; truly fearing God, for their comfortable fruition of righteousness and peace: First, that they have these graces truly vouchsafed unto them from God: Secondly, that they do most lovingly and sweetly exercise the same one towards another. The third Observation. For the first, in Christ's kingdom, God doth most lovingly bestow on those, that truly fear him, both his righteousness and his peace. God's righteousness, bestowed on his people, is not his own divine essential righteousness, for that indeed is infinite, and incommunicable; but it is the righteousness of Christ, as he is Mediator, God and man, which he fulfilled for his redeemed, and is accepted of God as theirs, that do truly believe. Consider Heb. 7.2. Phil. 3.9. 2 Cor. 5.21. 1 Cor. 1.30. Jer. 23.6. And God's peace, sweetly accompanying the same, is peace of conscience, a sweet persuasion of reconciliation, and so of love and favour with God in Christ. Rom. 5.1. Being justified by faith, we have peace with God. Rom. 14.17. His kingdom stands not in meat and drink, but in righteousness and peace. The Reason. The reason hereof is in God alone. First, he bestows on his Church, righteousness in Christ, to make a way for his mercy, by the satisfying of his justice: for all have sinned, and so in themselves are unable of glory. Rom. 3.23. The unrighteous cannot inherit the kingdom of God. 1 Cor. 6.9. Therefore God, intending in mercy to free his elect from hell, which their sins did deserve; and to bring them to heaven, which for want of righteousness, they of themselves could never attain unto, doth bestow upon them Christ's perfect righteousness, as he is Mediator, both active and passive, that by his sufferings▪ they might be freed from hell, Gal. 3.13. and by his obedience, in doing all that the law required, for them, might be made righteous, and so worthy of life, Rom. 5.19. and 8.30. and 10.4. Then with righteousness he gives peace of conscience, by the work of his Holy Spirit, that those, who fear him, may have confidence and boldness with God in prayer, 1 John 3.19.21. and also may have in them matter of stay and comfort, against the hatred, and contempt, and persecution of the world, John 16.33. This serves for instruction, admonition, and comfort. The first Use for instruction. For instruction: first, see the bountifulness of God in Christ Jesus towards those, that fear him: he multiplies heavenly blessings in great variety and abundance, he adds grace to grace, and that by couples, mercy and truth, righteousness and peace: Well may we say with the Prophet, Psal. 33.5. The earth is full of the loving kindness of the Lord. Psal. 86.15. Thou art a God full of compassion, and gracious, long suffering, and plenteous in mercy and truth: Psal. 130.7. With the Lord is mercy, with him is plenteous redemption. The riches of his grace, and mercy in Christ, are unsearchable. Ephes. 3.8. That which he said to Moses, Exod. 33.19. he doth fully accomplish in Christ; I will make all my goodness pass before thee. It pleased the father that in him should all fullness dwell. Col. 1.19. And, if he spared not his own son, but gave him for us, how shall not he with him give us all things also? Rom. 8.32. Qu. What shall we say to these things? Rom. 8.31. Answ. Surely, we must labour to walk worthy of the Lord, unto all pleasing, Col. 1.10. and in some measure labour to answer God's bounty: which requires first, conversion from sin; Rom. 2.4 secondly, love to the word of grace, 1 Pet. 2.2, 3. Thirdly, that we admire God's goodness, Psal. 31.9. Psal. 116.12. Fourthly, that we praise him for it: Psal. 136. throughout: and Psal. 145.1, 7, etc. Ephes. 1.3. Fiftly, that we order our lives a right. Rom. 12.1. This hath the promise of God's salvation. Psal. 50.23. The second Use for instruction. Secondly, see here plain evidence of the miserable state of all unrighteous persons, that keep a course in sin: undoubtedly God's salvation is not come unto them: for he, that is the servant of sin, is quit or freed from righteousness; Rom. 6.20. and salvation is fare from such. Psal. 119.155. neither can they have any true peace. Is. 48.22. The third Use for instruction. Thirdly, here see both evidence and assurance for those, that fear God and believe in him through Christ; of their blessed and happy estate of salvation: for God's righteousness and God's peace do kiss in their souls. By faith they are made righteous in Christ, Rom. 3.28. Gal. 3.11, 24. and, when they are justified, they have peace with God. Rom. 5.1. For God gives both joy and peace in believing, Rom. 15.13. Papists call it a doctrine of presumption, to lay claim to the knowledge and assurance of salvation, by ordinary grace: But Wisdom is justified of her children, Math. 11.19. If we receive the witness of men, the witness of God is greater: for this is the witness of God which he hath testified of his son. He that believeth on the son of God, hath the witness in himself. And this is the witness, that God hath given to us eternal life. These things have I written unto you, that believe on the name of the Son of God, that ye may know, that ye have eternal life. 1 John 5.9, 10, 11, 13. Add 1 Cor. 2.12. with Rom. 6.23. and Rom. 8.16, 17. And by effects, 1 John 3.14. 2 Pet. 1.5, etc. The Use for admonition. For admonition, this serves effectually to move all those that desire in their souls the true comfort of peace with God, to labour to be partakers of God's righteousness: for righteousness and peace do kiss one another. He, that is made righteous by faith in Christ, shall likewise by the same faith have peace with God through Christ: for he is our peace, Eph. 2.14. he makes peace by the blood of his cross, Colos. 1.20. therefore at his birth the Angels sung, Glory to God on high, and in earth peace: Luke 2.14. Now Christ's righteousness is made ours by faith. Gal. 2.16. Knowing, that a man is not justified by the works of the law, but by the faith of Jesus Christ, even we have believed in Jesus Christ, that we might be justified by the faith of Christ. Now this faith is the work of the spirit, 2 Cor. 4.13. in the ministry of the Gospel, Rom. 10.17. and showeth itself to be true by good works, of love to God and to our brethren. Gal. 5.6. The Use for comfort. For comfort, this makes greatly to those, that truly fear God, professing the Gospel, they undoubtedly be righteous before God, and in him, they shall have peace, John 16.33. Isa. 57.1, 2. The fourth Observation. Secondly, here note, that Christian righteousness and peace are conscionably exercised between man and man, of all those, that fear God, living in his Church: see Isa. 11.6, 7, 9 The Wolf shall dwell with the Lamb— none shall hurt nor destroy in all my holy mountain: see instance, Acts 2.44, 46. and in Paul, Acts 9.1, etc. with vers. 26. and chap. 20. vers. 24. Phil. 2.17. The Reason. The reason hereof, is in the powerful work of God's spirit, which gives them an holy calling; and therein doth subdue corruption so fare, that sin shall not reign in them, to keep them in the practice of injustice and contention, and also doth renew the graces of God's image in the soul, which stands in righteousness and true holiness, and sets them into the kingdom of Christ, which is righteousness and peace, Rom. 14.17. This serves for instruction, admonition, and comfort. The Use for instruction. For instruction: first see by the contrary the fearful case of those, that give themselves to the practice of injustice and contention: they are not yet called of God with an holy calling, but remain in the fearful case of corrupt nature: see, Rom. 1.28, 29, 31. The Use for admonition. For admonition, that as we desire the comfort and assurance of God's salvation, so we conscionably give ourselves to the practice of these virtues, of righteousness and peace towards our brethren. The use for comfort. For comfort to those, that conscionably follow peace and righteousness amongst men: it is a comfortable assurance; that God hath bestowed on them, righteousness and peace with Christ. Vers. 11. Truth shall spring out of the earth, and righteousness shall look down from heaven. The meaning of the words. BEcause the graces and blessings of Christ's kingdom, mentioned in the former verse, be of great worth and comfort, and indeed do manifest the presence of his salvation; therefore doth the Prophet here further insist in two of them, truth and righteousness; letting us know, whence these two shall show themselves, to wit, the one from earth, the other from heaven. For the first, Truth shall spring out of the earth. The truth here spoken of must needs be such, as doth accompany God's salvation in Christ; and that is true and faithful dealing, both in word and deed. The springing of it out of the earth, is the plain and certain evidence thereof, in the lives and actions of men: earth being here put by a Metonymy of the subject, for men that dwell thereon: as if he should have said; It is so certain that mercy and truth shall meet, that truth in word and deed; true and faithful dealing, shall be plainly and plentifully exercised among men, living here on earth. The first Observation. Mark then, that in Christ's kingdom, when God's salvation comes to men, true and faithful dealing in word and deed, shall be plainly and plentifully exercised, here on earth, between man and man. Psal. 15.2. Every citizen of Christ's kingdom, speaketh the truth in his heart. Ezek. 18.9. They that look to live with God, must deal truly. Zech. 8.3. Jerusalem, which is God's true Church, is a city of truth. 1 Cor. 5.8. The Christians Passeover, is not the feast of I after Week, but a life led in sincerity and truth. The first Reason. The reason hereof is plain. First, God, who sends his salvation, is a God of truth, Psal. 31.5. Jer. 10.10. He is truth, Psal. 51.6. and is a teacher of all those, whom he means to save. Isa. 54.13. John 6.35. Now, this is his lesson, that his people should love the truth, Zech. 8.29. and speak the truth every man to his neighbour, verse 16. The second Reason. Secondly, when God sends his salvation to men, he bestows upon them his holy spirit, which is the spirit of truth, John 14.17. leading men into all truth, John 16.13. whose fruit is in all truth, Eph. 5.9. The third Reason. Thirdly, when God sends his salvation to men, he gives them his word of truth, both law and Gospel. For the law see, Mal. 2.6. The law of truth was in his mouth: And the Gospel is the word of truth, Eph. 1.13. This word of truth, being sown in the ground of our heart's, and watered by the dew of grace, springs up and grows, as good seed in good ground. This serves for instruction, admonition, and comfort. The first Use for instruction. For instruction: First see here, how powerful the work of God is in the hearts of men, in the ministry of the word, blessed by the spirit, it changeth their very nature, which of itself is full of all unrighteousness, and loveth lying and untruth: as Rom. 1.29. The second Use for instruction. Secondly, see here, to whom God's salvation is come, whose state God makes glorious in grace, namely, those, that having the word of truth amongst them, receive therewith that blessing of the Spirit, that they love truth in their hearts, and practise it in their lives. Eph. 4.24, 25. But as for those, that make no conscience of true and upright dealing among men, undoubtedly they are out of God's Kingdom and state of grace, having the devil for their God: see, John 8.44. Rev. 21.8. and 22.15. This doth charge a fearful state upon the pillars of Popish Religion, who maintain and practise equivocation and officious lies. See and apply to them, 2 Thess. 2.9, 10. 1 Tim. 6.5. 2 Tim. 3.8. Tit. 1.14. God's true servants in the Ministry can do nothing against the truth, but for it, 2 Cor. 13.8. The Use for admonition. For admonition to every one, that lives in God's Church, that we labour to feel in our hearts the love of the truth, and to express the springing and growing of it in our lives, by our words, and by our deeds: wherein we conscionably, and constantly, both speak the truth, and do the truth, else we shall not feel, nor manifest God's salvation to be come unto us How can he say the God of truth is his God, and hath taught him, or that the spirit of truth is given to him, which leads men into all truth, whose fruit is in all truth, or that the word of truth, as good seed, was sown in his heart, who makes no conscience of truth in word and behaviour. See the Apostles pressing of this duty, Eph. 4.25. upon verse 20, 21, 22, 23, 24. which shows also the way and means, whereby it must be attained. The Use for comfort. For consolation, this makes greatly to all those, that speak the truth, and deal truly with their brothers, in a constant and conscionable course; for this shows, that God's salvation is come unto them, that the God of truth is their God: that the spirit of truth is given them, and the word of truth is sanctified unto them. And righteousness shall look down from heaven.] Here he shows, whence comes that true righteousness, whereby such as fear God in the Church, must be justified and saved, namely, from heaven. This righteousness is the righteousness of Christ, as mediator, who as God is from heaven, and is revealed unto men in the Gospel, which is a doctrine from heaven. as Mat. 21.25. with Gal. 1.11, 12. Mark then, The second Observation. When God's salvation comes to men here on earth, he shows unto them the righteousness of Christ, which is from heaven, Rom. 3.21, 22. The righteousness of God, without the law, is manifested, being witnessed by the law and the Prophets. Even the righteousness of God, which is by the faith of Jesus Christ, unto all, and upon all them, that believe. The Reason. This he doth for the praise of the glory of his grace, in saving sinners, with full satisfaction to his justice. For the unrighteous (as all are by nature. Rom. 3.9, 10.) cannot inherit the Kingdom of God: therefore, what the law could not do, because we could not fulfil it, God provides to be done for his elect in Christ, Rom. 8.3. and, when they believe, makes them partakers of it, that so he that rejoiceth might rejoice in the Lord. 1 Cor. 1.30, 31. for boasting is taken away by the law of faith. Rom. 3.27. This serves for instruction, admonition; and comfort. The first Use for instruction. For instruction two ways. First, it shows unto us the unspeakable riches of God's wisdom, grace, and goodness in Christ Jesus to his elect: of wisdom, in finding out this way of justification to a sinner, which no created nature could of itself ever conceive. 1 Cor. 2.7, 9 of grace and goodness, in bestowing the same freely on his elect, 1 Cor. 1.30. 2 Cor. 5.21. The second Use for instruction. Secondly, this shows us the fearful judgement of blindness of mind, lying on the Church of Rome at this day, who are so fare from beholding this righteousness, which looks down from heaven, that they deride it, calling it a new no-justice, a fantastical apprehension of that which is not, a false faith, and untrue imputation. Rhem. on Rom. 3.22. Nay, they show such enmity unto it, that they pronounce them accursed, who by true faith rest, and rely upon it alone for justification before God. Concil. Trid. Sess. 6. can. 9.10, 11, 12. Of them is that spiritual judgement verified, Rom. 11.8. God hath given them the spirit of slumber, eyes that they should not see, and ears, that they should not hear. They, like Israel, following after the law of righteousness, have not attained to the law of righteousness. Why? Because they seek it not by faith, but as it were by the works of the law, Rom. 9, 31. They being ignorant of God's righteousness, and going about to establish their own righteousness, have not submitted themselves to the righteousness of God: for Christ is the end of the law for righteousness, to every one that believeth. Rom. 10.3, 4. Well therefore may we say of them, Hear, ye despisers, and wonder, and vanish away: the veil hangs over your eyes, when the Gospel is read unto this day. God hath sent upon them strong delusions to believe lies, because they have not received the love of the truth, 2 Thess. 2.9, 10. The use for admonition. For admonition, it serves very effectually to all, that live in the Church of Christ, to take notice of this bounty of God, in revealing by the Gospel this righteousness of Christ, that we may endeavour to walk worthy of the same: First, in labouring to conceive rightly of this righteousness of Christ, which God causeth to look down from heaven. Secondly, in giving all diligence to be made partakers thereof: both these see in Paul, Phil. 3.9, 10, 11. Indeed they are both the gift of God, but yet in the use of means, the word and prayer, wherein we must wait for the work of the spirit, as the poor did at the pool of Bethesda, for the moving of the water, John 5.1, 2, 3. The Use for comfort. For comfort, it makes greatly to those, that know Christ crucified, and do rest and rely upon his merits for justification and salvation. Oh, God hath done great things for them: see Mat. 13.16. Blessed are your eyes, for they see, and your ears, for they hear. Verse 12. Yea, the Lord shall give that which is good: and our land shall yield her increase. The meaning of the words. HEre the Prophet proceedeth in expressing further blessings, that accompany God's salvation in the Kingdom of grace. The blessings here mentioned are of two sorts: First from the Lord, then from the earth. From the Lord, in these words, yea, the Lord will give that which is good: here he meaneth whatsoever gift or blessing is good for his people, whether it be spiritual or temporal: for so largely is the word here used taken in Scripture, as we shall see in the confirmation of the point here to be observed, which is this. The first Observation. When God sends among men his salvation in Christ, he will give to such as fear him, whatsoever is good for them, both for their souls and bodies. See this confirmed, first in general, Exod. 32.19. I will make all my goodness pass before thee, Psal. 34.10. They that seek the Lord shall not lack any good thing. Then particularly, for blessings temporal, Deut. 28.11, 12. The Lord shall make thee plenteous in goods, in the fruit of thy body, and in the fruit of thy cattles, and in the fruit of thy ground. The Lord shall open unto thee his good treasure, the heaven to give thee rain unto thy land in his season, and to bless all the work of thine hand. Also for blessings heavenly and spiritual. Eph. 1.3. He blesseth us with all spiritual blessings in heavenly places, or things in Christ: even with the gift of the Holy Ghost, which is the good thing indeed for the soul. Psal. 143.10. Thy spirit is good: and it is God's gift in the kingdom of grace, Acts 2.16. and 10.44, 45. This is it, which makes the souls of God's people like a watered garden, Jer. 31.12. Herewith doth he satiate the souls of the Priests with fatness, and satisfy the people with goodness, vers. 14. as Paul was persuaded of the Romans, that they were full of goodness, Rom. ●5. 14. and of the Corinthians, that in every thing they were enriched by him, and came behind in no gift. 1 Cor. 1.5.7. The first Reason. The reason hereof is threefold. First, to make known the riches of his mercy and goodness in Christ: how well he is pleased in him, that with him he will g●ve all manner of blessings, Rom. 8.32. The second Reason. Secondly, to draw men unto him, by beholding the abundance of blessings, which accompany the receiving of Christ by faith: for, though many times they want the possession, yet the right of all God's blessings, belong to them that are in Christ, 1 Cor. 3.21, 22, 23. Thus was Simon Magus drawn to be baptised, Acts 8.13. As, Hest. 8.17. The Jews had joy and gladness, a feast and a good day: and many of the people of the land became Jew's. The third Reason. Thirdly, to keep those with him, that come in sincerity, and to move them to cleave fast unto the Lord, in faith and love: as John 6.68. To whom shall we go? thou hast the words of eternal life. So Paul reasoneth, Rom. 8.31, 32, 35. What shall we say to these things? etc. who shall separate us from the love of Christ? etc. This serves for instruction, admonition, and comfort. The first Use for instruction. For instruction two ways: First, it opens unto us the true and right way, whereby we may receive from God, that which is good. Few men doubt of his sufficiency and ability, but how they should be interested thereunto, and partake thereof, they know not. Well, mark here, God's good gifts come with his salvation in Christ: therefore seek the Lord in Christ, and thou shalt lack nothing that is good: Psal. 34.10. To this agrees, Matth. 6.33. First seek the kingdom of God, and his righteousness: and all these things shall be added unto you: For godliness hath the promise of both kind of blessings. 1 Tim. 4.8. in the means whereof we must endeavour: as, John 4.10. Ezek. 47.1. compared with Isa. 55.1, etc. Object. Such as take this course are yet in much want. Ans. It may be so for outward things: For the disciple is not above his master: now the son of man hath not whereon to lay his head: Matth. 8.20. and the promises of temporal blessings are to be understood with the exception of the cross. Yet know, that God's grace is sufficient: as 2 Cor. 12.9. compared with 2 Cor. 4.16. And in the blessings of grace, he makes supply to all temporal wants: as, Phil. 4.11, etc. The second Use for instruction. Secondly, see here plain evidence of the world's unbelief. Lord who hath believed our report? Isa. 53.1. Are men persuaded that good gifts from God, both temporal and spiritual, accompany his salvation in Christ? No surely, for than they would labour first to become religious, because that is the way to get God's favour in Christ: as, John 14.6. Solomon saith, Prov. 19.6. Every man is a friend to him that giveth gifts: that is, seeks to be in his favour: but few take this course. Nay, they rather seek to the God of this world the devil: for so indeed they do, that seek to thrive by ungodly courses, as oppression, lying, stealing, and the like. The first Use for admonition. For admonition it serves two ways. First, to natural men living in the Church, that they take notice whence good things come, both spiritual and corporal, and thereupon labour for that estate, whereby they may be interested thereto. Hereto two things are required, repentance from dead works: for sins withhold good things, Jer. 5.25. and faith in Christ: for so is Christ himself ours, and all things with him. If any say, they, that regard not these things, speed well in the world: let them consider, whether here they have not their portion: as, Psal. 17.14. and, Luke 16, 25. Thou in thy life-time receivedst thy good things. But for the best blessings they have no part in them, while they live in sin, and want faith: as, John 14.17. Acts 8.21. They have starved souls in pampered and well clad bodies. The Use for admonition. Secondly, this must stir up the godly, who have received good things from God; to be careful to continue in God's goodness: as, Rom. 11.22. which is by keeping faith and a good conscience, 1 Tim. 1.18, 19 Heb. 10.39. The Use for comfort. For comfort, this makes greatly to the godly in worldly wants: for certainly God will give that which is good: and though the outward man perish, yet is the inward man renewed daily: 2 Cor. 4.16. and we rejoice in hope of the glory of God. Rom. 5.2. Jam. 1.9. The brother of low degree must rejoice in his exaltation with God: for, being a believer in Christ Jesus, he is rich in God, though poor in the world: as, Jam. 25. and, Rev. 2.9. I know thy poverty, but thou art rich. And our land shall yield her increase.] The second blessing accompanying God's salvation in the kingdom of grace, here assured to those, that fear God: and it is merely temporal, concerning the plentiful increase of the fruits of the earth, where they live, that fear God. Mark then, in this part of their acknowledgement, two things: First, their title to the land: secondly, the blessing, whereof they assure themselves from it. The second Observation. For the first: God's people call the land of Canaan, where they dwell, their land, their own land: Verse 9 That glory may dwell in our land. 2 Chron. 2.16. the land of Israel. The Reason. It was God's gifts to them and their progenitors by covenant: as, Gen. 12.7. and, 13.15. Psal. ●4. 3, 2. 2 Chr. 6.38. Judg. 11.24. 2 Chr. 20.6, 7. The Use for admonition. And if we look for blessing and comfort, in the place where we live, as the Israelites here assure themselves, we must make sure we have good title to it from the Lord: for there is small hope of God's blessing to accompany the devils getting: as 1 Kings 21.19. Jer. 22.13. Micha 2.1, 2. Hab. 2.9, 10. Isa, 5.8. The third Observation. The second thing to be here observed is purposely intended: namely, when God's salvation in Christ comes among a people, it brings with it plentiful increase of the fruits of the earth: see Psal. 67.2, 6. Psal. 72.16. Salomons kingdom, there spoken of, was a type of Christ's kingdom. See the truth hereof by God's special blessings accompanying those, that in sincerity have received the covenant: as, Gen. 13.2, 6. Abraham was very rich in cattle, in silver, and gold: their substance was so great, that the land was not able to bear them: and Chap. 24.35. The Lord hath blessed my Master greatly, and he is become great, etc. Yea, also Isaac sowed and received an hundred fold, Gen. 26.12. Also Jacob was a blessing to Laban, and himself increased exceedingly. Gen. 30.27, 43. The Reason. The reason hereof is this: God's salvation bringeth to men reconciliation in Christ: for, as he is God's salvation, Is. 49.6. so, in him God reconciles the world to himself, 2 Cor. 5.19. Col. 1.20. Rom. 5.10. And hence comes a double benefit tending to plenty. First, the removal of the curse, which Adam's sin brought even upon the ground, Gen. 3.17. (for though want may befall the godly, yet not as a curse) Gal. 3.13. it is only (as sickness is, 1 Cor. 11.32.) a chastisement and correction. Secondly, hereby a land is entitled to the special blessings of God's providence, that bring plenty: as, Deut. 11.9, 10, 11, 12. And no marvel, for if he have given Christ, how shall he not with him give us all things? Rom. 8.32. This serves for instruction, admonition, and comfort. The first Use for instruction. For instruction two ways. First, here we may see, that the earthly blessings of God's providence, are attendants on the heavenly blessings of his grace; great plenty doth accompany true piety: when men first seek God's kingdom, and his righteousness, all outward things needful shall be ministered unto them. Matth. 6.33. Godliness hath the promise of all manner of blessings, both temporal and eternal. 1 Tim. 4.8. This we may see, as before in Abraham, Isaac and Jacob, so manifested afterward to God's people by special promise. Leu. 26.3, 4, 5. If ye walk in my statutes— I will give you rain in due season, and the land shall yield her increase, and the trees of the field shall yield their fruit, etc. And as he spoke with his mouth so he performed indeed, unto David a man according to his own heart; whom God advanced from a Shepherd's crook to a Sceptre, Psal. 78.70, 71. and raised him on high, 2 Sam. 23.1. and gave him great substance: as, 1 Chron 29.3, 4. But more apparently to Solomon, while he continued upright with God: see, 1 Chron. 29.25. and 2 Chron. 1.12, 14, 15. And to Jehoshaphat, who walked in the ways of David, God gave riches and honour in abundance. And the right hereof still continueth to all the godly: All are yours, 1 Gor. 3.21, 22. If at any time it be otherwise with God's people, it is either for correction of sin; as, Jer. 5.25. or for trial of grace, as in Job. The second Use for instruction. Secondly, see here the error of many worldlings, who do not once think, that the yearly increase of fruit from the earth, and from trees, doth depend upon the special will and providence of God, appointing the same every year, but either, like mere naturalists, ascribe it to that virtue and power, which God gave them by creation, or more profanely attribute it to the aspects and influences of stars and planets. It is true, God gave virtue and power in the beginning to the earth, and to fruitful trees, to bring forth fruit, according to their kind, Gen. 1.11, 12. And the sun, moon, and stars, by heat and light, do work upon the earth, and trees that grow thereon; but not so, as that some of them, by a more favourable aspect, should cause plenty, and others, by a malignant aspect, should cause scarcity, No, no, men's behaviour in sin, or in obedience, do work more powerfully for scarcity, and plenty, than any stars: as is plain, Deut. 28. For admonition, it makes two ways. The first Use for admonition. First, that they, who look for plentiful increase from the earth and trees, in the place where they live, do break off the course of sin, which brings scarcity. Psal. 107.34. Jer. 5.25. and labour to become truly godly, in receiving. believing, and obeying the Word of God, which doth give title to the blessing of plenty: as, Levit. 26.2, 3, 4. 1 Tim. 4.8. The second Use for admonition. Secondly, that we, who live in God's Church, where the word of salvation is made known, beware of being barren in grace: lest the earth and trees that grow thereon, rise up in judgement against us: for they, by Christ's coming in the gospel, received by faith, become more fruitful unto men, Psal. 67.5, 6. How then shall we escape, if we continue barren of grace in heart, and obedience in life towards God: Consider Christ's cursing the barren figtree, Mat. 21.19. and his command to cut that down, which kept the ground barren, Luke 13.6, 7. also the fearful state of those, that be barren ground to the Lord, Heb. 6.7, 8. add also, Matth. 11.21, 23. If any ask, how we may be fruitful to God for his salvation in Christ? I answer, by labouring to add grace unto grace: as, 2 Pet. 1.5, 7, 9 And amongst other fruits of godliness, beseeming the gospel, look to these two. First, the maintenance of God's worship and service, which hath the promise of plenty: Prov. 3.9, 10. Hag. 2.17, 18, 19 compared with, Hag. 1.9, 11. Mal. 3.10. Secondly, the charitable relieving of the poor. Deut. 15.10, 11. Prov. 11.24, 25. Heb. 6.10. 2 Cor. 9, 6, 10. The Use for comfort. For comfort, this makes greatly to all those, that conscionably receive, and obey the word of salvation, the holy gospel; undoubtedly the outward blessings of God's providence shall be ministered unto them, so fare as it is good for them. See, Psal. 23.1, 2, 5, 6. Psal. 34.10. & 37.3. And when there shall be any defect or want for temporal things, God will make supply unto them, by the comforts of his favour in Christ, and grace of his spirit: see Jam. 1.9. and 2.5. Whereupon with Paul they are taught, both to be full, and to be hungry, both to abounc, and to suffer need, etc. Phil. 4.13. Vers. 13. Righteousness shall go before him, and he shall set her steps in the way. The meaning of the words. IN these words he doth the third time give instance in a special virtue; accompanying God's salvation in Christ; namely, justice, or righteousness, which Vers. 10. he said kissed with peace: First, in Christ, who is the true Melchisedech, and King of Salem, Heb. 7.2. that is, King of righteousness and of peace: then in all those, that are his redeemed and saved, Rom. 5.1. Secondly, lest men should mistake in a grace and virtue of that necessity and worth, Vers. 11. he shows whence it shows itself, namely, from heaven; and so it is not a mere humane civil righteousness, but the righteousness of God in Christ: as, Rom. 10.3, 4. Phil. 3.9. with the fruit thereof inherent righteousness renewed by the spirit. Thirdly, that men might better know the excellency of God's salvation in Christ, and discern where it comes, here he shows, that this virtue shall show itself in Christ's kingdom, going before him, and ever accompanying him, where he brings salvation. Righteousness shall go before him: that is, the publishing of justice and righteousness shall go before Christ, when he brings salvation. He shall set her steps in the way: that is, Christ shall set the steps of righteousness in the way that he goes with salvation: which seems to import, both evidence, and settled continuance of the practice of virtue in the kingdom of Christ, where God's salvation comes. The first Observation. Here then mark these two points: First, by collection from this verse, compared with the former, that Christ Jesus, who brings salvation to his Church, is Jehovah: that is, true and very God: for he, before whose face righteousness walketh, is he that bringeth salvation: that this verse saith, compared with the 9, and he is Jehovah, vers. 12. for to no other can the affix here used be referred: 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 and Jer. 23.6. and 33.16. in the title there given to Christ it is most plain: The Lord our righteousness: and 1 John 5.20. Is. 9.6. Rom. 9.6. Christ is over all God blessed for ever. The Reason. And needs he must be so, because he was to justify, to sanctify, and so to save: else none could be saved: as 1 Cor. 6.9. Rev. 21.27. Now, no creature could do these things, Rom. 8.3.33. therefore Is. 43.11. I the Lord, and beside me no Saviour. This serves for instruction, admonition, and comfort. The first Use for instruction. For instruction. First, against the Arrians, that denied Christ to be God. But Jehovah is God. Now Christ is Jehovah. The second Use for instruction. Secondly, it shows us the depth of man's misery, that by no created power could be delivered, Acts 4.12. Is. 63.5. The resemblance of a captive unransomable, but by the bondage of the King's only son, doth plainly illustrate our natural misery. For admonition two ways. First, to the wicked, that they take heed of such a course of life, The first Use for admonition. whereby they stand in opposition and enmity against Christ: for Christ is God, and so it is a fearful thing to fall into his hand, Heb. 10.31. Who hath hardened himself against God, and hath prospered? Job 9.4. Now it is true, that all sin separates, Is. 59.2. and therefore they must break off the course of every sin: and in particular, in a more special manner, both repent of for the time past, and for the time to come beware of these four sins. First, ignorance of God in Christ: for in the knowledge of him stands eternal life, John 15.3. and therefore not to know him must needs be dangerous, not only shameful, 1 Cor. 15.34. but damnable, 2 Thess. 1.7, 8. Secondly, hardness of heart, to be obstinate in sin: as Deut. 29.19, 20. see Mark 3.5. He looked round about upon them with anger, being grieved for the hardness of their hearts. Such have not God's spirit, which takes away the stony heart, Ezek. 36.26. and so are none of his, Rom. 8.9. Thirdly, persecuting Gods holy Religion, or the professors of it, Acts 9.4, 5. 1 Thess. 2.15, 16. Fourthly, Idolatry, that stirs up jealousy in the Lord against men, 1 Cor. 10.22. What husband can endure the adultery of his Wife? See Prov. 6.34, 35. Jealousy is the rage of a man, etc. what then is the Lords jealousy, which he professeth is kindled by idolatry? Exod. 20.5. The second Use for admonition. Secondly, to those, that profess the faith and lay claim to redemption, & salvation by Christ Jesus, they must endeavour themselves to walk worthy of the Lord unto all pleasing, Col. 1.10. And for this end, they must first labour to partake of the main benefits of Christ's incarnation, which are redemption, adoption, justification, and sanctification in this life. Now our redemption is showed by leaving sin, 1 Pet. 1.18. for we are redeemed from our vain conversation. And here consider, and eschew the ordinary abuse of the time, set apart to celebrate the memory of our Saviour's nativity: how unworthy it is of the Lords coming, nay clean contrary, see 1 John 3.8. and 1 Pet. 4.3. Our adoption comes hence, Gal. 4.5. Now, such as God takes to be his sons should live in obedience unto him, 1 Pet. 1.14. etc. 2 Cor. 7.1, 2. Our justification is by faith, which purifies the heart, Acts 15.9. and brings peace with God, Rom. 5.1. Our Sanctification is by the spirit, which reneweth the soul into the graces of God's image, Gal. 5.22. The first Use for comfort. For comfort. First, against temptation: for God's work is perfect, Deut. 32.4. and in him we are complete, Col. 1.10. and therefore neither need to despair through guilt of sin, nor want of righteousness. The second Use for comfort. Secondly, against persecution. Consider 2 Tim. 2.12. if we suffer, we shall also reign with him, Acts 18.9, 10. Be not afraid, but speak, and hold not thy peace: for I am with thee, and no man shall set on thee to hurt thee. And do as they did, Dan. 3.16, 17. say, we are not careful to answer thee in this matter. Our God; whom we serve, is able to deliver us, and he will deliver us. Remember Rom. 8.18. The sufferings of this present time, are not worthy to be compared, with the glory which shall be revealed in us, 2 Cor. 4.17. Our light affliction, which is but for a moment, worketh for us a fare more exceeding and eternal weight of glory. The second observation. The second thing here to be considered is purposely intended. That righteousness doth ever accompany Christ Jesus, where he brings salvation: it goes before him, and he sets her steps in the way that he walks, Is 9.7. He sits upon the throne of David, to order it, and to establish it, with judgement, and with justice for ever. Is. 11.4, 5. with righteousness shall he judge the poor. Righteousness shall be the girdle of his loins. Heb. 1.8. A Sceptre of righteousness is his Sceptre. Psal. 96.10, 13. He shall judge the world righteously— with righteousness: therefore he tells John the Baptist, let it be so now, for so it becometh us to fulfil all righteousness, Mat. 3.15. that is, to do every thing required of us by God. The first Reason. The reason hereof is twofold. First, because Christ is Jehovah, true and very God, and so must needs be ever attended with righteousness, which is an essential, and insepearable property of the true God, Psal. 145.17. The Lord is righteous in all his ways; Rom. 3.4, 5. Is God unrighteous? God forbidden. The second Reason. Secondly, Christ as mediator, God man, is called of God the father in righteousness, Is. 42.6. and he is faithful unto him that called him, Heb. 3.2. being, even in his manhood, filled with the gifts and graces of the spirit above measure, Is. 42.1 John 3.34. This serves for instruction, admonition, and comfort. The first Use for instruction. For instruction two ways. First, that the ordinances of Religion, which are instituted by Christ in his Church, and the observance thereof required both of Ministers and people, be all most just and righteous. When Moses the servant of the Lord, had delivered to the Jews laws and ordinances from the Lord, he commends them all for righteous, and thereupon presseth the people to conscionable obedience; saying, What nation is there so great, that hath statutes, and judgements, so righteous as all this law, which I set before thee this day— Only take heed to thyself, and keep thy soul diligently, lest thou forget, etc.— Deut. 4.8, 9 Why then may we not say the same of the ordinances of Christ? who is faithful as Moses in all the house of God, and herein above Moses a servant, that he is a son over his own house, Heb. 3.2, 3, 6. Now Christ's ordinances for salvation, are the ministry of the word, the administration of the Sacraments, and prayer, with Church discipline. See Mat. 28.18, 19, 20. All power is given unto me in heaven and in earth: therefore go and teach all nations, baptising them in the name of the Father, the Son, and the Holy Ghost: there he enjoineth the preaching of the word, and baptism. The Lord's Supper, or holy Communion, he had instituted a little before his passion, Mat. 26.26. etc. And the exercise of public prayers, to sanctify God's ordinances, in obtaining blessings, and removing judgements, and praising God, he appointed himself, Mat. 18.19, 20. John 16.23, 24. Mat. 7.7. and by his Apostles, 1 Tim. 2.1.2. I will that prayers and supplications, etc.— be made for all men. For discipline, see Mat. 18.15. etc. And for the right and reverend use of these, he gave gifts unto men, by his spirit, some to be Prophets, some Apostles, for the planting of the Church, others to be Pastors and Teachers, for the going on of that building, the foundation whereof is Jesus Christ: See Eph▪ 4.8, 9, 11, 12. 1 Cor. 12.28. These are Christ's ordinances, and the observance hereof both by Ministers and people is plainly required. For Ministers see, 1 Cor. 4.2. Moreover it is required of the disposers, or stewards, that a man be found faithful: which faithfulness stands, in giving unto every one his portion in due season. Luke 12.42, 43.46. That is, judgements to the wicked, and mercies to the godly, after instruction, See, 2 Tim. 2.25, 26. and 4.1, 2. for instruction, for rebuke, 1 Tim. 4.20. with Psal. 11.6. and 75.8. and for comforting the godly, see, Isaiah 40.1, 2. Colos. 4.8. 1 Thes. 5.14. warn the unruly, comfort the feeble minded: and for necessity, 1 Cor. 9.16. Then for the people, the necessity of their subjection, and observance, is plain. Luke 10.10, 13, 16. with, Prov. 13.13. who so despiseth the word shall be destroyed. Prov. 28.9. He that turneth away his ear from hearing the law, even his prayer shall be abominable. The charge of Christ, in all his Epistles, to the seven Churches of Asia, that he that hath an ear to hear must hear; what the spirit saith unto the Churches, Rev. 2.7, etc. shows the same; besides the allurement from benefits thereby; as, Isa. 55.3. Hear, and your soul shall live, Rom. 10.17. Faith cometh by hearing, and hearing by the word of God: it is the word of his grace. Acts 10.32. And for the sacraments, the legal commination, for neglect, or contempt of circumcision, Gen 17.14. and of the Passeover, Exod. 12.24. with Numb. 9.13. shows in equity the necessity of due partaking of the ●●vangelicall Sacraments. And for prayer, the neglect thereof is the brand of Atheist. Psal. 14.1.4, and a sin liable to a grievous curse. Psal. 79.6. Power out thy wrath upon the heathen, that have not known thee: and upon the kingdoms, that have not called upon thy name. And he, that shall refuse subjection to the censure of the Church, must be cast out as an heathen. Matth. 18.17. The weight of their censure, following God's word, see Verse 18. Verily, I say unto you, whatsoever ye shall bind on earth, shall be bound in heaven, and whatsoever ye shall lose on earth, shall be loosed in heaven. 1 Cor. 5.3, 4, 5. I have judged already— in the name of our Lord Jesus Christ— to deliver such a one unto Satan, for the destruction of the flesh, that the spirit may be saved in the day of the Lord Jesus. The second Use for instruction. Secondly, see here also, that the difference observed by Christ Jesus, as well about the means of grace, denying it some, and vouchsafing it to others, at least for a time: as, Matth. 10.5, 6. Go not into the way of the Gentiles, and into any city of the Samaritans enter ye not. But go rather to the lost sheep of the house of Israel: and Act: 16.6. they were forbidden of the Holy Ghost to preach the word in Asia: but vers. 9, 10. they endeavoured to go into Macedonia, assuredly gathering, that the Lord had called them to preach the Gospel there: as also, for the gift of grace itself to some, and the denial of it to others, amongst whom the means is sent; as we may see, Mat. 13.11. It is given to you to know the mysteries of the Kingdom of heaven, but to them it is not given. See, I say, that in both these is divine justice; for they are the ways of Christ, and therefore just. The first Use for admonition. For admonition two ways. First, to the wicked, that they consider their fearful and dangerous state, wherein they stand, being indeed enemies to righteousness, both in the affections of their hearts, and the actions of their lives: as Paul told Elymas, Acts 13.10 Thou child of the devil, thou enemy of all righteousness. Now if Christ's ways be righteous ways, which they oppose, then will it be a righteous thing with God to judge them, as he threatneth. 1 Cor. 6.9. Know ye not that the unrighteous shall not inherit the Kingdom of God? They must know, that if in this life they do not by true repentance prevent it, hereafter under God's severe judgements they shall with Pharaoh, when it is too late, acknowledge the righteousness thereof Exod. 9.27. I have sinned this time: the Lord is righteous, I and my people are wicked. The second use for admonition. Secondly, to the godly, that they give evidence of their approbation of the righteousness of Christ's ordinances, and thereon so subject themselves thereto, that they approve themselves wise Virgins, who have the oil of grace in the vessels of their hearts. Matth. 25.4. and good and faithful servants, who have well improved their master's talents, vers. 16, 17. with 20, 23. moved thereto by the fearful state of the foolish Virgins, vers. 8, 9 and the idle servant, vers. 24, etc. The use for comfort. For comfort, this makes greatly to all those, that suffer persecution for righteousness sake: for, as God is righteous in this kind of trial and correction upon his children, Psal. 119.75. I know, O Lord, that thy judgements are right: and that thou in very faithfulness hast afflicted me: so he will approve himself righteous in an happy deliverance. Seeing it is a righteous thing with God, to recompense tribulation to them that trouble you, and to you that are troubled, rest with us, 2 Thes. 1.6, 7. THE GREAT CHARTER OF THE CHURCH. CONTAINING, A Catalogue of gracious Privileges, granted unto it by the King of HEAVEN. OR, AN EXPOSITION OF THE LXXXVII Psalms. By Mr. THOMAS PIERSON, late rector of Brompton-Brian, in the County of Hereford. LONDON, Printed for Philemon Stephens, at the gilded Lion in Paul's Churchyard. 1647. TO THE RIGHT VIRTUOUS and religious, my most honoured Lady, the Lady ANNE WHITNEY. MADAM, ALthough the eminence of your well known worth will admit no addition from any expressions, that I by my tongue or pen can make, yet I hope your Ladyship will give me leave, as well as I can, to improve the evidence of mine own unfeigned thankfulness by a public acknowledgement of the dutiful respect, wherein I stand obliged unto you, for your many undeserved favours unto me and mine, whereof I may sooner cease to be, then suffer ingrateful oblivion to blot the memory out of my mind. Nor will it (I am confident) be any grief of heart, or occasion of offence unto your Ladyship, that I take this opportunity, at once both to tell the world how much I am indebted unto you, and to entitle your Ladyship in a special manner unto a part of his works, of whom you not only had a reverend esteem whilst he lived, but likewise still preserve his memory as precious. I doubt not but you, and many others, have long ago thought it high time that he, whose happy hand was an instrument to bring many posthume works of Mr. Perkins to the Press, and after to reduce the scattered pieces into three large velumes, should have the like measure measured unto him again, wherewith he had meted to another. And so it had been, but that there were some obstructions in the passage to the Press, the womb of printed books. Those rubs being now removed, and his Expositions of four select Psalms ready to be offered to the public view, I am bold to present this unto you, and under your name to commend it to the use of all those children of the Church, who enjoying the comforts are willing to maintain the credit of those great privileges, that are granted to it, and would be as loath to forfeit, as they are to forgo their Charter. Amongst whom your Ladyship's sincere affection and zeal to religion entitles you to so high an esteem, that they unto whom you are best known will soon conceive, that it is not resolution only, but reason also, which moveth me to bind your name as a frontlet on the forehead of this book, and to underwrite myself. Your Ladyship's most humble servant CHRISTOPHER HARVEY. AN EXPOSITION Of the 87 Psalm. Psalm 87. A Psalm or song for the sons of Korah. Verse 1. His foundation is in the holy Mountains, etc. IN this Psalm the holy Ghost doth plainly set out sundry Privileges and prerogatives of God's Church, The scope and general division of the whole Psalm. wherein she hath surpassing advancement, above all other places, states and conditions of the people in the world beside. Whether it were penned after the return of the people from the captivity of Babylon, for their encouragement, being but very few, and for their comfort, being under great contempt, from enemies round about them (as some godly and learned interpreters do think) is not set down, and so not certain? Yet sure it is, this Psalm was penned for the comfort and encouragement of the godly, in such times, as the Church is in danger, misery, and calamity; by the consideration of her founder, which is the Lord Jehovah, verse 1. of his special affection towards her, werse 2. of the glorious things, which are spoken of her, verse3. as great increase and enlargement, by the calling and conversion of foreign nations, verse 4. great honour, by the regeneration or effectual calling of many in her, and great safety, by the Lords own establishment of her, verse 5. and great renown, by inrowling her true members in his book, verse 6. Lastly, joy and comfort unspeakable, by the cheerful service of God, and the well-springs, or fountains of saving graces in her, The Title of the Psalm explained. verse 7. Before this Psalm is this title. A Psalm or song for the sons of Korah. Which Title shows two things; the use of it in God's service, and the parties, by whom it should be used. For the use, it is a Psalm or Song, or a Psalm and Song, that is, an holy hymn, which was both to be played on their musical instruments, and to be sung with voice together. And here the musical instruments were to lead the voice, as Psalm 67.1. and 68.1. Sometime the voice was to lead the instruments, as Psalm 48.1. A Song or Psalm. Hereon we need not long insist, because this kind of singing was peculiar to the Tabernacle and Temple, and so ended in Christ. as Heb. 7.11, with 19 as Colos. 2.17. Yet thus much it showeth; 1. Observation. That God required joy and gladness in his service, therefore would he have instruments of joy used in his service, which David prepared, 1 Chron, 23.5. and 1 Chron. 25.1. And he bids all his people to rejoice in their feasts, Deut. 16.11.14. which feasts did represent the lives of Christians. And in Evangelicall worship he requires making melody to the Gored in their hearts, Ephes. 5.19. The reason is great; for in God's service we have society with God, The Reason. which is a just cause of exceeding joy. Herein God vouchsafeth us evidence of his special favour: and if we shall take no delight therein, it argues fearfell contempt which God cannot endurt without revenge, as Deut. 27.47, 48. Because thou servedst not the Lord thy God with joyfulness, and with gladness of heart, for the abundance of all things: Therefore thou shalt serve thine enemies, which the Lord shall send against thee, in hunger, and in thirst, and in nakedness, and in want of all things, and he shall put a yoke of iron upon thy neck, until he have destroyed thee. Whereto add Amos 8.5.11. The Use. This should move us to stir up in our hearts, and to express in our behaviours this spiritual joy in God's service. To this end we have need of the spirit, to sanctify us, which will make us to rejoice in God's Word, as one that findeth a great spoil, Psal. 119.162. And conceiving it to be the food of our souls, let us labour to hunger and thirst after it, and then with Job shall we esteem it above our appointed food, Job 23.12. And when we know God to be our God, and the fountain of blessing to us, we shall come before him with gladness in prayer, Psal. 100.2. and our mouth shall praise him with joyful lips, Psalm 63.5. The second thing to be noted in the dedication, is the parties, by whom it is to be used. The sons of Korah. These sons of Korah were the posterity of that rebellious Levite, who with Dathan and Abiram rebelled against Moses and Aaron, Numb. 16. which Korah was consumed with fire, verse 35. compared with 17. Howbeit, there were of his sons, that died not, Numb. 26.11. departing, as it seemeth, from their father's Tent, as all were commanded, Numb. 16.24.29. And of these is numbered a family of the Korathites, Numb. 26.58. of whom came Samuel the Prophet, and Heman his Nephew, 1 Chron. 6.33. a great singer, 1 Chron. 25.4, 5. Here than we may observe, 2. Observation. that the sons, that is, the posterity of wicked and rebellious Korah, have an honourable place in God's sacred and solemn service, for to them sundry of David's Psalms are commended, as Psal. 42.44, 45, 46. etc. which is no small honour. The Reason. No doubt, David saw them, being by place and birth Levites, to be faithful and diligent in their place, and thus renowns them to all posterity, that he composeth special Psalms, for their ministry, in the solemn service of God. Use 1 Here see the verifying of God's word, for the comfort of all godly children, that the son shall not bear the iniquity of the father, Ezek. 18.14, 17, 20. if he see his father's sins and turn from them. But, 1. Objection. the Lord is a jealous God, visiting the iniquities of the Fathers upon the children, Exod. 20.5. That is, Answer. enquiring for the sin of the Fathers among the children, and if he find it there, then pays he them home. Achans sons and daughters are stoned and burnt for their father's sacrilege, 2. Objection. Josh. 7.24, 25. and Dathans and abiram's little children are swallowed up Numbers 16.27. For aught we know, they might be of years of discretion, Answer. and privy to their father's stealth. When little ones die in the punishment of their father's sin, God lays not the punishment of the father's sin upon the children, but to make the father's sin more odious, doth then bring upon the children the fruit of their own original corruption, which is death determined upon all flesh, as appears, Gen. 2.17. compared with Rom. 5.12. As a creditor, that hath both the father and the son debtors unto him, may upon the father's provocation, lay the forfeiture upon both, being both in his danger. Use 2 Secondly, here is special encouragement to the children of wicked parents, to become godly and faithful in their places. In some sense they are the sons of strangers; for the wicked are estranged from the womb, Psal. 58.3 yet if they have their father's sins, and become faithful to the Lord, here is comfort for them, in the honour of Korah's posterity. See Isai. 56.3, 6, 7. Let not the son of the stranger that joineth himself to the Lord, say, the Lord hath utterly separated me from his people. For the sons of the stranger, that joined themselves to the Lord, to serve him, and to love the name of the Lord, to be his servants, etc. Even them will bring to my holy Mountain, and make them joyful in my house of prayer, etc. For them that honour me I will honour, saith the Lord, 1 Sam. 2.30. Thus much for the Title; the Psalm itself followeth, Verse 1. His foundation is in the holy Mountains. The meaning of the words. THat is, God founded his holy City, and Sanctuary, among the holy Mountains of Judea, even on Mount Moriah, 2 Chron. 3.1. and Mount Zion, Psal. 48.2. For the relative here used, hath the Lord, named in the next verse, for his antecedent, to which it is most fitly and properly referred, according to our translation, wherewith, among variety of references by interpreters, I rest best satisfied. In the words so understood, two things are contained, First, the author and founder of the Church, shadowed out by the holy City and Sanctuary at Jerusalem. Secondly, the seat thereof. For the first, The true Church, 1. Observation. typified by the holy City and Temple at Jerusalem, is a spiritual building of Gods own founding and making. Here it is called his foundation. And, in regard of him founding it, it is called his Tabernacle, Rev. 21.3. and the holy City coming down from heaven, Rev. 21.2. Jerusalem from above, Gal. 4.26. This is that City, in the glory of it, which the Patriarches sought, whose builder and maker is God, Heb. 11.10. This is most plain, if we consider, 1. the foundation Christ jesus: For other foundation can no man lay, saith St. Paul, 1 Cor. 3.11. and God himself saith, he layeth this, Isaiah 28.16. Thus saith the Lord God, Behold I lay in Zion for a foundation a stone, a tried stone, a precious corner stone, a sure foundation. 2. The upper building Christians, 1. Pet. 2.4.5. To whom coming, as unto a living stone, disallowed indeed of men, but chosen of God, and precious, ye also, as living stones, are built up, a spirit all house. 2. The bvilders, both efficient, and instrumental, God and his Ministers, 1 Cor. 3.9. For we are labourers together with God; ye are God's husbandry, ye are God's building. The reason is, The Reason. the praise of the glory of his grace, among his elect, and chosen people: For here God sets his name, Deutr. 14.24. and will be glorified in his people, Isaiah 49.3. This serves for instruction, concerning the stability of the Church; The use for instruction. not only in the whole, as God's building, against which the gates of hell shall not be able to prevail, Mat. 16.18. but in every true member of it, as God's workmanship in Christ jesus, Ephes. 2.10. For it is God that establisheth us in Christ, 2 Cor. 1.21. Christ, as a shepherd, will not lose one sheep. My sheep hear my voice, and I know them, and they follow me. And I give unto them eternally life, and they shall never perish, Neither shall any man pluck them out of my hand, john 10.27, 28. while I was with them in the world, I kept them in thy name; those that thou gavest me I have kept, and none of them is lost but the son of perdition, john 17.12. He being their head, and they being his members, 1. Cor. 12.27. will he suffer them to be pulled away? Nay, he is the saviour of his body, Ephes. 5.23. The first use for admonition. It serves for admonition likewise; First for Ministers, in regard of their doctrine, whereby they are workers together with God, 1 Cor. 3.9. compared with 2 Cor. 6.1. They must not be ignorant, nor negligent, but wise and faithful, in this great work of spiritual building. The foundation being laid, which is jesus Christ, they must take heed what they build thereupon, for every man's work shall be made manifest, the day shall declare it, of what sort it is, 1 Cor. 3.10, etc. The second use for admonition. Secondly, for God's people; every one must suffer himself to be wrought upon in the ministry of the word, to be hewn and squared and fitted, to lie upon Christ: which we then are, when we be brought to leave sin, by true repentance, to live in Christ, by true faith, and to walk in new obedience, in the course of our lives, thereby testifying the truth of our faith and repentance. Therefore with St. Paul, Heb. 13.22. I beseech you brethren, suffer the word of exhortation. The second thing to be here observed is, the seat of God's building, where he lays the foundation of his holy City and Temple, namely, in the holy mountains; which may be understood generally of the land of Canaan, which was a mountainous country, Deut. 11.11. God's inheritance chosen for his own people, Psal. 97.1. compared with Psal. 47.4. called his holy border, Psal. 78.54. that land which he bordered out for his people, Numb. 34.3, etc. Or more particularly of the Mountains Zion and Moriah, whereon God by his special providence caused Jerusalem his holy City, and the Temple his holy Sanctuary, to be seated and built. And these mountains are called holy, not for any holiness, or sanctity inherent in the soil, or ground; but first, from God's presence, who chose chief hills for his seat to dwell in, as Psal. 68.16. Psal. 74.2. Psal. 132.13. Is. 8.18. and Zechar. 8.3. Thus saith the Lord, I am returned unto Zion, and will dwell in the midst of Jerusalem, and Jerusalem shall be called a City of truth, and the Mountain of the Lord of hosts, The holy Mountain, Secondly, from that holy use and employment, whereto he put these mountains, for hereon was built the holy City, Dan. 9.16. and the holy Sanctuary, or Temple, 2 Chron. 3.1. Psalm. 78.68, 69. Mark then, God builds Jerusalem the holy city, and the Temple his holy sanctuary, on the holy mountains, Zion, 2. Observation. and Moriah: the places before quoted show it plainly; with Psal. 122.1. etc. The reason hereof is twofold; First, Reason 1. to let his people know, that their God, with whom they enter covenant, is a most holy God; for the very place of his spiritual abode, and of his holy solemn service, is an holy place, Psal. 99.9. Exalt the Lord our God, and worship at his holy hill, for the Lord our God is holy, Josh. 24.19. Ye cannot serve the Lord, for he is an holy God. Reason 2 Secondly, to prefigure, and show forth in plain type, the inseparable property of God's true Church, namely, that it is holy and sanctified. As the holy Temple was built upon the holy hill Moriah, so is God's Church built upon Christ Jesus; all holy. Christ jesus as the foundation and fountain, that holy thing, Luke 1.35. the holy one of God, Mark 1.24. Christians through his redemption, and the sanctification of the spirit, holy ones, Eph. 5.25.26, 27. Christ loved the Church, and gave himself for it, that he might sanctify, and cleanse it, with the washing of water, by the word, That he might present it to himself, a glorious Church, not having spot, or blemish. Hence is that of the Apostle, 1 Cor. 3.16, 17. Know ye not that ye are the Temple of God, and that the spirit of God dwelleth in you? If any man defile the Temple of God, him shall God destroy: for the Temple of God is holy, which Temple ye are. And 2 Cor. 6.16, 17. What agreement hath the Temple of God with Idols? for ye are the Temple of the living God, as God hath said, I will dwell in them, and walk in them, and I will be their God, and they shall be my people. Wherefore, come out from among them, and be ye separate, saith the Lord, and touch not the unclean thing, and I will receive you. And 1 Pet. 2.5, 9 Ye also, as lively stones, are built up a spiritual house, an holy Priesthood,— a chosen generation, a royal Priesthood, an holy nation, a peculiar people. This serves for instruction, admonition, and comfort. The use for instruction. For instruction. It plainly discovers the fearful estate of all profane and wicked persons; as idolaters, swearers, Sabbath-breakers, drunkards, adulterers, and the like. For though they have been baptised, and do come to the Lords service, yea to his holy table, yet certainly they are no true and lively members of the Church; but like Cham, in Noah's ark, Gen. 9.18.25. an accursed person, in a godly family; like chaff among the corn, on the barn-floore, Mat. 3.12. like tares among the wheat in the field, Mat. 13.38. like dross among the good fish, in the net, Mat. 13.47, 48.49. like Simon Magus, though baptised, yet in the gall of bitterness, and bond of iniquity, Acts 8.13.23. For every true member of the Church must needs have fellowship with Christ jesus, the true foundation being built upon him. But shall the throne of iniquity have fellowship with thee, Psal. 94.20. What fellowship hath righteousness with unrighteousness? and what communion hath light with darkness? and what concord hath Christ with Belial? or what part hath he that believeth, with an Infidel? and what agreement hath the Temple of God with Idols? 2 Cor. 6.14, 15, 16. If we say, that we have fellowship with him, and walk in darkness, we lie and do not the truth, 1 john 1.6. The use for admonition. For admonition, a most effectual motive unto holiness; as well to get it into our hearts, as also to express the truth of it in our lives. This duty is commanded, Heb. 12.14. Fellow peace with all men, and holiness, without which no man shall see the Lord. And 2 Cor. 7.1. Having therefore these promises, let us cleanse ourselves from all filthiness of the flesh, and spirit, perfecting holiness in the fear of God. Now, though the worker of this holiness be God alone, by his spirit; for who can bring a clean thing out of an unclean? Job 14.4. Yet ordinarily he doth it in means; wherein God requireth, that natural men should exercise themselves. For want hereof, he complaineth of the Jews, that therein he would have gathered them, as an hen doth her chicken under her wings, but they would not, Matthew 23.37. They would not come to him that they might have life, John 5.40. Therefore he saith; The Queen of the South shall rise up in judgement against this generation, and shall condemn it; for she came from the uttermost parts of the earth, to hear the wisdom of Solomon, and behold, a greater than Solomon is here, Mat. 12.42. God's means for holiness. God's means for holiness, enjoined to man, is twofold, the word and prayer. The word is the seed, even the immortal seed of our new birth, wherein corruption is abolished, and grace renewed, 1 Pet. 1.23. John. 17.17. And prayer obtains the spirit, Luke 11.13. which is the author of holiness, in the hearts of God's children, 1 Pet. 1.22. whereupon David prays, to be washed thoroughly, to be purged and washed, to have a clean heart created, and a right spirit renewed in him, Psal. 51.2, 7, 8, and how they must be used. Yet every kind of exercise in these ordinances, doth not entitle unto holiness, but such, as is joined with reformation of life, Prov. 1.23. with true earnest desire after holiness, Is. 51.1. with conscionable endeavour of obedience to that we know, Acts 5.32. In all which we must wait upon the Lord, for that we do desire, and not limit him, either for time or measure; as Coloss. 4.2. Continue in prayer, and watch in the same with thanksgiving: And then, if we wait patiently, God will hear, as Psal. 40.1. I waited patiently for the Lord, and he inclined unto me, and heard my cry. Now holiness must be expressed. The careful expressing of holiness in life must be in all manner of conversation. As he which hath called you his holy, so be ye holy in all manner of conversation, 1. Pet. 1.15. seeing then all these things shall be dissolved, what manner of persons ought ye to be, in all holy conversation and godliness, 2 Pet. 3.11. that is, as well in the duties of our civil callings, as in the exercises of Religion, else we have show of godliness, but deny the power of it, 2 Tim. 3.5. The use for comfort. For comfort, this makes greatly to all that be truly godly, living in the Church; for they are living stones, surely built upon Christ jesus, the tried foundation; they are pillars in the house of the Lord, and shall go no more out, Rev. 3.13. Now the truth of our piety and holiness must be expressed, according to Christ's direction, Luke 6.47, 48. to come, and hear, and do; so shall our building stand against all assaults, and blasts of temptations, from the world, the flesh, and the dewill. Verse 2. The Lord loveth the gates of Zion, more than all the dwellings of Jacob. A Second evidence of the Church's happiness, in being the chief object of God's special love, The meaning of the words. having a greater part and portion therein, than any other state or condition of men in the world beside. Which indeed was the true ground and cause of the former benefit, and of all other that follow. For the better understanding whereof, we must know, that there is a double trope in the words: First, the gates of Zion, part of the building of the city, upon mount Zion, are put for the whole city, as it was a type of God's Church in Christ, who, as Mediator, here began the settled building and government of it; as Psal. 2.6. compared with Luke 1.32.33. Secondly, Jacob is here put for his posterity, the whole twelve tribes, who inhabited all the land of Canaan, as if he would have said, The Lord indeed bears a good affection to the whole land of Canaan, where his people dwell; as Deut. 11.12. A land which the Lord thy God careth for, the eyes of the Lord thy God are always upon it? but above all the places thereof, he bears a good affection towards Mount Zion, whereon his holy city is built, which is the type, and beginning of his true Church in Christ, visibly represented in a settled choice place. In the words thus conceived, note this point, The observation. that God loves his Church above all other states and conditions of men in the world whatsoever, Mal. 1.1, 2,3. The word of the Lord to Israel (that is, the posterity of Jacob, the Church in those days) I have loved you, saith the Lord; (and that more than others) for, was not Esau jacob's brother, saith the Lord? yet I loved Jacob, and I hated Esau, which, in the most mild and favourable interpretation, taking hatred for less love, as Gen. 29.30,31. proveth the point in hand, that God loves his Church, above all other states and conditions of men in the world, John 13.1. Having loved his own, which were in the world, he loved them unto the end. Eph. 5.25. Husbands, love your wives, even as Christ loved his Church. Christ Jesus in love to his Church makes himself a pattern to husbands to love their wives. Now we know, every husband should love his own wife, more than any other woman in the world, and therefore we need not to doubt, but Christ doth so to his Church. The greatness of God's love to his Church seen in three things. This will yet more plainly appear, by these three things: First, God's delivery vouchsafed to his Church from evils. Secondly, his advancement of her to special estate of happiness. Thirdly, the means of both, which is Jesus Christ given unto her. 1. In delivering her from evils. For the first, the greatness of God's love, in his delivery of his Church, will plainly appear by that which is said thereof, both in general, and in particular: In general. Many are the afflictions of the righteous, but the Lord delivereth him out of them all, Psal. 34.19. He visiteth and redeemeth his people, and delivereth them out of the hands of all their enemies, Luke 1.68.74. In particular, God's Church in herself, is liable to temporal evils in this world, and to evils eternal in the world to come; for they were by nature the children of wrath, even as others, Ephes. 2.3. Now, from eternal evils, God gives to his Church absolute and perfect deliverance. There is no condemnation to them that are in Christ Jesus, Rom. 8.1. On them the second death hath no power, Rev. 20.6. But it is not so with others, that be on't of the Church; to them it will be said, Depart from me, ye cur●●d, into everlasting fire, Mat. 25.41. And, for deliverance from temporal evils, in this world, whether corporal, or spiritual, God's Church hath a great prerogative above others, though not in absolute freedom from them; for we must, through many tribulations, enter into the kingdom of God, Acts 14.22. and the Church of God is greatly afflicted, when all the earth sitteth still, and is at rest. Zech. 1.11, 12. Yet in her sufferings, the Church of God hath a great measure of deliverance, which the world doth ever want: namely, from the curse of God, which ever accompanieth temporal evils, upon the men of the world; as Zech. 5.3. For, Christ hath redeemed his Church, from the curse of the law, Gal. 3.13. and. the evils that lie upon them, are corrections for sin. When we are judged, we are chastened of the Lord, that we may not be condemned with the world, 1 Cor. 11.32. or trials of grace: as Jam. 1, 2,3. My brethren, count it all joy, when ye fall into divers temptations. Knowing this, that the trying of your faith worketh patience, 1 Pet. 1.6, 7. wherein ye greatly rejoice: though now for a season (if need be) ye are in heaviness, through manifold temptations: that the trial of your faith being much more precious, then of gold that perisheth, though it be tried with fire, might be found unto praise, and honour and glory, at the appearing of Jesus Christ. Job 2.3. The Lord said to Satan, hast thou considered my servant Job, that there is none like him in the earth; a perfect and an upright man, one that feareth God and escheweth evil? and still he holdeth fast his integrity, although thou movest me against him, to destroy him without cause. For the second. 2. In advancing her to a special state of happiness in this world. God's advancement of his Church to a special estate of happiness is two fold: partly, in this world, and principally, in the world to come. In this world, sometime with outward peace and plenty, to the admiration of the world, as in the days of Solomon, 1 Kings 10.21, etc. And though many times the Church of God hath a small portion in temporal blessings, for their felicity is not in this life, if in this life only we have hope in Christ, we are of all men most miserable, 1 Cor. 15.19. yet hath she always in Christ Jesus true right unto all temporal blessings, for Christ is Lord of all, Mat. 28.18. and in him all things are yours, whether Paul, or Apollo, or Cephas, or the world, or life, or death, or things present, or things to come, 1 Cor. 3.21, 22. She hath also a sanctified use of what she enjoys, and sweet content therein, whether her portion be small or great. I have learned, in what ever state I am, therewith to be content. I know, both how to be abased, and I know how to abound; every where, in all things I am instructed, both to be full, and to be hungry, both to abound, and to suffer need, Phil. 4.11, 12. living under that special providence, whereby she is preserved night and day, Isaiah 27.3. But in spiritual blessings is her special advancement above the world. Blessed with all spiritual blessings, in heavenly places, in Christ, Eph. 1.3. Eye hath not seen, nor ear heard, neither have entered into the heart of man, the things which God hath prepared for them that love him, 1 Cor. 2.9. As, in effectual calling to the state of grace, wherein they have spiritual society with God in Christ: Blessed is the man whom thou choosest, and causest to approach unto thee, that he may dwell in thy Courts; we shall be satisfied with the goodness of thy house, even of thy holy Temple, Psal. 65.4. being married unto him. For thy maker is thine husband, Is. 54.5. And, I will betroath thee unto me for ever, yea, I will betroath thee unto me in righteousness, and in judgement, and in loving kindness, and in mercies, I will even betroath thee unto me in faithfulness, and thou shalt know the Lord, Hos. 2.18, 19 so Psal. 45. and Canticles. In justification. from the guilt of sin. Even as David also describeth the blessedness of the man, unto whom God imputeth righteousness without works; saying, Blessed are they, whose iniquities are forgiven, and whose sins are covered: Blessed is the man, to whom the Lord will not impute sin, Rom. 4, 6, 7, 8. In adoption, to the honour and state of sons and daughters; Behold, what manner of love the Father hath bestowed upon us, that we should be called the sons of God, 1 John 3.1. In sanctification, to the abolishing of corruption, in regard of dominion, and the renewing of the soul, in knowledge, righteousness and true holiness, Eph. 4.21, 22, 23, 24. In which estate, they are made Kings and Priests unto God, Rev. 1.5, 6. strengthened with all might, according to his glorious power, Col. 1.11. and established, in Christ, and on Christ, so as the gates of hell shall not prevail against them, Matthew 16.18. See 2 Corinthians 1.2. etc. In the world to come. In the world to come, God's advancement of his Church is perfect, unto all fullness of joy, and height of honour for evermore. Then they receive the Kingdom prepared for them, Mat. 25.34. and wear the crown of righteousness laid up for them, 2 Tim. 4.8. Now they have on them white robes, of perfect holiness, and palms in their hands, of full conquest over all enemies, Rev. 7.9. Now they are in God's presence, where is fullness of joy, and at his right hand, where are pleasures for evermore, Psal, 16.11. They enjoy that glory, wherewith, the afflictions of this present time are not worthy to be compared, Rom. 8.18. the hope whereof will sustain the soul in the greatest distress, as 2 Cor. 4.14, 16, 17. Knowing, that he which raised up Jesus, shall raise up us also by Jesus, & shall present us with you. For which cause we faint not, but, though our outward man perish, yet the inward man is renewed day by day. For our light affliction, which is but for a moment, worketh for us a fare more exceeding and eternal weight of glory. So as indeed we may say of these glorious joys, as the Queen of Sheba said of Solomon's wisdom, 1 Kings 10.7. the one half thereof was not showed unto me. 3. In the means of both Christ Jesus. Thirdly, the greatness of God's love to his Church doth appear, in the means of both the former; which is the gift of Jesus Christ, his only begotten son, to become man, and to die for their sins, and to rise again for their justification, Rom. 4.25. He redeemeth his Church from the curse of the law by becoming himself a curse for them, Gal. 3.13. He delivereth them from the wrath to come, Thes. 1.10. And hereupon, by way of excellence, is called the deliverer and redeemer, Rom. 11.26. out of Is. 59.20. where the same word is used, which Job hath, calling Christ his redeemer, Job 19.25. It is he also, that doth exalt and advance his Church to salvation and glory. My sheep hear my voice, and I know them, and they follow me, and I give unto them eternal life, John 10.27, 28. For God hath not appointed us to wrath; but to obtain salvation by our Lord Jesus Christ, 1 Thes. 5.9. The Reason. The reason hereof is not any thing in the Church, existent or foreseen, as a meritorious, or moving cause; for God loves her freely, Hosea 14.4. Her loathsome state in corruption shows it plainly, when the first evidence thereof is given. When I passed by thee, and saw thee polluted in thy blood, I said unto thee, when thou wast in thy blood, live. Thy time was as the time of love, Ezekiel 16.6, 8. Yet, when the Church hath being, as it is built upon Christ jesus, and is endued with the spirit, and beautified with the graces thereof, even for all these doth God's love actually increase towards his Church, to the daily provocation of her love to him again, with praise and thanks, and more conscionable obedience for his glory, as Devir. 10.12, etc. This serves for instruction, for admonition, and comfort. The first use for instruction. For instruction two ways; First, it shows what a blessed thing it is to be a true member of God's Church; for all such have true part and portion in Gods special love, as is before showed. Now, this is the fountain of all blessings, even of the blessing of blessings, the gift of the son of God. For, God so loved the world, that he gave his only begotten Sonne● that whosoever believeth in him, should not perish, but have everlasting life, John3. 16. with whom come all other good things. He that spared not his own son, but delivered him up for us all: how shall he not with him also freely give us all things? Rom. 8.32. We know that love is kind, or bountiful, 1 Cor. 13.4. and hence we count Kings favourites happy, as being near and dear to those, that are so able to enrich and honour them in the world: as Esther 6.6, etc. How happy then are they, that are favourites to the King of Kings, the eternal omnipotent Lord of all? See Psal. 146.3, etc. Put not your trust in Princes, etc. Happy is he, that hath the God of Jacob for his help: whose hope is in the Lord his God, etc. Happy is the people, that is in such a case: yea, happy is the people, whose God is the Lord, Psal. 144.15. For who is like unto the Lord our God: who dwelleth on high, etc. Psal. 113.15. The 2. use for instruction. Secondly, it shows one reason of the manifold and great troubles and afflictions of God's Church and children here on earth, when the wicked world is at ease and rest. Zechar. 1.11, 12. A case that troubled the Prophets of God, as for me, my feet were almost gone: my steps had well nigh slipped. For I was envious at the foolish, when I saw the prosperity of the wicked. Psal. 73.2,3. Righteous art thou, O Lord, when I plead with thee: yet let me talk with thee of thy judgements: wherefore doth the way of the wicked prosper? wherefore are all they happy, that deal very treacherously. Thou hast planted them, yea they have taken root: they grow, yea they bring forth fruit: thou art near in their mouth, and fare from their reins, Jerem. 12.1, 2. And so may easily make weak Christians to stagger: as Judges 6.13. If the Lord be with us, why then is all this befallen us? It is true, that the sins of God's Church and children lay the foundation of these evils: for affliction follows sinners: as Jer. 9.12, etc. Who is the wise man, that may understand this, and who is he to whom the mouth of the Lord hath spoken, that he may declare it, for what the land perisheth, and is burnt up like a wilderness, that none passeth through? And the Lord said, Because they have forsaken my law, which I set before them, and have not obeyed my voice, 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 peccatum. 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 danum. neither walked therein, etc. Sin brings in death itself, and all evils that forerun or accompany the same. By one man sin entered into the world, and death by sin: and so death passed upon all men, for that all have sinned, Rom. 5.12. Yet▪ Gods dear and fatherly love to his Church comes in as a moving cause of the Church's afflictions, that thereby he may bring them to repentance, and to escape condemnation; see Rev. 3.19. As many as I love, I rebuke, and chaster, whom the Lord loveth, he chasteneth, and scourgeth every son, whom he receiveth, Heb. 12.16. For this cause many are weak and sickly among you, and many sleep. When we are judged, we are chastened of the Lord, that we should not be condemned with the world, 1 Cor. 11.30,32. Herein it is with our heavenly Father, as Solomon saith of earthly parents, Prov. 13.24. He that spareth his rod, hateth his son; but he that loveth him, chasteneth him betimes. Hence David pronounceth them blessed, whom the Lord correcteth, Psal. 94.12. and acknowledgeth, it was good for him, and that God did it of very faithfulness, Psal. 119.67.71, 75. Before I was afflicted, I went astray; but now have I kept thy word, etc. This we are to note, to prevent rash judgement, against ourselves and others, under the cross; whereto how apt we are against ourselves, see Is 49.14. Zion said, The Lord hath forsaken me, and my Lord hath forgotten me; against others, If. 53.3.12. He is despised, and rejected of men, a man of sorrows, and acquainted with grief, and we hid, as it were, our faces from him, he was despised, and we esteemed him not. He was numbered with the transgressors. The first use for admonition. For admonition two ways: First, to give all diligence to become true members of the Church, that so we may have part in God's special love, wherein stands true happiness. And hereto two things are required; first, that we know the true Church; and secondly, that we be not only in it, but of it. For the first; where the true Church of God is, what people, professing religion, be Gods true Church is a great question, of large extent, and much disputed between Protestants and Papists. For our direction and resolution briefly let us learn this. That the true Church is Christ's mystical body, Eph. 1.22, 23. Gave him (that is Christ) to be the head over all things, to the Church, which is his body. That spiritual building which consist of spiritual living stones, built upon the foundation jesus Christ. 1 Pet. 2.5, 6, 7. Mat. 16.18. 1 Cor. 3.9. That is, such professors of the the faith of the Gospel, as by the work of the spirit are endued with true faith, and adorn their profession with new obedience. Now then, those that profess Religion, and have communion and fellowship with Christ, through the work of the spirit in grace, undoubtedly are true members of Christ's Church. But those, that be evidenced to want fellowship with Christ through faith, are no Church of God, nor true members thereof. Now they of the Church of Rome are cut off from this fellowship by their ido atry, Col. 2.18, 19 Let no man beguile you of your reward in a voluntary humility and worshipping of Angels, intruding into those things, which he hath not seen, vainly puffed up by his fleshly mind and not holding the head, etc. By their opinion of justification by works. Christ is become of none effect unto you, whosoever of you are justified by the Law, ye are fallen from grace, Gal. 5.4. By making the Pope the head of the Church; for he is Antichrist, and those that so hold are Antichristian; the true Church hath not two heads. The way to become true members of Christ's Church, for sure title to God's special love, is humbly and reverently to receive the word of the covenant, and conscionably to yield obedience thereunto: as, Deut. 33.3, Mark 16.26. The right receiving is by faith, 1 Pet. 2.7. And the truth thereof must be testified by obedience. For true faith worketh by love, Gal. 5, 6. And this is the love of God, that wet keep his Commandments, 1 john 5.3. The second use for admonition. Secondly, the wicked of the world must hereby be admonished, to beware of wronging Gods children; for God, that loves them above others, will require and requite it, Psal. 10.14. as Psalm 105.14, 15. He suffered no man to do them wrong; yea he reproved Kings for their sakes: saying, Touch not mine anointed, and do my Prophets no harm; He that toucheth you, toucheth the apple of mine eye. Zech. 2.8. Therefore it will be good to regard, and follow the counsel of Gamaliel, Acts 5.38. Refrain from these men, and let them alone; lest we be found fighters against God, and it be said to us, as it was unto Paul, Acts 9.4, 5. Saul, Saul, why persecutest thou me, etc. For consolation, it makes greatly to every true member of God's Church, in any distress: for certainly they have a special part and portion in God's love; from which no afflictions can separate them, see Rom. 8.35,37,38,39. Who shall separate us from the love of Christ? shall tribulation, or distress, or persecution, or famine, or nakedness, or peril, or sword? Nay, in all these things we are more than conquerors, through him that loved us, etc. Having loved his own which were in the world, he loved them unto the end, John 13.1. Therefore, even in affliction, they may say, Rejoice not against me, O mine enemy, when I fall, I shall arise, when I sit in darkness, the Lord shall be a light unto me, Micah 7.8. Verse3. Glorious things are spoken of thee, thou City of God. The meaning of the words. A Third thing setting out the happiness of the Church, that though her present outward state be not always comfortable, and glorious; yet, even than her future hopes, upon divine prophecies and promises, are great and excellent. In the words note two things: First, the description of the place. Secondly, the declaration of her happiness, in the ground of her hopes. For the first, the place here spoken of is Jerusalem, thus described, thou City of God: so called, because of God's sanctuary here seated on Mount Zion, which place God chose and desired for his habitation, saying. This is my rest for ever, here will I dwell, for I have desired it, Psal. 132.13, 14. Whereupon, in the new Testament, it is called the City of the great King, Mat. 5.35. Now, the earthly Jerusalem here spoken of must be understood to denote the true Church of God in all ages, as being in the Prophet's time, when this Psalm was penned, both the chief feat and true type thereof, so as for us the point here contained is this: The true Church of God is Gods own City. The first observation. Hence it is called Jerusalem from above, Gal. 4.26. The heavenly Jerusalem, the holy City, the new Jerusalem, the great City, the holy Jerusalem, Rev. 21.2, 10. The reason hereof is God's free grace and favour, choosing his Church in Christ to be his own by covenant, The reason. even his house, Heb. 3.6. 1 Tim. 3.15. His Temple, so as he will dwell in them, and walk in them, 2 Cor. 6.16. And so his city, where the Tabernacle of God is with men, Revel. 21.3. This serves for instruction, and for admonition. The use for instruction. For instruction, to our great comfort, that God certainly will defend his Church against all enemies; for so much will every King do for his chief city, that is the chamber of his Kingdom, and every householder for his own habitation; as Mat. 24.43. If the good man of the house had known, in what watch the thief would have come, he would have watched, and would not have suffered his house to be broken up. See God's promise and performance for Jerusalem, while it remained the seat of his Sanctuary, Is. 37.35. I will defend this City to save it, for mine own sake, and for my servant David's sake. Hereupon the people of God say, God is our refuge and strength; a very present help in trouble: Therefore will we not fear, though the earth be removed; and though the Mountains be carried into the midst of the Sea; Though the Waters thereof roar, and be troubled, though the Mountains shake with the swelling thereof. There is a river, the streams whereof shall make glad the City of God, the holy place of the Tabernacles of the most high. God is in the midst of her, she shall not be moved; God shall help her, and that right early, Psal. 46.1. etc. God is known in her palaces for a refuge, Psal. 48.3. And for the true Church herself in all ages: Upon this rock will I build my Church, and the gates of hell shall not prevail against it, Mat. 16.18. No weapon that is form against thee shall prosper; and every tongue that shall rise against thee in judgement, thou shalt condemn, Isaiah 54.17. The first use for admonition. For admonition, it serves two ways; First, as we desire true safety, and salvation eternal, so to join ourselves truly to God's Church; for upon Mount Zion shall be deliverance: Obad. 17. This is as Noah's Ark, into which all must come, that look to be saved from the deluge of damnation, Heb. 11.7. Therefore it is said, that God added to his Church daily such as should be saved, Acts 2.47. Now the way into Christ's Church is by true repentance, and faith in Christ Jesus, as Acts 2.38.41. Then Peter said unto them, Repent, and be baptised every one of you, in the name of Jesus Christ, for the remission of sins, and ye shall receive the gift of the holy Ghost. Then they, that gladly received his Word, were baptised: and the same day there were added unto them about three thousand souls. The second use for admonition. Secondly, when we do profess the truth of christ, we must walk worthy of this holy place, by a continual daily strife and endeavour after sanctification, testified in new obedience. Hereinto none do enter, or continue, that are unholy, or profane. There shall in no wise enter into it any thing that defileth, neither whatsoever worketh abomination, or maketh a lie: but they which are written in the Lamb's book of life, Rev. 21.27. This is God's holy city, not only in regard of the owner, God himself, but of all the free denizens, the true inhabitants thereof. God's people are an holy nation, 1 Pet. 2.9. and the Lord saith, Be ye holy, for I am holy, Levit. 11.44, 45. Even holy in abstaining from outward pollution by unclean creatures. The same duty is enjoined upon the prohibiting of idolatry and witchcrafts, Levit. 20.7. So that, whether the sin be small, or great, we must abstain from it, because we have an holy God, and live in an holy place, which is his Church; as we say in the confession of our faith, I believe the holy Catholic Church. Who shall ascend into the hill of the Lord? and who shall stand in his holy place? He that hath clean hands, and a pure heart, etc. Psal. 24.3, 4. Hence was the use of the paddle in the camp, to cover their excrements; because God walked in the midst of the camp, Deut. 23.13, 14. The second thing to be noted here is, the declaration of the Church's happiness, in the sure ground of her certain hopes of her future blessings, namely, God's gracious promises of glorious things to be done unto her; every one whereof is mentioned in God's Word, as the phrase in the original doth imply, joining a participle of the singular number to a noun of the plural; which some render thus, Glorious things is spoken of thee: meaning, that every one of them, concerning the Church's happiness, is particularly mentioned in God's Word. The second Observation. Mark then, that God in his word doth plainly and particularly mention exceeding glorious things, belonging to the Church, touching her future happiness. These do concern partly her happy deliverance from evils: for, God shall redeem Israel from all his iniquities, Psal. 130.8. When thou passest through the waters, I will be with thee. and thorough the rivers, they shall not overflow thee: when thou walkest thorough the fire, thou shalt not be burnt, etc. Is. 43.2. etc. But chief her fruition of blessings, even in this world, under the Kingdom of Christ, called the accepted time, and day of salvation, 2 Cor. 6.2. the time of reformation, Heb. 9.10. Glorious things indeed were spoken of these times, as 1 Cor. 2.9. Eye hath not seen, nor ear heard, neither have entered into the heart of man's, the things which God hath prepared for them that love him, 1 Pet. 1.12. See some particulars, which are for quality admirable, and for number almost innumerable Now the light of the Moon shall be, as the light of the Sun, and the light of the sun shall be seven fold, Is. 30.26. meaning, that there shall be a wonderful increase of knowledge and of the comforts of grace. Now Kings shall be her nursing fathers, and Queens her nursing mothers, etc. Is. 49.23. Add hereunto, Is. 54.1, 2,3, 11, 12, 13. and Is. 60. 1, 2. and 62.1, 2. and 65.17, 18. and 66.11, 12. and the 21. and 22. chapters of the Revelation. And whatsoever shall be wanting to the Church, or to any true member thereof, in this world, shall be superabundantly supplied, and recompensed in the world to come; as Rom. 8.18. 1 Cor. 15.53, 54. 2 Cor. 4.14, 16. and 5.1. etc. Philip. 3.20, 21. The ground and reason of this course of God's dealing, in mentioning glorious things, to belong to his Church, is threefold; The first reason. First, to allure and draw natural men to join themselves unto the Church, that their part may be in the fruition of these glorious things, as Moses alured Jethro (called also Hebab) to go with them into the land of Canaan, Numb. 10.12,32. Come thou with us, and we will do thee good; for the Lord hath spoken good concerning Israel, And it shall be, if thou go with us; yea it shall be, that what goodness the Lord shall do unto us, the same will we do unto thee. The second Reason. Secondly, to encourage the true members of the Church, unto growth and perseverance in grace and obedience; for, in these glorious things promised, we may see the reward of religion, even the comforts of grace here, and crown of glory hereafter; as Moses on Pisgah saw all the land of Canaan, Deut. 34.1. etc. Herewith the Patriarches were alured to follow the Lord, and Moses to leave the honour of Pharaoh 's court, Heb. 11.13, 24, 25, 26. This hastened St. Paul to his holy endeavour for perfection in grace, Phil. 3.13, 14. This one thing I do, forgetting those things which are behind, and reaching forth unto those things, which are before, I press toward the mark, for the price of the high calling of God in Christ Jesus. The third Reason. Thirdly, to comfort the godly under afflictions, which follow the sincere profession of the faith, and are as sharp and dangerous storms to passengers by sea. But in these glorious things promised, we may cast anchor safely, and behold the quiet harbour of rest and safety. In the multitude of my thoughts within me, thy comforts delight my soul. Psal. 94.19. Remember the word unto thy servant, upon which thou hast caused me to hope. This is my comfort in mine affliction: for thy word hath quickened me, Psal. 119, 49, 50. See also. Rom. 8.18. with 2 Cor. 4.14, 16. and 1 Pet. 1, 5, 6. This serves for instruction, admonition, and comfort. The first Use for instruction. For instruction, two ways: First, that the happiness of God's Church and children must not be measured by their outward state in this world, which many times is not only very mean, but miserable: as the Apostle shows, 1 Cor. 15.19. If in this life only we have hope in Christ Jesus, we are of all men most miserable. Their happiness therefore must be measured, by their present title to God's favour in Christ, through the covenant of grace, whereby they have the Lord for their God, which is true happiness. Psal. 144.15. Happy is that people, that is in such a case: yea happy is that people, whose God is the Lord. And by their certain title to future glory, wherein they greatly rejoice, though for a season they be in heaviness, 1 Peter 1.6. The second Use for instruction. Secondly, see here, what a profitable and comfortable thing it is to be much conversant in Scripture, which is the Great Charter of God's Church, showing all the glorious things, whereto she hath right and interest in Christ Jesus. And indeed they are very great: for, if God spared not his own son, but delivered him up for us all: how shall he not with him also freely give us all things? Rom. 8.32. He is made unto us of God, wisdom, righteousness, sanctification, and redemption, 1 Cor. 1.30. Those Gentlemen, that fall Wards, in their minority, take great delight to read or hear of their deeds and evidences, which show what Lordships, what domains and royalties do belong unto them. Why should not we so delight in God's word? The godly have so done, Job 23.12. I have esteemed the words of of his mouth, more than my necessary food. Thy words were found, and I did eat them, and thy word was unto me the joy and rejoicing of mine heart, Jer. 15, 16. How sweet are thy words unto my taste? yea sweeter than honey to my mouth, Psal. 119.103. I rejoice at thy word, as one that findeth great spoil, Psal. 119.162. The first use for admonition. For admonition, two ways: First, that living in the Church, we make sure we have good right and title to these glorious things that are spoken of her. It is true, these days of grace under the Gospel have accomplishment of them, in good measure, as 2 Cor. 6.2. Behold, now is the accepted time, behold, now is the day of salvation. But yet our personal right must be measured by the truth of our Faith: for, these precious promises do belong to them, that have obtained like precious faith, 2 Pet. 1.1, 4. We must therefore prove ourselves, whether we be in the faith, 2 Cor. 13.5. which is best known by the work of the word, 2 Thess. 2.13. in the sanctification of the heart, Acts 15.9. and reformation of the life, Acts 19.18, 19 The second use for admonition. Secondly, that we walk worthy of the Lord, and of his glorious promises, in the profession of our faith. The way is showed upon this ground, 2 Cor. 7.1. Having therefore these promises, dearly beloved, let us cleanse ourselves from all filthiness of the flesh, and spirit, perfecting holiness, in the fear of God. And Coloss. 1.10, etc. That ye might walk worthy of the Lord, unto all pleasing, being fruitful in every good work, and increasing in the knowledge of God, etc. The use for comfort. For comfort, this makes greatly, to every true member of the Church, in any misery: They must call to remembrance these precious promises of future glory: and so, though the outward man perish, yet the inward man will be renewed daily, 2 Cor. 4.14, 19 Thus have the godly comforted themselves in all times. Rejoice not against me, O mine enemy, when I fall I shall arise, when I sit in darkness, the Lord shall be a light unto me, Micah 7.8. As the sufferings of Christ abound in us, so our consolations also abound by Christ, 2 Cor. 1.5. For if we suffer, we shall also reign with him, 2 Tim. 2.12. Our light affliction, which is but for a moment, worketh for us a fare more exceeding and eternal weight of glory. 2 Cor. 4.17. Hence it is said, that Christ himself for the joy that was set before him, endured the cross, despising the shame. Hebr. 12.2. So saith, St. Peter, Rejoice, in as much as ye are partakers of Christ's sufferings: that when his glory shall be revealed, ye may be glad also with exceeding joy, 1 Pet. 4.13. Verse. 4. I will make mention of Rahab and Babylon to them that know me. Behold, Philistin and Tyre, with Ethiopia: this man was born there. The meaning of the words. HEre he comes to confirm the truth of that he had said in the former Verse, touching the glorious things spoken of the Church, by particular instance, in the calling and conversion of many foreign nations, even of such, as formerly had been cruel enemies of God's people. For the better conceiving whereof, we must search out two things: First, the countries, or people here spoken of: Secondly, how their calling or conversion to the Church is expressed. The Countries here named, by which we must understand the people inhabiting them, are in a double rank: First, Rahab and Babylon. By Rahab we must understand not the harlot Rahab, that received the Spies, Jos. 2. as many of the ancient Fathers do, viz. Jerome, Austin, Theodoret, Euthymius, Cassiodorus, and others. For first, her name in the original, is written with a dense aspirate 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉: but this word is written with a mild aspirate 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉. Secondly, the conjoined names do show, that by Rahab here is meant a nation or people, rather than one particular person: whereby we may see how injurious and prejudical to truth it is, to make the unanimous or general consent of Fathers, the right rule of interpreting the Scripture; whereto we should tie ourselves for the understanding of it, as the Council of Trent doth in the fourth Session. But by Rahab we must here understand Egypt, as in many other places it is certainly taken. Thou hast broken Rahab in pieces, as one that is slain. Psal. 89.10. Art thou it, that hath cut Rabab, and wounded the dragon? Isa. 51.9. Where Rahab is Egypt, and the dragor is Pharaoh the King thereof, as the Verse following doth plainly intimate. Why Egypt is called Rahab, is very probable from some City so called; or rather, as I conceive, from her conceited strength, wherein she did pride herself: whereto, some think, allusion is made Isa. 30.7. Babylon is the chief City of Assyria, as Gen. 10.10. here put, as Rahab, or Egypt, also is, for the inhabitants thereof. And their calling into the Church, or enfranchising into the City of God, is thus expressed. God will make mention of them, or cause them to be remembered, to those that know him, that is, to his own people of Israel, who being the Lords by covenant, both knew the Lord, and were known of him. Philistia also, and Tyre, with Ethiopia, are places often mentioned in Scripture, and as the former, are here put for the inhabitants thereof. Their calling also to be God's people is thus expressed: This man was born there. That is, any one of the forenamed countries was born, by spiritual regeneration in God's Church among them. In the words thus understood note these things: The first observation. First, the description of God's people, the Israelites, by this good quality, or property, that they know God: where this is plainly taken for granted, that those that be the Lords people, having true society and acquaintance with him, do undoubtedly know the Lord: Israel shall cry unto me, my God, we know thee, Hos. 8.2. They shall all know me, from the least of them to the greatest of them. Jer. 31.34. The reason hereof is plain: for whomsoever God accepteth into society and fellowship with himself by covenant, unto them doth he reveal and make known himself, that thereby they may be enabled to walk worthy of him, as John 10.14. I am the good shepherd, I know my sheep and am known of mine. He that loveth me, shall be loved of my Father, and I will love him, and will manifest myself unto him, John 14.21. Thus he dealt with the Jews, when he took them into covenant with himself, Exod. 3.6.13, 14, 15, 16. And so he dealt with the Gentiles, when he called them into the fellowship of his son, as St. Paul's speech to the Galatians plainly showeth, Gal. 4.8, 9 When ye knew not Gad, ye did service unto them, which by nature are no Gods. But now, after ye have known God, or rather are known of God, how turn ye again, etc. The use for instruction. This serves for instruction, admonition and comfort. For instruction, it shows plainly the miserable condition of all ignorant people that know not God: it is a fearful sign, they are not the Lords by covenant of grace. They that want the knowledge of God are like horse and mule, Psal. 32.9. worse than the ox or ass, Is. 1.3. Which is not only a state of shame: For some have not the knowledge of God, I speak this to your shame, 1 Cor. 15.34. but of woeful danger, for the Lord hath a controversy with them, Hos. And will come in flaming fire rendering vengeance to them, 2 Thess. 1.8. The first use for admonition. For admonition, it serves effectually two ways: First, to try our estate, touching this knowledge of God, whether we have so much, as may entitle us to his society, that we are his by covenant, whereunto is required, not only a right conceiving of God in our minds, that he is one in essence, and three in persons, most holy, wise, eternal, and infinite in power and essence, creator and governor of all things; but also, affiance of heart, whereby we acknowledge him, and rest and rely upon him, for all the blessings of the covenant of grace in Christ, which is indeed a justifying and saving knowledge; whereof see Is: 53.11. John 17.3. The second use for admonition. Secondly; in the want hereof to give all diligence to attain unto it, exercising ourselves in his word and works, and sanctifying our endeavour by prayer, for the blessing of God's spirit, to bring us to this saving knowledge, and acknowledgement of God, by which an entrance shall be made unto us abundantly, into his everlasting Kingdom of grace here, and of glory hereafter. This saving knowledge of God is fruitful, ever joined with other graces, as faith, virtue, patience, temperance, etc. which who so lacketh, is blind, and cannot see a fare off, 2 Pet. 1.5, 6, 7, 8. The use for comfort. For comfort, this makes greatly to all those, that thus rightly know the Lord, and acknowledge him; for, if herein they persevere, undoubtedly the Lord will one day own them, and acknowledge them before his father. Whosoever shall confess me before men, him shall the son of man also confess before the Angels of God, Luke 12.8. The greatness of which benefit will appear by the misery of the want of it; which see Mat. 7.23. I never knew you, Depart from me ye that work iniquity, Mat. 7.23. and 25.12. The second Observation. The second thing to be observed here, is the favour of God to these heathen people in their conversion. The Lord will remember them, or make favourable and loving mention of them, to his people, or among his people; as some understand the place: Which is plainly confirmed, Is. 19.24, 25. In that day shall Israel be the third with Egypt, and with Assyria, even a blessing in the midst of the Land: whom the Lord of hosts shall bless; saying, Blessed be Egypt my people, and Assyrta the work of my hands, and Israel mine inheritance. The Reason. The reason is plain; Gods holy and effectual calling brings men into the fellowship and society of his son, 1 Cor. 1.9. And in this estate there is no difference from outward things: Where there is neither Greek nor Jew, circumcision, nor uncircumcision, Barbarian, Scythian, bond, nor free, but Christ is all, and in all, Colos. 3.11. It pleased the father, that in him should all fullness dwell, Colos. 1.19. and all that are effectually called, are complete in him, Colos. 2.10. Whereupon the same Apostle saith, Art thou called being a servant? care not for it. For he that is called in the Lord, being a servant, is the Lords freeman; likewise also, he that is called being free, is Christ's servant, 1 Cor. 7.21, 22. This serves for instruction, admonition, and comfort. For instruction, see plainly here, that the dignity and honour of an holy calling, to be a Christian, is exceeding great, The use for instruction. their prerogatives above natural men, that remain uncalled, be much every manner of way, as Rom. 3.1, 2. It is the high calling of God in Christ Jesus, Phil. 3.14. A chosen generation. a royal Priesthood, an holy nation, a peculiar people, 1 Pet. 2.9. Now they are no more strangers and foreigners, but fellow Citizens with the Saints, and of the household of God, Eph. 2.19. Fellow heirs, and of the same body, and partakers of his promise in Christ, Eph. 3.6. Upon occasion of which spiritual and heavenly dignities undoubtedly it was, that Paul a prisoner wished of God, that Agrippa a King, and all that heard him were altogether such, as he was (that is true believers in Christ) except his bonds, Acts 26.29. The first use for admonition. For admonition, it serves two ways: First, to natural men, if ever they desire true spiritual happiness, and honour to their souls, they must take notice of that ordinance of God, wherein he vouchsafeth unto men an holy calling, and of that right manner of using the same, whereby God's ordinance may be sanctified unto them. The ordinance is the holy Gospel preached, That the Gentiles should be fellow heirs, and of the same body, and partakers of his promise in Christ, by the Gospel, Eph. 3.6. God hath from the beginning chosen you to salvation, through sanctification of the spirit, and belief of the truth, whereunto he called you by our Gospel, to the obtaining of the glory of the Lord Jesus Christ, 2 Thess. 2.13, 14. I declare unto you the Gospel, which I preached unto you, which also ye have received, and wherein ye stand: By which also ye are saved, etc. 1 Cor. 14.1, 2. This Gospel preached is the word of faith, Rom. 10.8. The immortal seed of our new birth in all saving graces, 1 Pet. 1.23.25. And so the power of God unto salvation, to every one that believeth, Rom. 1.16. The right manner, wherein we must wait in the foresaid ordinance, for the blessed work of the spirit, in an holy calling is this: First, by the law to see our miserable estate by nature, which will stir up the soul to seek mercy, as Acts 2.37. they were pricked in their hearts, and said, Men and Brethren, what shall we do; and to break off the course of sin, whereon is promised the gift of the spirit, Prov. 1.23. Turn you at my reproof, behold, I will porore out my spirit unto you. Secondly, to hunger and thirst after the work of the spirit, as the dry ground doth after rain, as Psal. 143.6. I stretch forth my hands unto thee: my soul thirsteth after thee as a thirsty land. This hath the promise of the spirit, Is, 43.3. I will pour water upon him, that is thirsty, and floods upon the dry ground: I will pour my spirit upon thy seed, and my blessing upon thine offspring. This earnest spiritual desire must be testified by waiting in the means for the work of the spirit, as the impotent persons did at the pool of Bethesda for the moving of the waters by the Angel, John 5.3, 4. And also by earnest prayer to God, whereto the spirit is promised, Luke 11.13. If ye, being evil, know how to give good gifts unto your children, how much more shall your heavenly father give the holy spirit to them that ask him? Thirdly, to yield obedience to that we know, for to such the spirit is promised, Acts 5.32. We are his witnesses of these things, and so is also the holy Ghost, whom God hath given to them that obey him. The second use for admonition. Secondly, all godly men professing the faith must hereby be admonished to walk worthy of their holy calling, as Eph. 1.4. which if they would do, they must remember their present state, which is fellowship with God in Christ, 1 Cor. 1.9. and their future hopes in eternal glory, 2 Thess. 2.13, 14. Both which do call for daily and constant care and endeavour to leave sin, and to live godly: as 2 Cor. 7.1, 2. And every one that hath this hope, purifieth himself, even as he is pure. 1 John 3.3. The Use for comfort. For comfort, this makes greatly to all godly ones, that are effectually called, when misery and distress in the world shall come upon them, they have wherewith to comfort themselves: for, God by his holy calling hath brought them into the society of his son, as before is showed, and nothing that befalls them outwardly, can separate them from them his love, but, in all the afflictions of this world, they are more than conquerors, Rom. 8.35,37,38. This calling is of grace, Gal. 1.15. And grace is a sufficient ground of comfort under the greatest buffeting: 2 Cor. 12.9. My grace is sufficient for thee: for my strength is made perfect in weakness. Most gladly therefore will I rather glory in my infirmities, that the power of Christ may rest upon me. The third obervation. The third thing to be noted here is, that special state, which declares any man, of any nation, to be a free Denizen of God's City, and a true member of his Church, namely, to be born there: yet not by natural generation, but, by spiritual regeneration: whereof Christ speaking saith, they must be born again, or from above, John3. 3. borne of water, and of the holy Ghost, John3. 5. Not of flesh, nor of blood, nor of the will of man, but of God: Joh. 1.13. Mark here, then, that, To be born again, declares any man, of any nation, to be a free Denizen of God's holy City, and a true member of his Church. This is plain by the former place, Joh. 3.3, 6. to all those, that understand the nature and force of an exception to a general rule, which is, to put the contrary to the rule. It is indeed a true rule in Scripture, That God's Church is God's kingdom, into which man in the corrupt state of nature cannot enter, as heir to inherit. Flesh and blood cannot inherit the kingdom of God: neither doth corruption inherit incorruption, 1 Cor. 15.50. But yet, if such a one be born again, he doth certainly enter, as heir, and shall inherit: as, 1 Pet. 1.3.4. Blessed be the God and Father of our Lord Jesus Christ, which according to his abundant mercy hath begotten us again, unto a lively hope by the resurrection of Jesus Christ from the dead, To an inheritance incorruptible, etc. Mark also, that true faith and regeneration do accompany each other. Whosoever believeth, that Jesus is the Christ, is born of God, 1 Joh. 5.1. Now, true believers are children, Gal. 3.26. For, ye are all the children of God. by faith in Christ Jesus, and so free, as Matth. 7.26. they are heirs, Gal. 4.7. and have great prerogatives employed, John 1.12, 13. expressed Ephes. 2.19. Fellow-citizens with the Saints, and of the household of God. Fellow-heirs of the same body, Ephes. 3.6. The Reason. The reason hereof is plain: for this change of state in soul, by regeneration, is the proper fruit of the spirit of Adoption, in an affectual applying of the power and efficacy of Christ's death and resurrection: both which proceed from the special love of God the father, in that saving work, which actually makes them his children, and so heirs of the kingdom, Rom. 8.17. joint heirs with Christ: and so free, for the children are free, Matth. 17.26. Christ Jesus: the natural son, doth make them free, and so they are free indeed, Joh. 8.36. For, where the spirit of the Lord is, there is liberty, 2 Cor. 3.17. Therefore the Apostle saith, this begetting again is to a lively hope, to an inheritance incorruptible and undefiled, 1 Pet. 1.3, 4. This serves for instruction, admonition, and comfort. The first use for instruction. For instruction, two ways. First, that man's being in the state of grace may be truly and certainly known. For regeneration or the new birth may be certainly known which is the unfailing foundation of the state of grace. 1 Joh. 5.1. Whosoever believeth that Jesus is the Christ, is born of God. And true faith may be known, 2 Cor. 13.5. Again, we see natural generation is evident by the enlivenec parts of a true humane body their view and employment doth evince natural or corporal generation: why then shall not the lively parts of the new man, declare certainly our regeneration, whereby we are begotten and born of God; as knowledge in the mind, holiness in the will and affections, and righteousness in life and conversation, Eph. 4.21, 22, 23, 24. compared with Rom. 6.19. Whence we may see, that the Papists do err, in saying that the state of grace cannot be certainly known, but by extraordinary revelation. We may well say, they err, not knowing the Scripture, nor the power power of God. See 1 Joh. 5.13. for faith, and 1 John 3.14. for love; as declaring this estate. The second Use for instruction. Secondly, that God's children shall undoubtedly persevere in the state of grace. They that be endued with true faith and repentance, and other saving graces, shall never lose the same. True grace may be lessened, or weakened in degree, but not finally or totally lost. For all such are regenerate by the spirit, and his work abides: his seed remains so, as they cannot make sin their trade, by sinning unto death, or with full consent, 1 Joh. 3.9. and 5.18. Objection. Answer. But some believe for a time, Luk. 8.18. Their faith is humane, acquired and got by reading, hearing, and other good exercises of religion, without the work of the spirit: it is not infused by the holy Ghost in the foresaid means. Between which kinds of faith, this is the true difference, that acquired faith ever leaves some corner for the devil, some sin unreformed, as Acts 8.13, 19, 23. but faith infused purifies the heart from the dominion of every sin, as Acts 15.9. The use for admonition. For admonition, this serves effectually to move every one to give all diligence for this estate, first to get it, then to keep it. For the getting of it, consider Christ's command, Luk. 13.24. Strive to enter in at the straight gate. Which strife stands in two things. First, that we receive with meekness the word of God, both the law, to disecver sin, and to humble us for the same, and the Gospel, to cast into our hearts the seed of grace: as Jam. 1.21. Receive with meekness the engrafted word, wherein God's spirit doth beget, Jam. 1.18. Of his own will begat he us with the word of truth, 1 Pet. 1.23, 25. Being born again not of corruptible seed, but of incorruptible by the word of God— and this is the word which by the Gospel is preached unto you. It is the word of faith. Rom. 10.8. which doth ever accompany regeneration, 1 John 5.1. Whence John ●. 11, 12, 13. He came unto his own, and his own received him not: But, as many as received him, to them gave he power to become the sons of God, even to them that believe on his name; which were born, not of blood, nor of the will of the flesh, nor of the will of man, but of God. Secondly, that we pray unto God instantly and earnestly for God's spirit, which doth beget unto eternal life, Luke 11.13. For the preserving and keeping of this estate, we must do three things: First, keep fuel to the spark of grace cast into our hearts by regeneration; which is, by endeavouring, that the word of God may dwell richly in us, Colos. 3.16. Secondly, blow upon the spark, when the fuel is put to: which is, by prayer, as 1 Thess. 5.17. This David did, Psal. 51.10, 11, 12. Cast me not away from thy presence, and take not thy holy spirit from me. Thirdly, wrath against sin, which is as water to quench the spirit, and walk in obedience which is pleasing unto God, and entitles us to God's presence and preservation. If ye continue in my word, then are ye my Disciples indeed, John 8.31. Whosoever heareth these say of mine, and doth them, I will liken him unto a wise man, which built his house upon a rock. And the rain descended, and the floods came, and the winds blue, and beat upon that house, and it fell not: for it was founded upon a rock Mat. 7.24, 25. Wherefore, my beloved, as ye have always obeyed: not as in my presence only, but now much more in my absence, work out your own salvation with fear and trembling, Phil. 2.12. Seeing you have purified your souls, in obeying the truth, through the Spirit, unto unfeigned love of the brethren, 1 Pet. 1.22. The use for comfort. For comfort, this makes greatly to the regenerate; for God hath begun a good work in them, and will undoubtedly perfect it, until the day of jesus Christ, Phil. 1.6. herein is the riches of God's love and mercy seen. Of his love, 1 John 3.1. Of his mercy, 1 Pet. 1.3, 4, 5. Now whom he thus loves, to the end he loves them, John 13.1. His gifts and calling are without repentance, Rom. 11.29. By regeneration we are sons and so heirs, Rom. 8.17, 17. And who shall lay any thing to the charge of Gods elect, Rom. 8.31.33. The fourth Observation. The fourth thing here to be noted is, the people and nations in whom he gives instance, pointing them out by name, with command of special observance, that by effectual calling and regeneration shall become true members of his Church; namely, the Egyptians, Babylonians, Philistims, men of Tyre, and Ethiopians, under whom he comprehendeth other Gentiles, yet nameth such as were well known unto the Jews (than Gods only people) formerly to have showed themselves their greatest enemies. Egypt and Babylon were the places of Israel's bondage and captivity. The Philistims likewise were sore oppressors, and Lords over them, Judg. 15.11. even forty years together, Judg. 13.1. The men of Tyre were bitter enemies, delivering up the whole captivity to Edom, and remembered not the brotherly covenant, Amos 1.9, Their cruelty see further, Joel 3.4, 6. and Psal. 83.7. The Ethiopians were likewise grievous enemies, as their bloody assault with a huge Army did plainly show. 2 Chron. 14.9. Yet for all this, Behold, saith the Lord, these shall be converted, and become friends to the Church, free Denizens of Zion; for all Nations shall serve him, meaning Christ prefigured by Solomon, Psal. 72.11. The Gentiles shall come to thy light; The abundance of the Sea shall he converted unto thee, the forces of the Gentiles shall come unto thee, Is. 60.3, 5. That the residue of men might seek after the Lord, and all the Gentiles, upon whom my name is called, saith the Lord, Acts 15.17. In particular of Egypt and Babylon, see Is, 19.19, 21, 25. In that day, shall there be an Altar to the Lord, in the midst of the land of Egypt: And the Lord, shall be known to Egypt, and the Egyptians shall know the Lord in that day, and shall do sacrifice and oblation, yea, they shall vow a vow unto the Lord, and perform it. And, Blessed be Egypt my people, and Assyria the work of my hands, And of Tyre, Psal. 45.12. The daughter of Tyre shall be there with a gift. And of Ethiopia, Psal. 68.31. Prince's shall come out of Egypt, Ethiopia shall soon stretch out her hands unto God. But why doth he instance in these nations especially, when as in them he intends to show the conversion of the Gentiles? The first Reason. This he doth for three causes: First, to show the greatness of his power, who can not only confound, but even convert the greatest enemies of his Church: For their confounding, see Exod. 14, 27, 28. and Numb. 16. And for conversion, see Acts 9.1, etc. The second Reason. Secondly, this he doth to manifest even to enemies his great love unto his Church; as he saith, Revel. 3.9. I will make them of the Synagogue of Satan, which say they are Jews, and are not, but do lie; behold, I will make them to come, and worship before thy feet, and to know, that I have loved thee. Thirdly, for the encouragement of his Church and children unto faith and patience, The third Reason. in the times of opposition by mighty enemies: For the true God, who is God of the Church, can either confound or convert them at his pleasure; or if he do neither of those things, yet he can cause the wrath of his enemies to turn to his praise, Psal. 76.10. as is plain in the rage of Nabuchadnezzar against his servants, Dan. 3.19, 20, 28, 29. This serves for Instruction with confutation, admonition, and comfort. The use for instruction. For instruction, In the conversion of these mighty enemies we may plainly see, that when God is pleased to show mercy in Christ the gracious work of his holy spirit is irresistible: corruption indeed is strong, but yet the grace of the spirit is stronger, as is said, 1 John 4.4. Greater is he, that is in you, them he, that is in the world. The Devil indeed is the strong man armed, that keeps the house of every natural heart, but yet Christ by his spirit is stronger, and can come in, and cast out the strong man, Luke 11.21, 22. This is plainly showed in fit resemblances, Is. 11.6. The wolf shall dwell with the lamb, and the leopard shall lie down with the kidd, etc. which was truly verified in Saul, that of a most bloody persecutor was made a zealous preacher, Acts 9 according to that of our Saviour, John 6.37. All, that the Father giveth me shall come unto me. Though none can come except the Father draw, John 6.44. yet when God draws, they run, Cant. 1.4. By which it is plain that they grossly err that hold Gods saving work of grace man be resisted by man's corruption: for who hath resisted his will, that can raise up children unto Abraham of very stones? Rom. 9.19. Mat. 3.9. Indeed our Saviour saith to the rebellious Jews, Mat. 23.37. How often would I have gathered you as an heme gathereth her chickens under her wings, but you would not. And St. Stephen telleth the rebellious Jews, they had ever resisted the holy Ghost. Acts 7.51. But they both speak of resistance made to the outward Ministry, not to the inward powerful work of the spirit. The use for admonition. For admonition, it serves profitably both to godly Ministers and people, not to despair of any man's conversion, though never so refractory or rebellious to God's ordinance, till they manifest their rejection of God by committing the unpardonable sin, whereof St. John speaks, 1 John 9.16. For he can make a Paul of Saul, and cause the Lion and the Lamb to live together quietly. This indeed ought to be their behaviour, that wish and wait for the means of grace, according to their places, in instruction, exhortation, admonition, and the like, as a Tim. 2.24, 25, 26. in public, if they be Ministers, and in private, if they be private Christians; as Mat. 18.15. etc. If thy brother shall trespass against thee, go and tell him his fault, between thee and him alone; if he shall hear thee, thou hast gained thy brother, etc. For private Christians may be be means of conversion, Jam. 5.19, 20. Brethren, if any of you do err from the truth, and one convert him, let him know, that he, which converteth the sinner from the error of his way, shall save a soul from death, and shall hid a multitude of sins. Secondly, they must pray earnestly to God, for the work of his spirit, 1 John 5.16. If any man see his brother sin a sin, which is not unto death, he shall ask, and he shall give him life, for them that sin not unto death. From unfeigned desire, as Paul did, Rom. 10.1. My heart's desire and prayer to God for Israel is, that they might be saved. And Rom. 9.2,3, I have great heaviness, and continual sorrow in my heart: For I could wish, that myself were accursed from Christ, for my brethren, my kinsmen according to the flesh. Consider David's behaviour for the natural life of his child, 2 Sam. 12.16. David besought God for the child, and David fasted, and went in, and lay all night upon the earth. And shall not the spiritual life of the soul be esteemed much more precious. Thirdly, they must walk before them in the example of a godly life; as St. Peter exhorteth Christian wives to do, before their heathen husbands, 1 Pet. 3.1, 2,3. Ye Wives be in subjection to your husbands, that if any obey not the Word, they also may without the word be won by the conversation of the wives, etc. This godly life hath a gracious promise, Prov. 16.7. When a man's ways please the Lord, he maketh even his enemies to be a● peace with him. The Use for comfort. For comfort, this makes greatly to the godly in the strongest opposition by malicious enemies, let them look up to God, and consider what he can do, either for the confusion or conversion of their enemies: For confusion, see what hath been said before, and add the consideration of Gods dealing with the two Captains, 2 Kings 1.10, 12. and for Gideon against the Midianites, Judg. 7.22. and for Jehosaphat against the three Kings of Moab, Ammon, and mount Seir, 2 Chron. 20.22, 23. For conversion of enemies, God can do it, either to temporal outward kindness, as in Laban towards Jacob, Gen. 31.29. in Esau toward Jacob, Gen. 33.1, 4. or to true sincere and unfeigned love, as in Darius, Dan. 6. and in Saul, that was afterward called Paul, towards the Church, Acts 9.26. Verse 5. And of Zion it shall he said, This and that man was born in her, and the highest himself shall establish her. The meaning of the words. HEre the Psalmist proceeds in the confirmation of that he had said of the City of God, in the third verse, that glorious things were spoken of her: namely, that beside the conversion of many unto her, out of foreign Nations, which had formerly been her greatest enemies, verse 4. she should enjoy within herself a double honour; first, the calling and conversion of many within her, secondly, confirmation and establishment from the most high. For the first, the calling and conversion of many within her is thus expressed; Of Zion it shall be said, this and that man was born in her. Where by birth (as hath been said, verse 4) we must understand, not natural birth by corporal generation, but spiritual birth in regeneration. And the phrase, this and that man, or man and man (as it is in the Hebrew, and the Greeks do so render it) may note out every man (meaning that is converted) as the like words are taken, Est. 1.8. and so Paul saith, Jerusalem which is above is the mother of us all, Gal. 4.26. Or in regard that the phrase, man and man, here used is opposed to the like phrase in the former verse, this man was born there; it seems likest, that here he denoteth the conversion of more in Zion, then in other particular places. The first observation. Mark here then, that it is and shall be Zions glory, and renown, to have man & man born in her, that is, many men of all sorts and conditions born of God, called and converted in her to the true faith. See Is. 54.1. Sing, O harren; thou that didst not bear; break forth into singing, and cry aloud, thou that didst not travel with child: for moe are the children of the desolate, than the children of the married wife, saith the Lord. Which place is best expounded, by Gal. 4.27. Sarah long barren and her son did prefigure Jerusalem from above, the heavenly Jerusalem, Mount Zion, Heb. 12.22. Hagar and Ishmael prefigured the people of the Jews that clavae to the covenant of works, given in Mount Sinai, which gendereth unto bondage, see Gal. 4.22, 26. This glorious thing foreshowed of God's City, received accomplishment, partly in the Apostles time, when even in Jerusalem moe were converted unto the faith, at one or two sermons, than we read of in any other place; three thousand, Acts 2.41. five thousand, Acts 4.4. Believers were the more added to the Lord, multitudes both of men and women, Acts 5.14. But chief it shall be accomplished, in the second calling of the Jews, when all Israel shall he saved, Romans 11.26. The reason is plain: For multitude of converts is a manifest evidence of God's special favour, The Reason. in the blessing of saving grace, which is the greatest renown, that can be; as we may see by Christ's own rejoicing in it, Heb. 2.13. Behold, I and the children, which God hath given me. In ancient time, it was counted a great renown to have many children, as Gen. 30.20. Leah said, God hath endued me with a good dowry; now will my husband dwell with me, because I have born him six sons. And of O bed Edom, that he had eight sons, because God blessed him, 1 Chr. 26.5. How much more than is it an honour to bring forth children unto God? This serves for instruction, and for admonition. For instruction, see here what is the true renown of any Kingdom, The use for instruction. County, City, Parish, or Family; namely, to have man and man born of God there; that is, many people effectually called and converted unto God: as Acts 19 10. There be many things that will commend men in the world, as honour, wealth, beauty, power, etc. but none of these, nor all of them, without an holy calling, will commend men unto God. The use for admonition. For admonition, it serves effectually, both to Ministers and to people, that they give all diligence in God's means for the attaining of this estate. Ministers must endeavour both for themselves and others: and for this end must receive into their own hearts, and dispense to others, the pure word of God, which is the immortal seed of this new birth, as it is called, Jam. 1.18. 1 Pet. 1.23, 25. For their diligence in faithful dispensation, see 2 Tim. 4.1. 1 Cor. 9.16. 1 Cor. 4.2. And, because all their endeavour without God's blessing is nothing, therefore they must pray instantly and earnestly for the blessing of the spirit, to sanctify the word, as St. Paul doth, Ephes. 3.14, etc. For this cause I how my knee unto the Father of our Lord Jesus Christ, of whom the whole family in heaven and earth is named, That he would grant you, according to the riches of his glory, to be strengthened with might, by his spirit, in the inner man. That Christ may dwell in your hearts by faith, that ye being rooted and grounded in love, may be able to comprehend with all Saints, what is the breadth and length, and depth, and height; And to know the love of Christ which passeth knowledge, that ye might be filled with all the fullness of God. And that they may have better title to audience, they must endeavour to walk before God, uprightly and and honestly. For God heareth not sinners; but if any man be a worshipper of God, and doth his will, him he heareth, John 9.31. And the people, seeing the benefit is theirs, must conscionably exercise themselves in the same Christian duties, viz. hearing the Word, praying unto God, and a godly living. For the word, it is the seed, therefore receive it both morning and evening; Consider what Solomon saith, Eccles. 11.6. In the morning sow thy seed, in the evening withhold not thine hand: for thou knowest not, whether shall prosper, either this or that, or whether they both shall be alike good. And seeing the blessing is in the hand of God, not in the means, as Rom. 9.16. Is it not of him that willeth, or of him that runneth, but of God that showeth mercy. And John 1.11, 12, 13. He came unto his own, and his own received him not: But as many as received him, to them gave he power to become the fonnes of God, even to them that believed on his name. Which were born, not of blood, nor of the will of the flesh, nor of the will of man, but of God; therefore must they be instant in prayer, and careful of godly behaviour, that their prayers may be more available with God: as Jam. 5, 16. The effectual fervent prayer of a righteous man availeth much. The second thing in this verse, showing the glorious state of the Church, foreshowed by David is this, The highest himself shall establish her. Which is a great prerogative; for the Church of God hath many and mighty enemies, the devil himself, and all his instruments, who are all wicked spirits, and all wicked men; yet this is sufficient ground of comfort, that the true God, who is Lord of the Church, is above them all, and can restrain, or confound them all, when he will; and can establish his Church and children in the state of grace, unto all eternity. In this prerogative note two things: First, the title whereby God is styled: Secondly, the work he undertakes for the good of his Church. The title is, the highest, or most high; where this is plain, The second observation. The true God is the highest above all, Psal. 97.9. Thou Lord, art high, above all the earth: thou art exalted fare above all Gods, Gen. 14.19, 22. Blessed he Abraham of the most high God, possessor of heaven and earth. The reason. The reason is plain: The true God is infinite in power and Majesty, and others besides him, in heaven and earth, are finite and under him. Great is the Lord, and greatly to be praised, and his greatness is unsearchable. Psalm 145.3. Angels, and authorities, and powers are subject unto him, 1 Pet. 3.22. This serves for instruction, admonition and comfort. For instruction; that we choose the most high for our God, The use for instruction. and labour to know and acknowledge him; as, 1 Chron. 28.9. And thou Solomon my son know thou the God of thy fathers, and serve him with a perfect heart, and with a willing mind; and give him our hearts in love, fear, joy, and confidence; as Prov. 23.26. so shall we be free from the fear of evil, as Psal. 91.1, 2, 9, 10, 14. He that dwelleth in the secret place of the most high, shall abide under the shadow of the Almighty, etc. Because he hath set his love upon me, therefore will I deliver him: I will set him on high, because he hath known my name. The Use for admonition. For admonition; that we make this sovereignty in God, above all others, to be the ground of inward fear, and outward obedience to the true God. See Luke 12.4, 5. Be not afraid of them that kill the body, and after that have no more that they can do: But I will forewarn you, whom ye shall fear: Fear him, which, after he hath killed, hath power to cast into hell; yea, I say unto you, fear him. And add, 1 et. 3.22. who is gone into heaven, and is on the right hand of God, Angels, and authorities, and powers being made subject unto him. The use for comfort. For comfort, it makes greatly to the godly against all oppositions from the great ones of the world. For the most high is their God, and for them: whereupon they may say, as Psal. 118.6. The Lord is on my side, I will not fear what can man do unto me, yea, as Psal. 3.6. I will not be afraid of ten thousands of people, that have set themselves against me round about. Consider what the Prophet Jeremy saith, Jer. 20.11. The Lord is with me as a mighty terrible one, therefore my persecutors shall stumble, and they shall not prevail, they shall be greatly ashamed, for they shall not prosper, their everlasting confusion shall never be forgotten. Also, Dan. 3.16, 17, 18. Shadrach, Mesbach, and Abednego answered and said unto the King, O Nabuchadnezzar, we are not careful to answer thee in this matter. If it be so, our God, whom we serve, is able to diliver us from the burning fiery furnace, and he will deliver us out of thine hand, O King, etc. The second Observation. The second thing to be noted here is, the gracious work which God undertakes for his Church, he himself will establish her. The true God will confirm and establish his Church, and every true member of it, in their good and comfortable estate, against all opposition by their mightiest enemies. See Psal. 46.1, 2,3, 4. God is our refuge and strength; a very present help in trouble. Therefore will we not fear, though the earth be removed, etc. There is a river, the streams whereof shall make glad the City of God. This river is the Lord himself, Is. 33.21, 22. The glorious Lord will be unto us a place of broad rivers and streams, wherein shall go no galley with oars, neither shall gallant ships pass thereby. For the Lord is our judge, the Lord is our Lawgiver, the Lord is our King, he will save us. God is in the midst of her, she shall not be moved. God shall help her, and that right early, Psal. 46.5. God is known in her Palaces for a refuge, Psal. 48.3. The Reason. The reason is, for that God's Church is his, by a more near and peculiar title, than any other people in the world, as namely by election, 1 Pet. 1.2. redemption, Tit. 2.14. sanctification by the spirit, 2 Thess. 2.13, 14. and by special covenant of grace, Psal. 50.5. called a covenant of salt, for the perpetuity of it, 2 Chron. 13.5. from which God will never turn away; as Jer. 32.39, 4●, 42. I will give them one heart, and one way, that they may fear me for ever, for the good of them, and of their children after them. And I will make an everlasting covenant with them, that I will not turn away from them, to do them good: but I will put my fear in their hearts, that they shall not departed from me. Yea, I will rejoice over them, to do them good, and I will plant them in this land assuredly, with my whole heart, and with my whole soul. This serves for instruction, and for admonition. The first use for instruction. For instruction, see that the Church of God, and every true member of it, is more blessed and happy, than the state & condition of any other people: for the most high will establish them; who then can weaken or overthrow their comfortable state? If God be for us, who can be against us? Rom. 8.31. The steps of a good man are ordered by the Lord, and he delighteth in his way. Though he fall, he shall not be utterly cast down; for the Lord upholdeth him with his hand, Psal. 37.23, 24. we●l therefore may it be said of them, as Psal. 144.15. Happy is that people, that is in such a case: yea, happy is that people, whose GOD is the Lord. The second Use for instruction. More particularly, this is a sure ground of perseverance to every true child of God in the state of grace, for they are true members of that Church, which God himself will establish. The use for admonition. For admonition; this must stir up every one effectually to labour, to be truly born again in God's Church: for the Devil goes about, like a roaring lion, seeking whom he may devour, 1 Pet. 5.8. And only they, that be truly regenerate, shall be able to withstand his assaults: for they only have the Lord with them, and for them. Now true regeneration contains a total change, both in mind, heart, and life; and is indeed the work of God, by his spirit, yet, in the means, the word, and prayer, wherein we must exercise ourselves, in an holy manner, and beware we do not quench the spirit, or cool any good motion begun thereby. Verse 6. The Lord shall count, when he writeth up the people, that this man was born there. Selah. The meaning of the words. THis verse setteth out another great privilege of Zion, God's true Church, in regard of the honour, and happiness of every true member of it; namely, that when God writeth down the names of the people, that belong unto him, he doth count and reckon those for his, that be born again in the Church. For the better understanding whereof we must know, that the Prophet doth here speak of God, after the manner of great personages, who use to write, and enrol in a book, the names of those, that they accept and receive into their houses and families, as members thereof, to any place of service; for which see Gen. 40.20. Pharaoh, on his birth day, making a feast unto all his servants, lifted up the head of his chief butler, and of his chief baker, among his servants, that is, taking a view of all his servants, according to their names, written in his book, (as the same phrase is used, Numb. 31.49. there translated, taking the sum, which in Genesis is rendered, lifting up the head) he reckoned his chief butler, and chief baker, among his servants. In like manner, the scripture calleth the Church the house of the living God, 1 Tim. 1.15. and for our better conceiving of his certain, and perfect knowledge, & remembrance, both of all things, that ever were, are, or shall be in the world, and also of all those persons, that in a special manner belong unto him, as true members of his Church on earth, whom he means to glorify in heaven, doth tell us of certain books, which God hath, even three in number, which we may not vafitly thus distinguish by name. First, the book of his eternal prescience, Psal 139.16. Thine eyes did see my substance, yet being unperfect, and in thy book all my members are written, which in continuance were fashioned, when as yet there was none of them. This is nothing else, but his perfect eternal foresight of all things, before they were, whereby he knew them, as perfectly, as if they had been actually written in a book. The second is the book of his actual providence, whereby he doth most perfectly take actual knowledge of, and remember all things whatsoever, even every thought, word, and deed, of every man. Hereof see Psal. 139.1, 2,3. O Lord thou hast searched me, and known me; Thou knowest my down sitting, and mine uprising, thou understandest my thought a fare off, &c, and Psalm 56.8. Thou tellest my wander, put thou my tears into thy bottle: are they not in thy book? and according to this he will judge the world, Rev. 20.12. I saw the dead both small and great stand before God; and the books were opened, and another book was opened, which is the book of life, and the dead were judged, out of those things, which were written in the books, according to their works. The third is the book of life, which is God's eternal purpose, for the saving of his elect by Christ actually declared by their effectual calling, or regeneration, by the holy ghost, in this life, in which estate they are referved and kept for glory. This book may be said to betwice written in. First, from all eternity in God's purpose, whereof see, Rev. 13.8. whose names are not written, in the book of life of the Lamb, slain from the foundation of the world. Secondly, actually in God's work of effectual calling, or regeneration, in the time of natural life, which is termed Gods calling according to purpose, Rom. 8.28. And indeed, of this latter writing in the book of life, by regeneration or effectual calling, is this place to be understood. As if he should have said, That the Church hath great honour, and the true members of it great happiness, is hereby apparent, that when God writes up the people actually in the book of life, that be is, he reckons those for his, that be regenerate, and born again in his Church. In the words thus understood note two things; First, God's work of special mercy to the true members of the Church: Secondly, the quality and condition of those persons, to whom the foresaid work of mercy is certainly vouchsafed. The first observation. For the first, God's special work of mercy, to the true members of the Church, is this, he actually writes their names in the book of life, and then reckons and accounts them to be his own. This is plainly showed in his golden chain, Rom. 8.29, 40, Whom he did foreknow, he also did predestinate, to be conformed to the image of his son, that he might be the first born, among many brethren. Moreover, whom he did predestinate, them he also called, and whom he called, them he also justified; and whom he justified, them he also glorified. Upon this effectual calling he bids his Disciples rejoice, that their names were written in heaven, Luke 10.20. and upon the good effects and signs of effectual calling, he saith of certain teachers, that were zealous of God's glory, in the Church of Philippi, that their names were in the book of life, Phil. 4.3. The reason hereof may be two ways considered. The first Reason. First, of the fact itself in God, writing men's names in the book of life; and that is only Gods good pleasure. According as he hath chosen us in him, before the beginning of the world, that we should be holy, and without blame, before him in love. Having predestinated us unto the adoption of children, by Jesus Christ, to himself, according to the good pleasure of his will, Eph. 1.4, 5. I thank thee O Father, Lord of heaven and earth, because thou hast revealed them unto babes; even so, father, for so it seemed good in thy sight, Mat. 11.25, 26. The second Reason. Secondly, of this manner of expressing Gods special favour, in effectual calling; saying, it is his writing their names in the book of life. For thus he speaketh; partly for his own sake, to manifest the stableness of his counsel, and purpose, for their salvation; for in God's divine wisdom and good pleasure, it is as sure and firm, as if their names were really written in a book: partly also, for the true peace and comfort of those, that be truly and effectually called, that they may not doubt of their happy estate, but in and by this strong consolation of Gods writing their names in the book of life, encourage their hearts to perseverance against all oppositions, from the world, the flesh, and the devil; as Rom. 8.33,35,38,39. Who shall lay any thing to the charge of Gods elect? etc. This serves for instraction, and for admonition. The use for instruction. For instruction, see here that the state of the true members of God's Church, is for God's special favour and life eternal most stable and firm: for God hath written their names amongst his people in the book of life, and accounts them for his own. Now them that be thus his own he loves to the end, John 13.11. The gifts of grace in this calling, are without repentance, Rom. 11.29. This their estate hath a sure foundation, he knoweth them to be his, 2 Tim. 2.19. This is to be marked to arm ourselves against the uncomfortable doctrine of Papists and Arminians, that teach, the true Saints of God may fall from grace. For admonition, to give all diligence unto the assurance of this estate for ourselves, which is St. Peter's counsel, The use for admonition. 2 Pet. 1.5, 6, 7, 10, 11. where also he shows the way, by adding grace to grace, and expressing the truth thereof in obedience. Giving all diligence, add to your faith virtue, and to virtue knowledge, etc. And give diligence to make your calling and election sure; for if ye do these things, ye shall never fall, etc. The second observation. The second point to be noted is, the quality and condition of those parties, whom God writes with his people in the book of life, and so reckons for his own; They are borne there, that is, born again by regeneration in the true Church. See 1 Pet. 1.3, 4. Blessed be the God and father of our Lord Jesus Christ, which according to his abundant mercy, hath begotten us again, unto a lively hope, by the resurrection of Jesus Christ from the dead. To an inheritance incorruptible, and undefiled, and that fadeth not away, reserved in heaven for you. And James 1.18. Of his own will, begat he us, with the word of truth, that we should be a kind of first fruits of his creatures. The Reason. The reason is plain; for by effectual calling, which is actually writing in the book of life, men are brought into spiritual society and fellowship with God in Christ, 1 Cor. 1.9. which necessarily requires regeneration. For the state of man in corrupt nature, is darkness under the power of Satan, which can have no society with God, as 2 Cor. 6.14.16. 2 John 1.6. Therefore it is said, they that are brought to the state of sons by faith, are born again. John 1.12, 13. 1 John 5.1. The first Use for instruction. This serves for instruction, admonition, and comfort. For instruction two ways: First, that man's particular state in soul, for fruition of Gods saving love, and favour in Christ, may be known by ordinary grace without extraordinary revelation. For whosoever is born again, is in that estate, his name is actually written in the book of life, as this text implies, Now, the state of this new birth may be known by faith, 1 John 5.1. with 2 Cor. 13.5. The second Use for instruction. Secondly, see here the great necessity of the faithful dispensation of the word in the preaching of it, unto man's true happiness; for without regeneration there is no salvation, John 3.3, 5. Except a man be born again, he cannot see the Kingdom of God. And the word preached, is the means in which God works, as before, Jam. 1.18. 1 Pet. 1.23.25. Consider, that though God can convert without preaching, by his absolute power, yet he is pleased to work by this means. For, after that in the wisdom of God, the world by wisdom knew not God, it pleased God by the foolishness of preaching, to save them, that believed, 1 Cor. 1.21. as in the Eunuch, Acts 8.27. etc. and in Cornelius, Acts 10.1. etc. The Use for admonition. For admonition, this must stir up every one, to give all diligence, to get into the state of regeneration. It is indeed God's work, but ordinarily by his spirit, in the ministry of the word; both the law, to break up the fallow ground, and the Gospel, to cast in the seed of grace as before, 1 Pet. 1.23.25. We must therefore exercise ourselves in this word, and pray for the word of the spirit, and so to use these ordinances, that we may have title to the work, and blessing of the spirit. In which holy endeavour, breaking of the course of sin, and hungering and thirsting after grace, we must continue, till we find ourselves renewed, and ourselves horn again. The Use for comfort. For comfort, to those that find and feel this blessed work of the new birth; for blessed are they, this work shows their names are written in heaven, and they are kept by the power of God, through faith unto salvation. Let us Took well therefore unto both parts of it, as well in the mortification of corruption, as in the repair and renewing of God's Image, and then we cannot want the comfort of assurance, to have our names written in the book of life. Verse 7. As well the singers, as the players on instruments, shall be there: all my springs are in thee. The meaning of the words. IN these words the Prophet concludes the Psalm, with two most comfortable privileges, and prerogatives of the Church; first, that it is the only place for true delight and pleasure; secondly, that it is the well head of all heavenly and spiritual blessings. The first he expresseth in a Metonymy of the efficient, naming singers and players on instruments, which were special agents, in the cheerful praising of God, under David and Solomon, and in the succeeding times of legal service; as we may see, for David's time, 1 Chron. 9.33. and 25.1, 2,3. Which vocal music did prefigure the joy of the holy Ghost, under the gospel; and so showeth plainly, The first observation. That, the Church of God under the gospel, for the true members of it, is the only place for true spiritual joy and rejoicing for evermore. So it is prophesied, Is. 35.10. The ransomed of the Lord shall return and come to Zion with songs, and everlasting joy upon their heads; they shall obtain joy and gladness, and sorrow and sighing shall flee away. And they shall call thee, the City of the Lord, the Zion of the holy on of Israel. Whereas thou hast been forsaken and hated, so that no man went thorough thee, I will make thee an eternal excellency, a joy of many generations. The Lord shall be thine everlasting Light, and the days of thy mourning shall be ended, Is. 60.14, 15, 20. For your shame ye shall have double, and for confusion they shall rejoice in their portion: therefore in their land they shall possess the double; ever lasting joy shall be unto them, Is. 61.7. See it assured by Christ himself, John 16. 20, 22. Ye shall be sorrowful, but your sorrow shall be turned into joy, your heart shall rejoice, and your joy no man ●●keth from you. And verified in Christians, Acts 2.40.47. They continuing daily with one accord, in the Temple, and breaking bread, from house to house, did eat their meat, with gladness and singleness of heart, praising God, and having favour with all the people, Acts 5.41. They departed from the presence of the Council, rejoicing that they were counted worthy, to suffer shame for his name. As 1 Pet. 1.8. Believing, ye rejoice with joy unspeakable, and full of glory, 1 Thess. 5.16. Rejoice evermore. And, rejoice in the Lord always; again, I say, rejoice, Phil. 4.4. The true ground hereof, is from the incomparable blessings of the covenant, vouchsafed to the true members of his Church. The first reason. For first, in Christ Jesus, God himself doth betroath them unto him, yea marry them and become their most dear, and loving husband; as Hos. 2.19, 20. Is. 54.5. Now times of espousal are times of rejoicing. Let us be glad, and rejoice, and give honour to him, for the marriage of the Lamb is come, Rev. 19.7. With gladness and rejoicing shall they be brought; they shall enter into the King's Palace, Psal. 45.15. We will be glad, and rejoice in thee, we will remember thy love, more than wine: saith the Church to Christ, Cant. 1.4. Secondly, he doth fit them for his near spiritual society, by giving his own son, The second Reason. to be their Saviour and Redeemer, washing away their sins in his blood, 1 Cor. 1.30. He is made unto us of God wisdom, righteousness, sanctification, and redemption, Ephes. 5.25.26. Christ gave himself for his Church, that he might sanctify, and cleanse it, and make it to himself a glorious Church, etc. Now the remembrance hereof is matter of exceeding great joy, Luke 2.10. Therefore the blessed Virgin Mary saith, My soul doth magnify the Lord, and my spirit hath rejoiced in God my saviour, Luke 1.46, 47. The third Reason. Thirdly, he bestoweth on them is holy spirit, John 14.16, 17. for whosoever hath not the spirit of God, is none of his, Rom. 3.9. Now this spirit is the fountain of joy, and thereupon is called the Comforter: the graces whereof he doth plentifully bestow upon them, and therein gives them cause of everlasting joy. The fourth Reason. Fourthly, God sendeth and continueth unto them his blessed word, the gospel of peace, and the word of their reconciliation with God, and of salvation to their souls; whereof the Psalmist saith, Blessed are the people, that know the joyful sound, Psalm 89.15. and the Apostle Paul, out of the Prophet Isaiah. How beautiful are the feet of them, that preach the gospel of peace, and bring glad tidings of good things, Rom. 10.15. Solomon saith, light is a pleasant thing, Eccles. 11.7. Now the gospel preached is a spiritual light, that shineth unto those that sit in darkness, and in the shadow of death, even to guide their feet in the way of peace; than which, nothing can be more pleasant and joyful, see Mat. 4.16. Luke 1.77, 79. The fifth Reason. Fiftly, God's special providence is over his Church, not only to preserve them from evil, both corporal and spiritual, which their enemies would bring upon them; but also to enrich them, with all needful comforts and blessings, both temporal and spiritual. In that day sing ye unto her, a vineyard of red wine, I the Lord do keep it, I water it every moment, lest any hurt it; I will keep it night and day, Is. 27.2,3. This is that keeper of Israel, who doth neither slumber nor sleep, who keepeth his Church from all evil. The Sun shall not smite her by day, nor the Moon by night. The Lord shall preserve thee from all evil: he shall preserve thy soul. The Lord shall preserve thy going out, and thy coming in, from this time forth, even for evermore, Psal. 121.3. etc. This serves for instruction, and for admonition. The use for instruction. For instruction, it showeth plainly, that natural men are fearfully blinded, by the God of this world; for they live in the Church among the godly, yet they do not conceive of, nor discern their happy estate: as St. John saith, the world knoweth us not, 1 John3. 1. They think the state of a Christian to be very forlorn and miserable, void of all content and comfort; therefore do they debase them in their esteem, accounting them the filth of the world, and the onscouring of all things, 1 Cor. 4.13. They reproach and revile them, with most base and odious terms: as 2 Kings 9.11. What did this mad fellow with thee? Acts 24.5. We have found this man a pestilent fellow. And Festus says, Paul thou art beside thyself, much learning doth make thee mad, Acts 26.24. Yea Christ's own friends judged so of him, Mark 3.21. and the Jews said, he hath a devil and is mad, why hear ye him, John 10.20. Now, if they do this to the green tree, what will they do to the dry, Luke 23.31. But wisdom is justified of her children, Mat. 11.19. As the things, that are magnified in the world, are abomination with God, Luke 16.15. see it in the lukewarmness of the Laodiceans, Rev. 3.16, 17, 19 So the things that are magnified with the Lord, are abominable to the world; as to live godly, making conscience of all sin, and of every good duty, and being zealous of God's glory. Whereby we may see, that the veil of ignorance hangs over their eyes. They can no better discern the happy state of the godly, than a blind man can judge of colours. The Use for admonition. For admonition, this serves notably to move every one to be as careful, to become a true member of the Church, as he is desirous of true and lasting joy. The way is hewed, 1 Pet. 2.4, 6. in so yielding to God's means of an holy calling, that we forsake our sinful ways, as Is. 55.7. do come to Christ by faith, and as living stones be builded on him, the tried corner stone, to become a spiritual house. Which estate we must testify, by the properties of the godly, who be true Citizens of Zion, set down particularly, Psal. 15. and Psal. 24.3, 4. And so we shall find, that a day in God's Courts is better, than a thousand elsewhere, Psalm 84.10. Better to be a doorkeeper here, than a Commander elsewhere, For here is the true comforter, and no where else: the world cannot receive him, John 14.17. This seems to be otherwise by a double affliction, that doth follow the Church, Objection. and the true members of ●t; one from the world in persecution, as Christ foretold, John 16.33. the other from the Lord, in terror of soul, and sorrow for sins, as Job 3.24, 26. Wherefore hidest thou thy face, and holdest me for thine enemy? For thou writest bitter things against me, and makest me to possess the iniquities of my youth. And Psal. 38.3, 4. There is no soundness in my flesh, because of thine anger, neither is there any rest in my bones, because of my sin. For mine iniquities are gone over my head, as an heavy burden, they are too heavy for me. The first affliction, from men, Answer. hindereth not the fruition of this spiritual joy, as Acts 5.41, They went away, from the Council rejoicing, that they were counted worthy to suffer shame for his name. Ye rejoice in the faith, though for a time ye be in heaviness, through manifold temptations, I Pet. 1.6. Whereupon St. James bids them count it exceeding great joy, when they fall into sundry temptations, Jam. 1.2. And our saviour Christ bids the godly rejoice, and be exceeding glad, when they are persecuted and reviled for righteousness sake, Mat. 5.10, 11, 12. And the second affliction, from the hand of God, in terror of soul, is but a temporary bitter preparative unto everlasting joy. The Lord, for their true, and through humiliation, doth visit upon them the days of Baalim, but afterward he will betroath them to himself, as Hos. 2.13, 14.18, 19 Though they sow in tears, they shall reap enjoy, etc. Psal. 126.5, 6. Thus are they chastened of the Lord, that they might not be condemned with the world, 1 Cor. 11.32. Say therefore with the Church, I will bear the indignation of the Lord, because I have sinned against him, until he plead my cause, and execute judgement for me. He will bring me forth to the light, and I shall behold his righteousness, Mic. 7.9. The second observation. All my springs are in thee. The last prerogative of the Church, that in it be all the well-springs and fountains of all Gods spiritual and heavenly blessings. Springs, we know, are such places, whence water doth flow out of the earth, constantly, and continually, for the refreshing of man and beast, and by fit resemblance, the Lord would have us to conceive, that in his Church, he doth provide plenty and store of all spiritual and heavenly blessings. Two spiritual springs of blessings in the true Church. This will more plainly appear, if we consider what spiritual fountains, and springs of blessings, be in ●he true Church and no where else. The first, and chief wellspring of all blessings, is the true God; 1. The true God. who is therefore called the fountain of living waters, Jer. 2.23. And, according to the threefold use of water-springs, to the sons of men, may we well conceive the true God to be the fountain of blessings to his Church. First, water springs serve for washing, cleansing and purifying. So God in Christ Jesus doth open a fountain to the house of David, and to the inhabitants of Jerusalem (which is his true Church) for sin and for uncleanness, Zechar. 13.1. The blood of Jesus Christ cleanseth us from all sin, 1 John. 1.7. Secondly, water springs serve to make fruitful both herbs and plants, that grow thereby. So God in Christ, by his spirit, maketh the hearts and souls of his children fruitful in grace. I will pour water upon him that is thirsty, and stoods upon the dry ground; I will pour my spirit upon thy seed, and my blessing upon thine offspring. And they shall spring up, as among the grass, as willows by the water courses, Is. 44.3, 4. Thirdly, springs of waters are very comfortable, and yield great refreshing both to man and beast, especially in hot countries and time of drought, see Gen. 21.15, 19 Judg. 15.18, 19 Psal. 104.10, 11, 12. So God in Christ, by his spirit, which is the comforter, becomes the everlasting fountain of spiritual refreshing, to the hearts and souls of all his children. O God my God, early will I seek thee; my soul thirsteth for thee, my flesh longeth for thee in a dry and thirsty land, where no water is. Because thy loving kindness it better than life, my lips shall praise thee, Psal. 63.1,3. If any man thirst, let him come unto me, and drink. He that believeth on me, as the Scripture hath said; out of his belly shall flow rivers of living waters. This spoke he of the spirit, which they that believe on him should receive, John 7.37,38, 39 Whosoever drinketh of the water, that I shall give him, shall never thirst, but the water, that I shall give him, shall be in him a well of water springing up into everlasting life, John 4.14. 2. The Evangelicall Ministry. The second spring of blessings in the Church, is the Evangelicall ministry, even the gospel preached, and Sacraments administered, sanctified by prayer for the blessing of the spirit. Hereof the Lord saith, A fountain shall come forth out of the house of the Lord, and shall water the valley of Shittim, Joel 3.18. And to the same end serves the vision of waters coming from under the door threshold of the sanctuary, Ezek. 47.1. etc. both which may be well expounded by, Is. 2.3. for out of Zion shall go forth the law, and the word of the Lord from Jerusalem. Now this derived wellspring, of the Evangelicall ministry, serveth instrumentally in the Church. First, for washing and cleansing the foul, from the filth of sin. Therefore hath God ordained Baptism, to represent our spiritual washing in Christ's blood, by the holy ghost; whereof also with the word it becomes a gracious instrument, when this free spirit pleaseth, John 3.8. The 〈◊〉 bloweth, where it listeth. So is every one that is born of the spirit. Not by works of righteousness, which we have done, but according to his mercy, he saved us, by the washing of regeneration, and renewing of the holy Ghost, Tit. 3.5. That he might sanctify, and cleanse it, with the washing of water, by the word. Secondly, for making the heart fruitful in grace. Therefore is the gospel called the work of his grace, Acts 20.32. and is said to bring forth fruit, Colos. 1.6. Thirdly, for ministering spiritual joy and refreshing to the soul; therefore is the whole Evangelicall ministry called the ministry of the spirit, which is the Comforter, 2 Cor. 3.8. because it worketh therewith, 1 Cor. 3.5. and is given therein, Gal. 3.2. And we through patience, and comfort of the Scripture, have hope, Rom. 15.4. God's words to Jeremy were the joy and rejoicing of his heart, Jer. 15.16. David rejoiced therein, as one that findeth a great spoil. And the Lords Supper is the seal of our redemption and salvation in Christ, the tidings whereof is exceeding great joy, Luke 2.10. Now, all these fountains are in the Church and no where else. The world is without the true God by covenant of grace, Eph. 2.12. and so hath nothing but dry p●ts, and cisterns that hold no water; as Jer. 2.13. And the Evangelicall ministry is not out of the Church; for when it comes among the heathen, it is Gods merciful visitation to take out of them a people for his name, Acts 15.14. See Psalm 147.19, 20. He showeth his word unto Jacob, his statutes and his judgement unto Israel, He hath not dealt so with any nation, and as for his judgements they have not known them. The Reason. The reason hereof is Gods own good pleasure; as of mere grace and favour, choosing them in Christ, and accepting them into covenant, so vouchsafing the participation of these spiritual springs, and fountains of heavenly blessings unto them, that hereby they may be fitted, for society and fellowship with him, and become such as he may take delight and pleasure in. See Ezek. 16.8. etc. When I passed by thee, and looked upon thee, Behold, thy time was the time of love, and I spread my skirt over thee and covered thy nakedness: yea, I swore unto thee and entered into a covenant with thee, saith the Lord God, and thou becamest mine. Then washed I thee with water, etc. If I wash thee not, thou hast no part in me, john 13.8. This serves for instruction, admonition, and comfort. The first Use for instruction. For instruction two ways: First, hence will plainly follow, that out of the Church there is no salvation; for these springs are the wells of salvation, Is. 12.3. and the text saith, they are all in the Church, which is plain by induction. They, that are out of the Church, are without Christ, and without God in the world, Eph. 2.12. And with him only in Christ, is the Well of life, Psal. 36.9. He, that hath not the son, hath not life. 1 John 5.12. And wanting Christ, they cannot have the spirit, John 14.17. and so cannot be sanctified, nor saved. The second Use for instruction. Secondly, see here the surpassing excellency and happiness of the Church, above all other states of people in the world. The Church is as the garden of Eden, wherein is a pure river of the water of life, and the tree of life, Rev. 22.1, 2. whereas the rest of the world is as a barren wilderness, Jer. 17.6, 8. The Church is like the heritage of Jacob, blessed of God, and the rest of the world, like the Mountains of Esau, which God hath cursed, Mal. 1.2,3, 4. The Church is the Father's house, where every servant hath meat enough, the rest of the world is like the Citizen's fields, where husks with hogs are the best provision, Luke 15.16, 17. The true Church is like the land of Canaan, flowing with milk and honey, that drinketh water of the rain of heaven: a land which the Lord himself careth for: the eyes of the Lord are always upon it, the rest of the world is as the land of Egypt, which men water with their feet, Deut. 11.10, 11, 12. The first Use for admonition. For admonition, it serves two ways. First to natural men, to stir them up to consider seriously of these privileges of the Church, to have all God's springs in her, that so they may be affected towards her, as David was, Psal. 84.1, 2. How amiable are thy Tabernacles, O Lord of hosts. My soul longeth, yea even fainteth for the Courts of the Lord: my heart, and my flesh cryeth out for the living God, Psal. 42.1, 2. As the Hart panteth after the water brooks, so panteth my soul after thee, O God. My soul thirsteth for God, for the living God: when shall I come and appear before God? Psal. 63.1. O God, thou art my God, early will I seek thee: my soul thirsteth for thee, my flesh longeth for thee, in a dry and thirsty land, where no water is. Psal. 122.1. I was glad when they said unto me: Let us go into the house of the Lord. Yea of Sampsons' mind, Judg. 15.18, 19 crying out after these springs, as for the means of spiritual and eternal life. The second Use for admonition. Secondly, to all that profess themselves to be members of the Church, that they labour to give evidence of their participation of these springs of God in his Church, which they shall do three ways. First, by the abolishing of corruption in regard of dominion: being purged from sin, and from uncleanness, by the blood of Christ: as the Corinthians were after their effectual calling. 1 Cor. 6.11. Such were some of you: but ye are washed, but ye are sanctified, but ye are justified, in the name of the Lord Jesus, and by the spirit of our God. Secondly, by becoming fruitful in grace, and plentiful in good works, by the blessing of the spirit, sanctifying the ministry of the word, as St. Paul testifieth of the Churches, 1 Cor. 1.5, 7. In every thing ye are enriched by him, in all utterance, and in all knowledge. So that ye come behind in no gift, Phil. 1.11. Being filled with the fruits of righteousness, which are by Jesus Christ, unto the glory and praise of God, Colos. 1.6.10. Which (speaking of the Gospel) is come unto you, as it is in all the world, and bringeth forth fruit as it doth also in you. That ye might walk worthy of the Lord, unto all pleasing, being fruitful in every good work; and increasing in the knowledge of God. And as the Lord foreshowed in the vision of waters, Ezek. 47.1, etc. Thirdly, by joyful and cheerful going on in their holy profession: as the Apostle commandeth, Phil. 4.4. Rejoice in the Lord always: and again, I say, rejoice. For we are the circumcision, which worship God in the Spirit, and rejoice in Christ Jesus, Phil. 3.3. The Use for comfort. For comfort, this makes greatly to the true members of the Church, in the sorest distresses that can befall them. First, doth the sense of corruption, and guilt of transgression make thee ugly in thine own sight? Go to the cleansing fountain, and spring of Christ's blood, and with the hand of faith wash and cleanse thy sinful soul, and pray the Lord to wash thee throughly, as David did, Psalm 51.2. wherewith if thou join upright endeavour after reformation in practice, thou mayst rest assured, that the blood of Jesus Christ shall cleanse thee from all thy sins, 1 John 1 7, 9 Secondly, doth the barrenness of thine heart, in the want of grace, make thee afraid? Then get thee to the sanctifying fountain of God's holy spirit, which is the spirit of grace: beg of God the good fruits of this spirit, in love, joy, peace, long-suffering, faith, etc.— Remember who made Aaron's rod to bud, Numb. 17. ●, 8. and who can raise up children unto Abraham of stones? as Mat. 3.9. to whom all things are possible, Mat. 19.36. and nothing is too hard, Jer. 32.27. Lastly, doth heaviness and deadness of heart oppress thee? Then get thee to the comforter, even to God in Christ by his holy spirit: who is the God of hope that can fill thee with all joy in believing, Rom. 15.13. FINIS. A Table of some special matters, contained in these Expositions of the 27.84.85. and 87. PSALMS. The first number hath reference to the Psalm, the second to the Page. A. Abraham. HOw the Sons of Abraham may be known. 85.26. Affliction. How to be so prepared for afflictions, as that we may glorify God under them. 27.42, 43. How the godly may comfort themselves in afflictions. 27.47. All affliction comes by divine dispensation. 85.36. The difference between God's children and natural men under affliction. 85.43, 44. Anger. Anger what it is: how and why ascribed unto God in Scripture. 85.18, 19 Special means to turn away God's anger. 85.22, 23. God's anger may continue long towards his own people, and why. 85.37,38,39. Anointed. All true believers are Gods anointed. 84.67, 68 What we must do that we may be of the number of Gods anointed one's. 84.68, 69. Answer. Why God doth sometimes deny to give gracious answers to the prayers of his servants. 27.56. What we must do that we may be enabled to to wait and listen for a gracious answer when we have prayed. 85.60.61. What is required of men that they may walk worthy of the Lord, and labour in some measure to answer his bounty. 85.92. Apostasy. They that end in Apostasy began in hypocrisy, or at least had only an humane acquired faith. 27.89, 90. Assembly. Christian Assemblies for Evangelicall worship are lovely places. 84.15. B. Behave. HOw Gods children must behave themselves, when he hides his face from them. 27.73. men's behaviour and carriage towards their brethren, will discover and manifest their estate and condition before God. 85.89. Blessing. The right way to partake of the best blessings. 27.129, 130. What it is to be blessed. 84.36. The difference between God's children and natural men, in the fruition of temporal blessings. 85.48. Though many times they want the possessions, yet the right of all God's blessings, belongs to them that are in Christ. 85.90. They that live in sin and want faith, have no part in the best blessings, have starved souls, though in pampered and well clad bodies. 85.92. There is small hope of God's blessing to accompany the devils getting. 85.92. The earthly blessings of God's providence are attendants on the heavenly blessings of his grace. 85.93. Book. God hath three Books, and what they are. 87.122. C. Calling. HOw men must wait upon the Gospel preached, for an holy calling. 87.106. Effectual calling is actually writing in the book of life. 87.125. Captivity. What sins brought the Captivity. 85.10. Censure. He that shall refuse subjection to the censure of the Church, must be cast out as an heathen. 85.101. Charms. Conjurer's charms are prayers to the devil. 85.28. Church. What wonderful blessings are certainly enjoyed in God's house his Church, and no where else. 27.25, 26, 27. In the visible Church, hypocrites may have a place for outward worship. 84.10. God's Church on earth is fitly compared to the Moon, and why. 85.34. God's true Church seeking God's salvation pleads mercy not merit. 85.56. The true Church is a spiritual building of Gods own founding and making. 87.79. The inseparable property of God's true Church, is, that it is holy and sanctified. 87.82. Profane and wicked persons are no true and lively members of the Church. 87.82, 83. God loves his Church above all other states and conditions of men in the world whatsoever. 87.85. The greatness of God's love to his Church seen in three things. 87.86, 87, 88, 89, 90. How to know the true Church, and how to become true members of it. 87.93. The true Church of God is his own city. 87.95. God's Church is as Noah's Ark, unto which all must come, that look to be saved from the deluge of damnation. 87.96. What the way into Christ's Church is. ibid. Why God doth mention glorious things, to belong to his Church. 87.98, 99 The outward state of God's Church in this world, is many times not only mean but miserable. 87.99. The happiness of God's Church and children, must be measured by their present title to God's favour in Christ, and their certain title to future glory. ibidem. God's Church is God's kingdom, into which man in the corrupt state of nature cannot enter, as heir to inherit. 87.107. By what titles God's Church is his, more than any other people in the world. 87.120. The Church of God is the only place for spiritual joy. 87.127. What incomparable blessings God vouchsafeth to his Church, which makes it the place for spiritual joy. 87.128.129. Out of the Church no salvat on, and why. 87. ●34, ●35. The Church of God is surpassing excellent and happy, above all other states of people in the world. 87.135. Comfort. True courage and comfort in evil times is the Lords gift. 27.9. The right way to sound comfort and true patience in any distress or bodily misery. 84.44, 45. Contempt. God's people sometimes are in great contempt, and why. 85.74. Conversion. No man's conversion is to be despaired of. 87.113. What they must do that wish and wait for the conversion of rebels. 87.113, 114. Multitude of converts is an evidence of God's special favour. 87.116. Corruption. Natural corruption judgeth many of God's ways unequal. 27.98. The terror that corruption causeth in the godly, may easily manifest how terrible the tyranny of it is in natural men. 27.108. How to know where corruption bears dominion. 27.108, ●09, 110. Corruption of nature in the heart bewrays its dominion in natural men by their ordinary practice of sin in life. 27.122, 123. Original corruption is in God's people in a different manner and measure, according to their estate before God. 85.13, 14. Original corruption is not quite taken away by baptism. 85.14. Covenant. They that stand rightly in covenant with God are in an happy estate. 27.4. How to get into Covenant with God. 27.6. Countenance. We should labour in our countenances, to express truly the affections of our hearts. 84.64, 65. Courage. The way to get spiritual courage. 27.141, 142. Courts. God's Courts are the place of his solemn worship here on earth. 84.70. D. Delay. WHy God sometimes useth long delays in answering the prayers of his children. 84.58. Deliverance. Deliverance by unlawful means is not of God, but the devil. 85.58. Disease. Sin is a deadly disease in the soul, to which turning back is a spiritual relapse more dangerous than a corporal. 85.68. Displeasure. The sense of God's displeasure in a state of misery, is to God's people as a state of death, and why. 85.42, 43. Doubling. Doubling requests in prayer, shows fervency and earnestness for audience. 84.57. Dwell. What it is to dwell in God's house. 27.24,32. Three things required of them that would dwell in God's house. 27.29. God's public dwelling places are the holy assemblies of ministers and people in holy worship. 84.13. E. Egyptian. BY Egyptian bondage was figured the servitude of sin, to which there must be no returning back. 85.68. Enemies. God's d●●rest children 〈◊〉 be in the hand of their enemies. 27.114. Wicked men are the greatest enemies to the welfare of any estate, Church, Commonwealth or family. 85.39. By what sins in a special manner men stand in enmity a ainst Christ. 85.97, 98. God's power is such, that he cannot only confound, but even convert the greatest enemies of his Church. 87.112. Inquire. What benefits come by enquiring of God. 27.36. The Church of the new Testament is not inferior to the Church of the Jews, but preferred before it, for means to inquire of God. 27.37,38. Example. It is a dangerous thing to neglect good example. 27.53. Experience. Experience of Gods ●elp in former evils is a ground of prayer for present favour in renewed troubles. 27.79. Extremity. Man's extremity is God's opportunity. 27.78. F. Faith. FAith is profitable for all things. 27.132. True faith is never severed from true repentance and new obedience. 27.133. What faith is. 27.141. The difference between acquired and infused faith. 87.109. Favour. God's special favour must not be measured by outward things. 84.26. God's favour is highly to be esteemed: 84.65. How to obtain God's favour. ibidem. Fear. That the godlies fear comes from the weakness of their faith. 27.8. Servile fear was not in Ad●m, till he sinned against God. 27. 100LS. What they must do that desire to be freed from fear and endued with confidence. 27.21. Gild of sin brings fearfulness. 27.141. Salvation is far from them that want the fear of God. 85.71. The marks of them that truly fear God. ibidem. How to get the fear of God. 85.71, 72. Fervency. Fervency makes much to the efficacy of desires. 84.24. Folly. Sin is folly and why. 85.66. Foundation. When we are squared and fitted as living stones to lie upon Christ as our foundation. 87.81. Fountain. God is a fountain of blessings to his Church, and why. 87.132. Friends. The truest friends to the peace and prosperity of any place, as Kingdom, Town or family, are such as fear God. 85.75. Fruitful. How we may be fruitful to God for his salvation in Christ. 85.95. G. Gifts. GOod gifts from God both temporal and spiritual accompany his salvation in Christ, and why. 85.89, 90. Glory. Wherein the great glory of God's people doth consist. 85.74. What things move God to take away glory from a land. 85.75. Where true glory dwells. 85.77. Godliness. Great gain in true godliness. 27.85. Goodness. They that have received good things from God, must be careful to continue in God's goodness. 85.92. Grace. Grace in the heart will discover itself in the words of the mouth and the actions of the life. 84.23. Grace absolutely necessary to the welfare of the soul. 84.48. Saving grace to the soul is a supernatural gift of God, not in the power of man himself to get. ibidem. Man's being in the state of grace may be truly and certainly known. 87.108, 126. Gild. How the child of God under the guilt of sin differeth from the unregenerate. 27.90. H. Hearing. TO make them able and willing to bear the cross is a gracious hearing to the prayer of the afflicted. 27.56. Heart. God hath special regard unto the heart above all the parts of man. 27.67. There is sweet intercourse between the Lord and an upright heart. 27.69. Helper. How we may have the true God for our helper. 27.78. Hid. The fignes of God's favour may be hid sometimes from God's dearest servants. 27.81. God's hiding his face is a sign of his anger. 84.63. Holiness. Gods mean for holiness, and how they must be used, 87.84. How holiness must be expressed. ibidem. Hope. Hope of audience is that which openeth the mouth of invocation. 84.21. I Jacob. Why God is called the God of Jacob. 84.58, 59 Idolatry. Idolatry and impiety deprive a people of this prerogative to have the true God to be the God of their salvation. 85.26. Immutable The true God is immutable, not only in his essence, but also in his love towards his elect. 27.79. Importunity. God is delighted with his servants importunities. 84.23. Incarnation. What the main benefits of Christ's incarnation are. 85.98. Iniquity. God's own people that are his by covenant have their iniquities. 85.13. Instrument It pleaseth God sometimes to ascribe the effect to the instrument, and why. 85.25. Joy. Affliction from men hindereth not the fruition of spiritual joy. 87.131. Irresistible The gracious work of God's Holy Spirit is irresistible. 87.112, 113. Judea. Judea called God's Land, and why. 85.6, 7. Justice. What way God makes for the satifying of his justice in forgiving the inquities of his people. 85.17. K. Knowledge. WHat is required to such a knowledge of God as may entitle us to his society 87.103. L. Lead. WHat we must do that we may be such as God will lead. 27.101. Light. Where God is the light of grace and comfort to the soul, he will be the light of joy and gladness to the heart. 27.4 How it may appear that God is become the light of grace unto our souls. 27.5. The light of nature is but darkness in the ways of God. 27.94. Lock. To look upon the miseries of others, is a means to move compassion towards them. 84.64. M. Magistrates. MAgistrates should show themselves towards the godly as shields. 84 61. Malice. Malice & hatred against the godly shows wicked men to be the children of the Devil. 27.14. Means. Neglect of the use of the means of grace is, and willbe the condemnation of many. 27.111, 112. Meet. Where mercy and truth do meet together. 85.88. Members. How to know who are true Members of Christ. 85.27. Mercy. Mercy and kindness in God is the moving cause of his saving us both temporally and eternally. 85.55. They that have no good title to God's mercy, can have no good assurance of God's salvation. 85.36. What Gods mercy is. 85.76. Music. Vocal Music in the times of legal service did prefigure the joy of the Holy Ghost under the Gospel. 87.127. N. Natural. WHerein the child of God differs from natural men. 85.15. Natural men that cannot pray so well as they should, must pray as they can, and get others to pray for them. 85.32. Nature. The wisdom and will of nature is to oppose the means of conversion. 85.31. O. Obstinate. WHen men grow obstinate in sin, God becomes resolute in purishment. 85.38. Operative. God's graces and blessings towards his children are operative it them towards their brethren. 85.89. Ordinances. The Ordinances of Religion instituted by Christ in his Church, and the observavance thereof required both of Ministers and people, are all most just and righteous. 85.100. P. Pardon. WHen God hath pardoned sin, he doth not behold it. 27.120. Pardon of sin is the prerogative of God's people above all others. 85.17. Patience. How we may be enabled to give evidence of our faith in God by p●tient bearing the trial which his providence layeth on us. 27. 100LS, 103. Waiting on God is the holy a●t or work of patience. 29.136. The sure way to Christian patience. 27.138. Peace. What graces give title to true peace. 85.63. The extent of that peace which God promiseth to his people. 85.64. God's peace what it is. 85.81. Perfect. A perfect heart is discerned by an obedient life. 27.15. Perjury. Perjury puts upon God the person of the Devil. 85.22. Persecution. How to make good use of persecution. 27.102. Perseverance The true ground of the perseverance of the godly in the state of grace is not in themselves, but in and from the Lord. 27.100. and 87.109. Piety. Piety gives evidence of being in covenant with God. 27.85. Place. How to judge rightly of difference of place in respect of holiness. 84.12. Plenty. Great plenty doth attend true piety. 85.93. Praise. Praising God is not a thing indifferent, but a necessary duty. 84.35. Prayer. How prayer is prevalent with God against enemies. 27.115, 116. What is to be done in times of danger besides praying unto God for preservation. 27.116, 117. What difference there is both in judgement and practice between the godly and the wicked about prayer in affliction. 85.53. How we may be enabled to press upon God by our humble and earnest prayers when he seemeth to oppress us with his judgements. 85.53, 54. Neglect of prayer is the brand of an Atheist, and liable to a grievous curse. 85.101. Popery. Popery is a false faith; amongst God's people in comparison of true religion as the worship of the golden calves. 85.8. It is the impiety of Popery to set up other Saviour's then the true God. 85.26. Preaching. Preaching of the word is necessary unto man's true happiness. 87.126. Profession. Profession without practice is nothing but hypocrisy. 27.76. Promise. Promises of temporal blessings are to be understood with exception of the cross, 27.8, 17, 133. Profaneness. Profaneness among the professors of the true religion argueth a dead faith. 85.9. Profane men deceive themselves when they lay claim to be God's people. 85.62. R. Regeneration. FAith and Regeneration do accompany each other. 87.108. Regeneration is the proper fruit of the spirit of Adoption. ibidem. What we must do to get and keep the state of regeneration. 87.109, 110. In the work of regeneration the riches of God's love and mercy is seen. 87.111. True regeneration contains a total change both in mind, heart, and life. 87.121. Repentance. What repentance is. 27.141. Repining. Repining against God's correction continued is a fruit of corruption. 85.47. Rejoice, God's people delivered from affliction rejoice in God, and how. 85.47, 48. Rhetoric. The use of Rhetoric is lawful, even in the dispensation of God's word, and some competent knowledge therein necessary, for the right interpretation of the same. 27.197. Righteous. God is righteous even then when his dealing seems most strange to us: and how we may bring our hearts to be resolved he is so. 85.45, 46. God's righteousness what it is. 85.81. S. Sacrifice. WHat spiritual sacrifices are. 84.68. Saints. God's people are his Saints, and how they come to be so. 85.61, 62. Sanctification. What sanctification is. 27, 141. Salvation. That God becomes our spiritual and eternal salvation is known three ways. 27.5. What we must do that the God of salvation may become our God. 85.26, 27. Scripture. Scripture is the perfect register of Gods revealed will. 27.96. What a profitable and comfortable thing it is to be much conversant in Scripture. 87.99. Separate. What things tend to separate between God and his people. 85.8, 9 Service. The service of God is not an arbitrary matter. 27.64. Servant. To be God's servant is a good step towards the attainment of God's favour. 27.74. The properties of good servants. 27.76. All Gods servants are in ordinary, not as retainers. 84.33,34. Shield. What we must do that we may have God to be our shield. 84.62. Sinne. Reigning sin and saving grace cannot stand together. 27.22 Reigning sin is spiritivall leprosy. 27.29. Sin's dominion is for the souls damnation. 27.108. Sin is such a thing as God cannot endure, no, not in his own people. 85.19. Sovereignty. Sovereignty in God ought to be the ground of inward fear and outward obedience to him. 87.119. Springs. What spiritual springs and fountains of blessings are in the true Church and no where else. 87.132.133. The Evangelicall Ministry is a spring of blessings in the Church of God, and why. 87.133. How men may give evidence of their participation of the springs of God in his Church. 87.136. Stability. Whence the true Church of God in general, and every true member thereof in particular, have their stability. 84.13. and 87.80. The state of every true member of God's Church is for God's special favour and life eternal most stable and firm. 87.109, 124. Strength. How God doth strengthen the hearts of his children. 27.144, 145. What we must do that we may be such as whose be●●●● God will strengthen in evil times. 27.146. What we must do that we may be strong in the Lord. 84.38. T. Tabernacle. A Brief view of the several parts of God's Tabernacle, considered, with the several ends for which they were ordained. 84.10, 11. God's Tabernacle is the wooing place between Christ and his Church. 84.14. The Gospel preached is to us God's Tabernacle. 84.50. Teach. Who they are whom God will teach. 27.96. Temporal. Of temporal blessings God many times gives a greater portion to the wicked then to his children. 27.129. Terror. Terror of soul to God's children is but a temporary bitter preparative unto everlasting glory. 87.131. Thirst. Worldly thirsts there are in many, godly thirst is rare to be found, and how it will appear. 84.49. Time-servers. Three sorts of time-servers. 84.34. Titles. The holy titles whereby God is styled in Scripture must be understood & made use of, both to terrify from sin, and to encourage in faith and obedience. 85.59. Trouble. Why Gods childen while they live here on earth are liable to many and great troubles. 27.40. Worldly troubles may hasten us sooner to the Kingdom of heaven, but they cannot ●●prive us of it. 27.66. In times of trouble nothing can be better for us then to have the Lord for our shield. ●4. 62. T●●●●. We may trust to men as the means, but not as the foundation of our help. 27.88. Those that be truly godly trust not in themselves, but put all their trust in the Lord. 27.100. They that trust in the Lord will not use unlawful means to help themselves out of misery, but will wait his leisure. ●5. 27. Truth. What Gods truth is. 85.76. Turn. Why God doth bid men turn, though of themselves they cannot and why such commands are not unjust or vain. 85.31. W. Wait. BY waiting on God we are surely entitled to singular benefits. 27.137. Want. Want may befall the godly, not as a curse, but as a correction. 85.93. Way. The way of help is never shut to the prayer ●f faith. 27.78. In God's ways there is safety. 27.95. Worship. Neither dignity nor distress should exempt men from the zealous pursuit of God's holy worship. 84.3. Till we have hearts for Gods worship we have ●o souls fit for heaven. 84.16. Wrath. WHat sins especially provoke God to wrath. ●5. 20, 21, 22. Z. Zeal. HOw to get zeal and fervency in prayer. 27.58, 59 Zion. How God was seen in Zion. 84, 55. Zion a type of the Church. 84.56. A Table of some places of Scripture explained or vindicated in these Expositions of the 27.84.85. and 87. Psalms. Psal. Page. Genesis. 2 1 THe Host of Heaven and earth. 84 6 — 6 5— heart evil continually. 27 68 — 40 20 Pharaoh lifted up the head of the chief Butler. 87 122 Exod. 20 3 Before me 27 62 — 20 5 Visiting iniquities of fathers on children. 84 4 — 21 13, 14 Take him from mine Altar that he may die. 27 39 — 23 21▪ Will not pardon your transgression. 85 16 — 24 4 Twelve Pillars.— Twelve Tribes. 84 10 Joshua 24 19 Will not forgive the transgression. 85 16 Judges 2 16 Judges which delivered them. 85 25 1 Sam. 21 12, 13 David feigned himself mad 27 22 — 22 15 Did I then begin to inquire for him. 27 36 2 Sam. 6 17 David set the Ark in his place. 27 54 2 King. 2 14 Where is the God of Elijah? 84 59 2 Chron. 7 14 Seek my face. 27 63 Job 26 14 Lo these are parts of his ways. 27 93 — 28 13 Wisdom not in the land of the living. 27 125 — 40 19 Chief of God's ways. 27 93 Psalms. 10 16 Heathen perished out of God's land. 85 6 — 18 28 Thou wilt light my candle. 27 3 — 18 48 From the violent man. 27 118 — 24 7 The King of glory shall come in. 84 7 — 25 19 Cruel, or Hatred of violence. 27 120 — 35 25 Ah so ●ould we have it. 27 107 — 37 9 They shall inherit the earth. 27 137 — 37 32 The wicked watcheth the righteous. 27 29 — 38 5 Because of my foolishness. 85 66 — 41 2 Will't not deliver him to the soul or will of his enemy 27 107 — 46 4 Though the earth be removed. 87 120 — 46 5 God is in the midst of her. 27 43 — 52 5 Root thee out of the land of the living. 27 126 — 53 4 They eat up God's people as bread. 27 13 Psalms. Verse. Psalm. Page. — 69 12 They that sat in the gate. 27 103 — 72 11 All nations shall serve him. 87 111 — 72 6 My doctrine shall drop as the rain. 84 33 — 74 9 We see not our signs. 85 49 — 77 19 Thy way is in the sea. 27 93 — 88 18 My kinsmen stand afar off. 27 86 — 89 10 Broken Rahab in pieces. 87 102 — 89 15 Blessed that know the joyful sound. 27 52 — 103 7 He made known his ways unto Moses. 27 93 — 105 4 Seek the Lord and his strength. 27 63 — 119 58 I entreated thy favour with my whole heart. 27 66 — 140 4 Preserve me from the violent man. 27 118 Proverbs 2 7 A buckler to them that walk uprightly. 84 62 — 13 4 The sluggard desireth and hath nothing. 27 30 — 19 6 A friend to him that giveth gifts. 85 91 — 22 15 Foolishness in the heart of a child. 85 66 — 26 11 As a dog to his vomit, so a fool. 85 66 Canticies 5 4 My beloved put in his hand. 27 67 Isaiah 11 6 The wolf shall dwell with the lamb. 27 123 — 30 26 Light of the Moon as the light of the Sun. 87 98 — 37 35 For my own sake and David's sake. 27 44 — 38 11 In the land of the living. 27 126 — 51 9 Hath cut Rahab, wounded the Dragon. 87 102 Ezekiel 47 1 Waters issued from under the threshold. 87 133 Daniel 9 17 Cause thy face to shine for the Lords sake. 84 65, 66 Hoseah 12 4 He had power over the Angel. 84 59 Joel 3 18 A fountain forth of the Lords house. 87 133 Zechariah 13 1 A fountain for sin and uncleanness. 87 132 Malachi 1 1, 2,3 The word of the Lord to Israel. 87 85 Matthew 3 15 To fulfil all righteousness. 85 99 — 5 29,30 If thy right eye offend, pluck it out. 85 15 — 6 9 Our father which art in heaven. 85 59 — 18 20 Meet together in my name. 27 55 — 23 33 Generation of Vipers. 27 102 — 23 37 I would have gathered you, but you would not. 87 113 Luke 1 6 Righteous before God. 85 14 — 8 18 From him shall be taken what he seemeth to have. 87 109 — 10 10 Rejoice that your names are written in heaven. 87 124 John 3 21 He that doth truth, cometh to the light. 27 5 — 4 14 In him a Well of water springing up. 27 90 — 7 37 39 If any man thirst let him come to me and drink. 84 15 — 10 14 Workers of iniquity he knows not 84 34 John 15 19 I have chosen you out of the world 84 68 Acts 7 51 Ye do always resist the Holy Ghost 87 113 Romans 7 20 No more I, but sin that dwelleth in me. 27 91 Romans Verse. Psalm. Page. — 7 23 Captivity to the Law of sin. 27 98 — 12 2 Fashion not yourselves 84 68 69 1 Corinthians 1 21 The world by wisdom knew not God 27 33 — 11 22 Despise ye the Church of God? 27 55 2 Corinthians 4 1 As we have received mercy we feigns not. 85 80 — 6 15 What concord hath Christ with behall? 27 119 Gal. 4 27 The desolate hath more children then, etc. 87 116 Philip. 2 11 Work out your own salvation with fear and trembling. 27 127 — 4 3 Whose names are in the boo● of life. 87 124 1 Timothy 4 16 Thou shalt save thyself. 85 25 Hebrews 11 10 A City whose builder and maker is God. 87 79 James 1 15 Lust conceiving bringeth forth sin. 27 109, 110 1 Peter 2 5 Ye also as living stoves are built up. etc. 87 93 2 Peter 1 19Vntill the day Star arise in your hearts. 27 34 1 John 2 4 The truth is not in him. 85 14 — 2 19 They would have continued with us. 27 32 Revel. 7 9 Clothed with white robes, and palms in their hands. 87 89 — 13 8 Whose names are not written in the book of life, 87 123 — 20 12. And the books were opened. 87 122 Material faults escaped in Printing the Expositions of the 27. 84, 85, and 87. Psalms. fit to be amended before reading. IN the Epistle to Sir Robert Hatley page 2. line 28. for effect, read affect. In the Exposition of the 17. Psalm, p. 6. l. 5. for prayer repray l. 11 for u●r. us. p. 55 l. 22 for recreation r. correction. p. 61 l. 8. for so r. sow l. 7. after evils r. as 2 Chron. 7 13, 14. Thirdly, to the comfortable fruition of all needful good l. 26 after worship r. under the Gospel, prophetically. p. 66 l. 23 for 20 r. 10 p. 68 l. 7. for scattered r. flattered, p. 80. l. 30 for need r. deep. p. 81 l 14 for carnal r. corporal. p. 82. l. 6 for bed r. God. p. 87 〈◊〉 last r. the stream. l. 34. for head r. hand. p. 97. l. 8. after humility r. and meekness. Psal. 25.9. the meek will he teach his way. p. 103. l. 28 for exposition read opposition p 107. l. 33 after great r and for danger p. 125. l. 2. r. had not p. 131. l. 3. r. prosperity. p. 136. l. 9 for conferen●●●r. reference l. 34. r. hath not. p. 142. l. 24 r the Prophet. In the Exposition of the 84 Psalm. p. 17 l. 5. r. maintenance. p. 37. l. 34 r. whom whosoever. p 4●. l. 4. r. shall not see. In the Epistle to Sir Robert Whitney. l. 4. r. Sir, In the Exposition of the 85 Psalm. p. 4. l 32. r. the Lord, p. 5. l 11. r. blessings they have received from him, though notwithstanding those blessings they lie. p. 11 l. 6. Deal brought back his people that had. p. 14. l. 12. r. this life. p. 17 l. ●●. after diligence r. hereunto to become God's people, that so they may have title. p. 18. l. 18. after also r. describeth the blessedness of the man, unto whom God. l. 19 after 7. r. See Mat. 9. ● p. 2●. l. 10. in the margin read to wrath. p. 21. l. 17 r. these men p. 25. l. 10. for Pal. r. verse. l. 22. r. got not. p. 73 l. 3. for serve r. fear. p. 76. l. 10. r. and those. that follow. l. 12. r. raciows. p. 101. l. 25. r. an Atheist. In the Exposition of the 87. Psalm. p 98. l 20. r. Hobab. p. 108. l. 18. r. effectual. p. 110. l. 21. for wrath r. watch p. ●●● l. 33. after for. r the conversion of Rebels. First, they must endeavour in. p. 115. l. 30. r. and renown. p. 118. l. 4. r. belliever l. 7. ●● instant p. 126. l. 16. for word r. work. I●●●●● faults are left to the Readers ingenuity. FINIS.